THE LIBRARY THE UNIVERSITY OF CAL IFORNIA LOS ANGELES >, ^ 1 *+ I "x- hit. c <" t^ / / / ^ *T. Wl '<~ X ,, / y-X- <- ^ ^'-! CHARLES KINGS LEY: HIS LETTERS AND MEMORIES OF HIS LIFE. CHARLES KINGS LEY HIS LETTERS MEMORIES OF HIS LIFE. EDITED BY HIS WIFE. ABRIDGED FROM THE LONDON EDITION. Sleep after toyle, port after stormie seas, Ease after warre, death after life, does greatly please." SPENSER'S " FAERIE QUEEN," Book I., Canto ix. NEW YORK : SCRIBNER, ARMSTRONG & COMPANY. 1877. COPYRIGHT BY SCRIBNER, ARMSTRONG & CO., 1877. JOHN t. TROW & SON, PRINTERS AND BOOKBINDERS, 205-213 Kast \2f/r Sf., NEW YORK. College Library TO THE BELOVED MEMORY OF A RIGHTEOUS MAN WHO LOVED GOD AND TRUTH ABOVE ALL THINGS. A MAN OF UNTARNISHED HONOUR LOYAL AND CHIVALROUS GENTLE AND STRONG MODEST AND HUMBLE TENDER AND TRUE PITIFUL TO THE WEAK YEARNING AFTER THE ERRING STERN TO ALL FOKMS OF WRONG AND OPPRESSION, YET MOST STERN TOWARDS HIMFELF WHO BEING ANGRY, YET SINNED NOT. WHOSE HIGHEST VIRTUES WERE KNOWN ONLY TO HIS WIFE, HIS CHILDREN, HIS SERVANTS, AND THE POOR. WHO LIVED IN THE PRESENCE OF GOD HERE, AND PASSING THROUGH THE GRAVE AND GATE OF DEATH NOW LIVETH UNTO GOD FOR EVERMORE. 1115646 INTRODUCTORY NOTE TO THE ABRIDGMENT. As published in London, these Memoirs of CHARLES KlNGSLEY extended to two octavo volumes of five hundred pages each. These volumes are here abridged in the hope that to the American reader the interest of the Memoirs may be increased. In the English edition, long and fre- quent extracts were made from MR. KlNGSLEY'S published works. These have been dropped from this volume, while the references to them have been retained. The Mem- ories of MR. KlNGSLEY supplied by intimate friends, at the request of his widow, have been reduced where the different writers dwelt upon the same characteristics ; others which lacked point and partook more of the nature of personal panegyric, have been omitted altogether. Last of all, the abridgment has necessarily fallen upon MR. KlNGSLEY'S letters, but pains have been taken to preserve his own record of the conclusions at which he arrived upon the many important problems that occupied his incessantly active mind, although it has been impossible, as indeed it has seemed unnecessary, to reproduce his record of all the phases through which he passed in arriving at these conclu- sions. The narrative in which MRS. KlNGSLEY has supplied viii Introductory Note to the Abridgment. the biographical details necessary to connect these letters has been left intact, and an advantage may justly be claimed for the abridgment in the fact that the modesty, the excellent taste, and the intense affection and sincere reverence for her lamented husband which mark this part of these Memoirs are here brought into greater promi- nence than it was possible for them to have in the original work. EDITOR OF THE ABRIDGMENT. PREFACE TO THE LONDON EDITION. IN bringing out these Volumes, thanks are due and gratefully offered to all who have generously given their help to the work ; to the many known and unknown Correspondents who have treasured and lent the letters now first made public; to the Publishers, who have allowed quotations to be made from Mr. Kingsley's published works ; to the Artists, especially Sheldon Williams, Esq., and Francis Goode, Esq., of Hartley Wintney, &c., whose sketches and photographs have been kindly given for the Illustrations of the book ; but above all to the friends who have so eloquently borne witness to his character and genius. These written testimonies to their father's worth are a rich inheritance to his children, and God only knows the countless unwritten ones, of souls rescued from doubt, darkness, error, and sin, of work done, the worth of which can never be calculated upon earth, of seed sown which has borne, and will still bear fruit for years, perhaps for generations to come, when the name of CHARLES KINGSLEY is forgotten, while his unconscious influence will endure treasured up in the eternal world, where nothing really good or great can be x Preface. lost or pass away, to be revealed at that Day when God's Book shall be opened and the thoughts of all hearts be made known. For the feeble thread, imperfect and unworthy of its great subject, with which these precious records are tied together, the Editor can only ask a merciful judgment from the public. F. E. K. BYFLEET, October, 1876. CONTENTS. CHAPTER I. PAGE Birth and Parentage Inherited Talents Removal from Devonshire to Bur- ton-on-Trent Clifton Barnack and its Traditions First Sermon and Poems Childish Character Effect of Fen Scenery on his Mind. 21 CHAPTER II. 18301838. AGED 11-19. Life at Clovelly School Life at Clifton Bristol Riots Their Effect on his Mind Helston Early Friendships Letters from Rev. Derwent Cole- ridge and Rev. R. C. Powles Move to Chelsea Enters King's College, London 30 CHAPTER III. 18381842. AGED 19-23. Life at Cambridge Visit to Oxfordshire Undergraduate Days Decides to take Orders Takes his Degree Correspondence Letters from Cam- bridge Friends 41 CHAPTER IV. 1842 1843. AGED 23-24. Reads for Holy Orders Correspondence Ordained Deacon Settles at Eversley Parish Work Letters 54 1 2 Contents. CHAPTER V. 18421843. AGED 23-24. PAGE Curate Life Letter from Colonel W. Brighter Prospects Correspondence Renewed Promise of Preferment Leaves Eversley 67 CHAPTER VI. 1844 1847. AGED 25-28. Marriage Curacy of Pimperne Rectory of Eversley Correspondence .... 74 CHAPTER VII. 1848. AGED 29. Publication of " Saint's Tragedy "Chartist Riots Tenth of April Politics for the People Professorship at Queen's College " Yeast " Illness 92 CHAPTER VIII. 1849. AGED 30. Winter in Devonshire Ilfracombe Decides on taking Pupils Correspon- dence Visit to London Social Questions Fever at Eversley Renewed Illness Returns to Devonshire Cholera in England Sanitary Work Bermondsey Letter from Mr. C. K. Paul : in CHAPTER IX. 1850 1851. AGED 31-32. Resigns the Office of Clerk in Orders at Chelsea Pupil Life at Eversley Publication of " Alton Locke" Letters from Mr. Carlyle Writes for "Christian Socialist "Troubled State of the Country Burglaries The Rectory Attacked 127 Contents. 1 3 CHAPTER X. 1851. AGED 32. PAGE Opening of the Great Exhibition Attack on " Yeast " in the " Guardian " and Reply Occurrence in a London Church Goes to Germany Letter from Mr. John Martineau 135 CHAPTER XI. 1852. AGED 33. Strike in the Iron-Trade Correspondence on Social and Metaphysical Ques- tions Mr. Erskine comes to Fir Grove Parson Lot's last Words Birth of his youngest Daughter Letter from Frederika Bremer 160 CHAPTER XII. 1853- AGED 34. The Rector in his Church " Hypatia" Letters from Chevalier Btitisen Mr. Maurice's Theological Essays Correspondence with Thomas Cooper... 174 CHAPTER XIII, 1854. AGKD 35, Torquay Seaside Studies Lectures in Edinburgh Detitsclle Thcologic Letter from Baron Bunsen Crimean War Settles in North Devon Writes " Wonders of the Shore " and " Westward Ho."... ..201 14 Contents. CHAPTER XIV. 1855- AGED 36. TAGS Bideford Crimean War Death of his friend Charles Blachford Mansfield "Westward Ho" Letters from Mr. Henry Drummond and Rajah Brooke Drawing Class for Mechanics at Bideford Leaves Devonshire Lectures to Ladies in London Correspondence Winter at Farley Court The " Heroes " Written 215 CHAPTER XV. 1856. AGED 37. Winter at Farley Court Letter from a Sailor at Hong Kong Union Strikes Fishing Poem and Fishing Flies The Sabbath Question Invitation to Snowdonia Visit to North Wales American Visitors Preface to Tauler's Sermons 233 CHAPTER XVI. The Father in his Home An Atmosphere of Joy The Out-door Nursery Life on the Mount Fear and Falsehood The Training of Love Favor- ites and Friends in the House, in the Stable, and on the Lawn 257 CHAPTER XVII. 1857- AGED 38. 41 Two Years Ago "The Crowded Church Unquiet Sundays LetUrs to Mr. Bullar Dr. Rigg Mr. Tom Hughes' Pietists and Ov/iBs Letter from a Naval Chaplain Indian Mutiny The Romance of Real Life 265 Contents. 1 5 CHAPTER XVIII. 1858. AGED 39. PAGE Eversley Work Diphtheria Lectures and Sermons at Aldershot Blessing the Colors of the 22nd Regiment Staff College Advanced Thinkers Poems and Santa Maura Letter from Dr. Monsell Letters to Dr. Mon- sell, Dean Stanley, &c. Letter from Captain Congreve Birth of his Son Grenville Second Visit to Yorkshire 278 CHAPTER XIX. 1859. AGED 40. Sanitary Work First Sermon at Buckingham Palace Queen's Chaplaincy First Visit to Windsor Letter to an Atheist Correspondence with Artists Charles Bennett Ladies' Sanitary Association Letter from John Stuart Mill 286 CHAPTER XX. 1860. AGED 41. Professorship of Modern History Death of his Father and of Mrs. Anthony Froude Planting the Churchyard Visit to Ireland First Salmon killed Wet Summer Sermon on Weather Letter from Sir Charles Lyell Correspondence Residence in Cambridge Inaugural Lecture in the Senate House Visits to Barton Hall Letter from Sir Charles Bunbury. 303 CHAPTER XXI. 18611862. AGED 42-43. Cambridge Lectures to the Price of Wales Essays and Reviews Letters to Dr. Stanley Bishop of Winchester Tracts for Priests and People Death of the Prince Consort Letter to Sir C. Bunbury The Water- babies Installation Ode at Cambridge Visit to Scotland British Asso- ciation Lord Dundreary 314 1 6 Contents. CHAPTER XXII. 1863. AGED 44. PACK Fellow of the Geological Society Work at Cambridge Prince of Wales's Wedding Wellington College Chapel and Museum Letter from Dr. Benson Lecture at Wellington Letters to Sir Charles Lyell, Prof. Huxley, Charles Darwin, James A. Froude, &c. Whitchurch Still-life Toads in Holes D.C.L. Degree at Oxford Bishop Colenso Sermons on the Pentateuch The Water-babies Failing Health 326 CHAPTER XXIII. 18641865. AGED 45-46. Illness Controversy with Dr. Newman Apologia Journey to the South of France Biarritz Pau An Earthquake Narbonne Sermons in London and at Windsor Enclosure of Eversley Common University Sermons at Cambridge Mr. John Stuart Mill's London Committee Letter on the Trinity Letter on Subscription Luther and Demonology Visit of Queen Emma of the Sandwich Islands to Eversley Rectory and Welling- ton College The Mammoth on Ivory Death of King Leopold Lines written at Windsor Castle 346 CHAPTER XXIV. 18661867. AGED 47-48. Cambridge Death of Dr. Whewell The American Professorship Monoto- nous Life of the Country Laboring Class Penny Readings Strange Correspondents Life of Bewick Letters to Max Muller The Jews in Cornwall The Meteor Shower- -Letter to Brofessor Adams The House of Lords A Father's Education of his Son " Fraser's Magazine" Bird Life, Wood Wrens Names and Places Darwinism Beauty of Color, its Influence and Attractions Fiat-Fish Ice Problems St. Andrews and British Association Abergeldie Castle Rules for Stammerers 363 Contents. 1 7 CHAPTER XXV. 1868. AGED 49. PAGE Attacks of the Press Lectures on Sixteenth Century Mr. Longfellow Sir Henry Taylor on Crime and its Punishment Letter from Mr. Dunn Letter from Rev. William Harrison 386 CHAPTER XXVI. 1869 1870. AGED 50-51. Resignation of Professorship Women's Suffrage Question Letters to Mr. Maurice, John Stuart Mill Canonry of Chester Social Science Meeting at Bristol Letter from Dr. E. Blackwell Medical Education for Women West Indian Voyage Letters from Trinidad Return Home Eversley a Changed Place Flying Columns Heath Fires First Residence at Chester Botanical Class Field Lectures Women's Suffrage Franco- Prussian War Wallace on Natural Selection Matthew Arnold and Hellenism 398 CHAPTER XXVII. 1871. AGED 52. Lecture on " The Theology of the Future " at Sion College Expeditions ot the Chester Natural Scie.nce Society Lectures on Town Geology Race Week at Chester Letters on Betting Camp at Bramshill The Prince of Wales in Eversley Prince of Wales's Illness Lecture to Royal Artil lery O fficers at Woolwich 421 CHAPTER XXVIII. 1872. AGED' 53. Opening of Chester Cathedral Nave Deaths of Mr. Maurice and Norman McLeod Letters to Max Miiller Mrs. Luard Lecture at Birmingham and its Results Lecture on Heroism at Chester A Poem The Athana- sian Creed 434 2 1 8 Contents. CHAPTER XXIX. 18731874. AGED 54-55- PACE Harrow-on-the-Hill Canonry of Westminster His Son's Return His Mother's Death Parting from Chester Congratulations Sermon and Letters on Temperance Preaching in Westminster Abbey Voyage to America Eastern Cities and Western Plains Canada Niagara The Prairie Salt Lake City Yo Semite Valley and Big Trees San Fran- cisco Illness Rocky Mountains and Colorado Springs Last Poem Return Home Letter from John G. Whittier 441 CHAPTER XXX. 1874-5. AGED 55. Return from America Work at Eversley Illness at Westminster New Anxiety Last Sermons in the Abbey Leaves the Cloisters for ever Last Return to Eversley The Valley of the Shadow of Death Last Illness and Departure The Victory of Life over Death and Time 474 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. PORTRAIT OF CHARLES KINGSLEY Frontispiece. PAGE FAC-SIMILE OF THE ORIGINAL MANUSCRIPT OF THE THREE FISHERS... 156 EVERSLEY CHURCH 17^ THE GREAT FIR-TREES ON THE RECTORY LAWN AT EVERSLEY 256 THE RECTORY AT EVKRSLKY 263 THE STUDY WINDOW, EVERSLEY RECTORY 396 CHARLES KINGSLEY'S GRAVE, EVERSLEY CHURCHYARD 488 CHARLES KINGSLEY: HIS LETTERS AND MEMORIES OF HIS LIEE. CHAPTER I. Birth and Parentage Inherited Talents Removal from Devonshire to Burton- on-Trent Clifton Barnack and its Traditions First Sermon and Poems Childish Character Effect of Fen Scenery on his Mind. CHARLES KINGSLEY, son of Charles Kingsley, of Battramsley in the New Forest, was born on the i2th of June, 1819, at Holne Vicarage, under the brow of Dartmoor, Devonshire. His family claimed descent from the Kingsleys of Kingsley or Vale Royal, in Delamere Forest, and from Rannulph de Kingsley, whose name in an old family pedigree stands as " Grantee of the Forest of Mara and Mondrem from Randall Meschines, ante 1128." Charles's father was a man of cultivation and refinement, a good linguist, an artist, a keen sportsman and natural historian. He was educated at Harrow and Oxford, and brought up with good expectations as a country gentleman, but having been early in life left an orphan, and his fortune squandered for him during his minority, he soon spent what was left, and at the age of thirty found himself almost penniless, and obliged, for the first time, to think of a profession. Being too old for the army, and having many friends who were owners of Church property, he decided on the Church, sold his hunters and land, and with a young wife, went for a second time to college, entering his name at Trinity Hall, Cambridge, to read for Holy Orders. While there he became acquainted with Dr. Herbert Marsh, then Margaret Professor of Divinity, afterwards Bishop of Peterborough, a fine classic and first-rate German scholar. This last taste, combined with their mutual love of 22 Charles Kings ley. literature, attracted the two men to each other, and when Dr. Marsh was raised to a bishopric he took an early opportunity of getting Mr. Kingsley into his diocese, and making him his Examin- ing Chaplain. His first cure was in the Fens, from which he removed to Holne, in Devonshire. Charles's mother, a remarkable woman, full of poetry and enthusiasm, was born in the West Indies, being the daughter of Nathan Lucas, of Farley Hall, Barbadoes, and Rushford Lodge, Norfolk. Keenly alive to the charms of scenery, and highly imaginative in her younger days, as she was eminently practical in maturer life, she believed that impressions made on her own mind, before the birth of this child for whose coming she longed, by the romantic surroundings of her Devonshire home, would be mysteri- ously transmitted to him ; and in this faith, and for his sake as well as for her own, she luxuriated in the exquisite scenery of Holne and Dartmoor, the Chase, the hills, and the lovely Dart, which flowed below the grounds of the little parsonage, and gave herself up to the enjoyment of every sight and sound which she hoped would be dear to her child in after life. These hopes were realized, and though her little son left Holne when he was six weeks old, and never saw his birthplace till he was a man of thirty, it and every Devonshire scene and association had a mysterious charm for him through life. " I am," he was proud to say, " a West Country man born and bred." " We know, through the admirable labors of Mr. Galton," savs Mr. Darwin in his "Descent of Man," " that genius which implies a wonderfully complex combination of high faculties tends to be inherited," and to prove this in the case of Charles Kingsley may not be altogether unimportant. " We are," he said himself, in 1865, when writing to Mr. Galton on his book on Hereditary Talent, where the Kingsley family are referred to, "We are but the disjecta membra of a most remarkable pair of parents. Our talent, such as it is, is altogether hereditary. My father was a magnificent man in body and mind, and was said to possess every talent except that of using his talents. My mother, on the contrary, had a quite extraordinary practical and adminis- trative power ; and she combines with it, even at her advanced age (79), my father's passion for knowledge, and the sentiment and fancy of a young girl." .... Inherited Tastes. 23 From his father's side he inherited his love of art, his sporting tastes, his fighting blood the men of his family having been soldiers for generations, some of them having led troops to battle at Naseby, Minden, and elsewhere. And from the mother's side came, not only his love of travel, science and literature, and the romance of his nature, but his keen sense of humor, and a force and originality which characterized, the women of her family of a still older generation. His maternal grandfather, sometime a Judge in Barbadoes, was a man of books and science, the intimate friend of Sir Joseph Banks and the distinguished John Hunter. He was also a great traveller, and had often crossed the Atlantic, in those days a more difficult work than it is now. He knew the West Indies intimately, and Demerara, where also he had estates, and had been with his friend Lord Rodney, on board H.M.S. "Formi- dable," in his great naval engagement off St. Lucia in 1782, "on the glorious i2th of April, when he broke Count de Grasse's line, destroying seven French ships of war and taking their com- mander prisoner." ("At Last," Vol. I. p. 69). In 1812, at the great eruption of the Souffriere of St. Vincent, when resident on his estate in Barbadoes, eighty miles distant, Judge Lucas gave proof of his powers of observation and of scientific induction, by at once detecting the cause of the great earthquake wave which struck the island, and of the sudden darkness which spread terror among its inhabitants. " I have a letter," says his grandson, " writ- ten by one long since dead, who had powers of description of no common order," detailing the events of that awful day and night, and who, while the negroes were shrieking in the streets, and even the white folks caught the panic, and were praying at home and in the churches as they had never prayed before, thinking the last day had come, was above the dismay and superstitious panic which prevailed ; " he opened his window, found it stick, and felt upon the sill a coat of soft powder. 'The volcano at St. Vin- cent has broken out at last,' said the wise man, 'and this is the dust of it.' So he quieted his household and his negroes, lighted his candles, and went to his scientific books in that delight, mingled with awe not the less deep because it is rational and self-possessed, with which he, like other men of science, looked at the wonders of this wondrous world." ("At Last," Vol. I. p, 89). 24 Charles Kingsley. His grandfather's reminiscences of the old war times, and stories of tropical scenes, were the delight of Charles's boyhood, and gave a coloring to his life. They woke up in him that longing to see the West Indies, which was at last accomplished ; and as he sailed the same seas under more peaceful circumstances, his enjoyment was enhanced by family associations and memories of the Past. But to return, Mr. Kingsley's next curacy on leaving Holne was at Burton-on-Trent, from whence he moved to Clifton, in Notting- hamshire, where he and his wife formed the acquaintance of the Penrose family. To this fact Miss Martineau alludes in her cor- respondence with his son 35 years later. " This evening I have heard of you in your infancy ! Ts that not odd ? The Arnolds have just returned after a two months' absence, and I went to Fox How to welcome them home. They have been into Lincolnshire, at the Penroses'. They say your parents were friends of the last generation of the Penroses, and they have been looking over some old letters, in one of which there is an account of a stormy passage of a river (the Trent in flood), when your mother's chief anxiety was about her ' little deli- cate Charles,' whom she wrapped in her shawl, going without it herself. So now, perhaps we know something about you that you did not know yourself." While curate of Clifton, the Bishop of Peterborough offered his friend the living of Barnack, one of the best in the diocese, to hold for his own son Herbert, then only 17. Such transactions were common in the church in those days, and Mr. Kingsley, thankfully, accepted the offer, and held the living for 6 years. Barnack Rectory was a fine old house, built in the fourteenth cen- tury, and thither the family removed. It contained a celebrated haunted 'room called Button Cap's, into which little Charles on one occasion was moved when ill of brain fever, which he had more than once, as a child. This naturally excited his imagina- tion, which was haunted years afterwards with the weird sights and sounds connected with that time in his memory. To this he traced his own strong disbelief in the existence of ghosts. For, as he used to say to his children in later years, he had heard too many ghosts in old Button Cap's room at Barnack, to have much respect for them, when he had once satisfied himself as to what they really were. On being questioned about having been born there by Barnack and its Ghost Chamber. 25 Mrs. Francis Pelham, lie gave her his matured opinion of Button Cap in the following letter : EVERSLEY RECTORY, " Mv DEAR ALICE, June 2, 1864. " Of Button Cap he lived in the Great North Room at Bar- nack (where I was not born). I knew him well. He used to walk across the room in flopping slippers, and turn over the leaves of books to find the missing deed, whereof he had defrauded the orphan and the widow. He was an old Rector of Barnack. Everybody heard him who chose. Nobody ever saw him ; but in spite of that, he wore a flowered dressing-gown, and a cap with a button on it. I never heard of any skeleton being found ; and Button Cap's history had nothing to do with murder, only with avarice and cheating. " Sometimes he turned cross and played Polter-geist, as the Germans say, rolling the barrels in the cellar about with surprising noise, which was undignified. So he was always ashamed of him- self, and put them all back in their places before morning. " I suppose he is gone now. Ghosts hate mortally a certificated National Schoolmaster, and (being a vain and peevish generation) as soon as people give up believing in them, go away in a huff or perhaps some one had been laying phosphoric paste about, and he ate thereof and ran down to the pond ; and drank till he burst. He was rats. " Your affect. Uncle, " C. KlNGSLEY." Charles was a -precocious child, and his poems and sermons date from four years old. His delight was to make a little pulpit in his nursery, arranging the chairs for an imaginary congregation, and putting on his pinafore as a surplice, gave little addresses of a rather severe tone of theology. His mother, unknown to him, took them down at the time, and showed them to the Bishop of Peterborough, who thought them so remarkable for such a young child, that he begged they might be preserved : predicting that the boy would grow up to be no common man. These are among the specimens his mother kept. FIRST SERMON. [Four years old.] " It is not right to fight. Honesty has no chance against steal- ing. Christ has shown us true religion. We must follow God, and not follow the Devil, for if we follow the Devil we shall go into that everlasting fire, and if we follow God, we shall go to Heaven. When the tempter carne to Christ in the Wilderness, 26 Charles Kings ley. and told him to make the stones into bread, he said, Get thee behind me, Satan. He has given us a sign and an example how we should overcome the Devil. It is written in the Bible that we should love our neighbor, and not covet his house, nor his ox, nor his ass, nor his wife, nor anything that is his. It is to a certainty that we cannot describe how thousands and ten thousands have been wicked ; and nobody can tell how the Devil can be chained in Hell. Nor can we describe how many men and women and children have been good. And if we go to Heaven we shall find them all singing to God in the highest. And if we go to hell, we shall find all the wicked ones gnashing and wailing their teeth, as God describes in the Bible. If humanity, honesty, and good religion fade, we can to a certainty get them back, by being good again. Religion is reading good books, doing good actions, and not telling lies and speaking evil, and not calling their brother Fool and Raca. And if we rebel against God, He will to a certainty cast us into hell. And one day, when a great generation of people came to Christ in the Wilderness, he said, Yea ye generation of vipers ! " FIRST POEMS. [Four years and eight months old.] MORNING. When morning's beam first lights us, And the cock's shrill voice is undone, The owl flies from her retreat, And the bat does fly away, And morning's beam lightens every spray, The sun shows forth his splendid train. Everybody is rising ; Boys and girls go to school ; Everybody is at work ; Everybody is busy. The bee wakes from her sleep to gather honey, But the drone and the queen bee lie still In the hive, And a bee guards them. Be busy when thou canst ! NIGHT. When the dark forest glides along, When midnight's gloom makes everybody still, The owl flies out, And the bat stretches his wing ; The lion roars ; The wolf and the tiger prowl about, And the hyena cries. Early Letters. 27 Little can be gleaned of the nursery life at Barnack,. except from an old nurse who lived in his father's family, and who remem- bers Charles as a very delicate child between six and seven years old, subject to dangerous attacks of croup, and remarkable for his thirst for knowledge and conscientiousness of feeling. " I have never forgotten one day," she says, " when he and his little brothers were playing together, and had a difference, which seldom happened. His mother, coming into the room, took the brothers' part, which he resented, and he said he wished she was not his mother. His grief afterwards was great, and he came cry- ing bitterly to the kitchen door to ask me to take him up to his room. The housemaid enquired what was the matter, and said his mamma would be sure to forgive him. ' She has forgiven me, but don't cant, Elizabeth (I saw you blush). It isn't mamma's for- giveness I want, but God's.' Poor little fellow, he was soon upon his knees when he got into his mother's room where he slept." A boy friend, now a clergyman in Essex, recalls him about this time, repeating his Latin lesson to his father in the study at Barnack, with his eyes fixed all the time on the fire in the grate. At last he could stand it no longer ; there was a pause in the Latin, and Charles cried out, "I do declare, papa, there is pyrites in the coal." Among the few relics of the Barnack days is a little love letter written when he was five or six years old, which has latelv come to light, having been carefully treasured for fifty years by a lady who was often staying with his parents at that time, and who captivated the child by her kindness and great beauty. Barnack. " MY DEAR Miss DADE. " I hope you are well is fanny well ? The house is com- pletly changed since you went. I think it is nearly 3 months since you went. Mamma sends her love to you and sally brcnvne Herbert and geraled (his brothers) but I must stop here, because I have more letters of consequence to write & here I must pause. " Believe me always, " Your sincere friend, To Miss DADE. "CHARLES KI\GSI.I:V." The subject of his childish affection recalled herself to him thirty years later, and the answer contains the only other mention of Bac- nack in his own hand. 28 Charles Kings ley. FARLEY COURT, November 25, 1855. " MY DEAR MADAM, " Many thanks for your most kind letter, which awoke in my mind a hundred sleeping recollections. Those old Barnack years seem now like a dream perhaps because having lost the two brothers who were there with me, anecdotes of the place have not been kept up. Yet I remember every stone and brick of it, and you, too, as one of the first persons of whom I have a clear remem- brance, though your face has faded, I am ashamed to say, from my memory. " But I am delighted to hear that my books have pleased, and still more that they have comforted you. They have been written from my heart in the hope of doing good ; and now and then I have (as I have now from you) testimony that my life as yet has not been altogether useless " I am just bringing out a Christmas book for my children with illustrations of my own. Will you accept a copy, and allow me to renew our old friendship ? . You speak of sorrows, and I have heard you have past through many. God grant that a quiet evening may succeed, for you, a stormy day. I am shocked at the amount of misery in a world which has, as yet, treated me so kindly. I Yet it is but a sign that others are nearer to God than I, and therefore more chastened./ J "Yours ever truly, " C. KlNGSLEY." In 1830, when Charles was eleven years old, his father had to give up Barnack to his successor. Mr. and Mrs. Kingsley's parish work is still remembered there with affectionate respect, and they and their parishioners parted with mutual regret. In after years Professor Hall speaks of " Charles's excellent father as a type of the old English clergyman where the country gentleman forms the basis of the character which the minister of the gospel completes. Of such a class," he says, " were the Bishop (Otter) of Chiches- ter, Mr. Pen-rose, and Mr. Kingsley." Having caught ague in the Fens, Mr. Kingsley was advised to try the climate of Devonshire, and moved his family to Ilfracombe. But the Fen scenery was never obliterated from Charles's mind. It was connected, too, with his earliest sporting recollections, for his father, while an excellent parish priest, was a keen sportsman, and as soon as the boy was old enough, he was mounted on his father's horse in front of the keeper on shooting days to bring back the game bag. Wild duck, and even bittern and bustard, were to be found in Hereward the Wake. 29 those days before the draining of the Fen, and butterflies of species now extinct, were not uncommon, and used to delight the eyes of the young naturalist. The sunsets of the Great Fen, all the more striking from the wide sweep of horizon, were never forgotten, and the low flat scenery had always a charm for him in after life from the memory of those days. Thus the seeds were sown of the story of Hereward the Wake, written in after years, produced by the scenes and traditions of this period of boyhood. CHAPTER II. 1830-1838. AGED 11-19. Life at Clovelly School Life at Clifton Bristol Riots Their Effect on his Mind Helston Early Friendships Letters from Rev. Derwent Coleridge and Rev. R. C. Powles Move to Chelsea Enters King's College, London. WHILE the late rector of Barnack was staying at Ilfracombe, Sir James Hanilyn Williams, of Clovelly Court, presented him to the living of Clovelly, which he' held till he removed to the rectory of St. Luke's, Chelsea, in 1836. Here a fresh life opened for Charles, whose impressions of nature had hitherto been gathered from the Eastern Counties and the scenery of the Fens. A new education began for him, a new world was revealed to him. The contrast between the sturdy Fen men and the sailors and fishermen of Clovelly between the flat Eastern Counties and the rocky Devonshire coast, with its rich vegetation, its new fauna and flora, and the blue sea with its long Atlantic swell, filled him with delight and wonder. The boys had their boat and their ponies, and Charles at once plunged into the study of conchology, under the kind and scientific teaching of Dr. Turton, who lived in the neighborhood. His parents, both people of excitable natures and poetic feeling, shared in the boy's enthusiasm. The new elements of their life at tClovelly, the unique scenery, the impressionable character of the people and their singular beauty, the courage of the men and boys, and the passionate sympathy of the women in the wild life of their husbands and sons, threw the new charm of romance over their parish work. The people sprang to touch the more readily under the influence of a man, who, physically their equal, feared no danger; and could steer a boat, hoist and lower a sail, ' shoot ' a herring net, and haul a seine as one of themselves. His ministrations in church and in the cottages were acceptable Studying at Home. 3 1 to dissenters as well as church people. And when the herring fleet put to sea, whatever the weather might be, the Rector, accom- panied by his wife and boys, would start off " down street," for the Quay, to give a short parting service, at which "men who worked," and " women who wept," would join in singing out of the old Prayer Book version the i2ist Psalm as those only can, who have death and danger staring them in the face ; and who, " though storms be sudden, and waters deep," can say, " Then thou, my soul, in safety rest, Thy Guardian will not sleep ; Shelter'd beneath th' Almighty wings Thou shalt securely rest." * Such were the scenes which colored his boyhood, were reflected in his after life, and produced "The Song of the Three Fishers," a song not the mere creation of his imagination, but the literal transcript of what he had seen again and again in Devonshire. " Now that you have seen Clovelly," he said to his wife, in 1854, "you know what was the inspiration of my life before I met you." The boys had a private tutor at home, till, in 1831, Charles and his brother Herbert were sent to Clifton to a preparatory school under the Rev. John Knight, who describes him as "affectionate, gentle, and fond of quiet," which often made him leave the boys' school-room and take refuge with his tutor's daughters and their governess ; capable of making remarkable translations of Latin verse into English ; a passionate lover of natural history ; and only excited to vehement anger when the housemaid swept away as rubbish some of the treasures collected in his walks on the Downs. The Bristol Riots, which took place in the autumn of 1831, were the marked event in his life at Clifton. He had been a timid boy previous to this time, but the horror of the scenes which he wit- nessed seemed to wake up a new courage in him. When giving a * Brady and Tate's Version of the Psalms. 32 Charles Kings ley. lecture at Bristol in 1858, he described the effect of all this on his mind.* While Charles was at Clifton, his parents were still undecided whether to send him to a public school. There was some talk of both Eton and Rugby. Dr. Hawtrey, who had heard through mutual friends of the boy's talent, wished to have him at Eton, where doubtless he would have distinguished himself. Dr. Arnold was at that time head-master of Rugby, but the strong Tory principles and evangelical views of his parents (in the former, Charles at that time sympathized) decided them against Rugby a decision which their son deeply regretted for many reasons, when he grew up. It was his own conviction that nothing but a public school education would have overcome his constitutional shyness, a shyness which he never lost, and which was naturally increased by the hesitation in his speech. This hesitation was so sore a trial to him that he seldom entered a room, or spoke in private or public without a feeling, at moments amounting to terror, when he said he could have wished the earth would open and swallow him up there and then. At that time the Grammar School at Helston was under the head-mastership of the Rev. Derwent Coleridge, son of Samuel Taylor Coleridge ; and Mr. Kingsley decided to send his son there. There Charles formed the dearest and most lasting friendship of his life, with Richard Cowley Powles, afterwards Fellow and Tutor of Exeter College, Oxford, and who in 1869, to the great joy and com- fort of his old schoolfellow, became one of his parishioners at Wixenford, in Eversley. At Helston, too, he found as second- master the Rev. Charles A. Johns, afterwards himself head-master, who made himself the companion of his young pupil, encouraging his taste, or rather passion for botany, going long rambles with him on the neighboring moors and on the sea coast, in search of wild flowers, and helping him in the study which each loved so well. In later years, when both were living in Hampshire, Mr. Johns labored successfully for the cause of physical science in the diocese of Win- chester, where his name will long be remembered in conjunction once more with his former pupil and distinguished friend. * Miscellanies, Vol. II., p. 319, Great Cities, and their influence for good and evil. School Life at Helston. 33 Of Charles's school life both Mr. Coleridge and Mr. Powles have contributed their recollections, which shall be given in their own words. REV. D. COLERIDGE TO MRS. KINGSLEY. HANWELL RECTORY, October 7, 1875. " . . . . Charles and Herbert Kingsley were brought to Helston Grammar School, in Cornwall, in the year 1832, by their father the Rev. Charles Kingsley, then Rector of Clovelly, in Devon. Herbert died of heart-disease, brought on by a severe attack of rheumatism in 1834 Charles was a tall, slight boy, of keen visage, and of great bodily activity, high-spirited, earnest, and energetic, giving full promise of the intellectual powers, and moral qualities, by which he was afterwards distinguished. Though not a close student, he was an eager reader and enquirer, sometimes in very out of the way quarters. I once found him busily engaged with an old copy of ' Porphyry and lamblichus,' which he had fer- reted out of my library. "Truly a remarkable boy, original to the verge of eccentricity, and yet a thorough boy, fond of sport, and up to any enterprise a genuine out-of-doors English boy. " His account of a walk or run would often display considerable eloquence the impediment in his speech, already noticeable, though not, I think, so marked as it afterwards became, rather adding to the effect. We well remember his description of a hunt after some pigs, from which he returned (not an uncommon occur- rence) with his head torn with brambles, and his face beaming with fun and frolic. In manner he was strikingly courteous, and thus, with his wide and ready sympathies, and bright intelligence, was popular alike with tutor, schoolfellows, and servants. " His health was generally very good, but in the summer of 1834 he had a violent attack of English cholera, which occasioned the more alarm as the Asiatic form of that malady had reached Helston. He bore it bravely, and recovered from it, but I believe that the apprehension this occasioned led to his removal earlier than was intended, the distance from London to the extreme west of Corn- wall being felt by his parents to be too great. " After he left Cambridge he sent me the manuscript of his tragedy of ' Elizabeth of Hungary 1 for my criticism and approval. This was the last occasion in which I stood to him in any degree in the relation of a tutor or adviser. From this time I saw him only at intervals ; but when I paid him, as Canon of Westminster, my first, and, as it proved, alas ! my last visit, on the 1 7th of November, 1874, he rlung his arms about my neck, exclaiming, ' Oh ! my dear 3 34 Charles Kings ley. old master ! my dear old master ! ' nor was he less affected at the sight of Mrs. Coleridge Valeat in ceternum " DERWENT COLERIDGE." REV. R. C. POWLES TO MRS. KINGSLEY. WlXENFORD, Oct. 30, 1875. " It was at Helston, in January, 1833, when we were each in our fourteenth year, that Charles and I first became acquainted. He and his brother Herbert had been spending the Christmas holidays at school, and I was introduced to them, on my arrival from Lon- don, before any of our schoolfellows had returned. I remember the long, low room, dimly lighted by a candle on a table at the further end, where the brothers were sitting, engaged at the mo- ment of my entrance in a course of (not uncharacteristic) experi- ments with gunpowder. " Almost from the time of our first introduction Charles and I became friends, and subsequently we shared a study, so that we were a good deal together. Looking back on those schoolboy days, one can trace without difficulty the elements of character that made his rnaturer life remarkable. Of him more than of most men who have become famous it may be said, ' the boy was father of the man.' The vehement spirit, the adventurous courage, the love of truth, the impatience of injustice, the quick and tender sympathy, that distinguished the man's entrance on public life, were all in the boy, as any of those who knew him then and are still living will remem- ber'; and there was, besides, the same eagerness in the pursuit of physical knowledge, the same keen observation of the world around him, and the same thoughtful temper of tracing facts to principles, which all who are familiar with his writings recognize as among his most notable characteristics. " For all his good qualities. Charles was not popular as a school- boy. He knew too much, and his mind was generally on a higher level than ours. He did not consciously snub those who knew less, but a good deal of unconscious snubbing went on ; all the more resented, perhaps, because it was unconscious. Then, too, though strong and active, Charles was not expert at games. He never made " a score " at cricket. In mere feats of agility and adven- ture he was among the foremost ; and on one of the very last times I ever saw him he was recalling an old exploit in which he had only two competitors. Our play-ground was separated by a lane, not very narrow, and very deep, from a field on the opposite side. To jump from the play-ground wall to the wall opposite, and to jump back, was a considerable trial of nerve and muscle. The walls, which were not quite on a level, were rounded at the top, and a fall into the deep lane must have involved broken bones. This jump was one of Charles's favorite performances. Again, [ School Life at Helston. 35 remember his climbing a tall tree to take an egg from a hawk's nest. For three or four days he had done this with impunity. There came an afternoon, however, when the hawk was on her nest, and on the intruder's putting in his hand as usual the results were disas- trous. To most boys the surprise of the hawk's attack, apart from the pain inflicted by her claws, would have been fatal. They would have loosed their hold of the tree, and tumbled down. But Charles did not flinch. He came down as steadily as if nothing had happened, though his wounded hand was streaming with blood. It was wonderful how well he bore pain. On one occasion, having a sore finger, he determined to cure it by cautery. He heated the poker red-hot in the school room fire, and calmly applied it two or three times till he was satisfied that his object was attained. " His own endurance of pain did not, however, make him care- less of suffering in others. He was very tender-hearted often more so than his schoolfellows could understand ; and what they did not understand they were apt to ridicule. And this leads me to notice what, after all, 1 should fix on as the moral quality that pre- eminently distinguished him as a boy, the generosity with which he forgave offence. He was keenly sensitive to ridicule ; nothing irritated him more ; and he had often excessive provocation from those who could not enter into his feelings, or appreciate the work- ings of his mind. But with the moment of offence the memory of it passed away. He had no place for vindictiveness in his heart. Again and again I have seen him chafed to the intensest exaspera- tion by boys with whom half an hour afterwards he has mixed with the frankest good humor. " How keen his feelings were none of his surviving schoolfellows will forget, who were with us at the time his brother Herbert died. Herbert had had an attack of rheumatic fever, but was supposed to be recovering and nearly convalescent, when one afternoon he suddenly passed away. Charles was summoned from the room where we were all sitting in ignorance of what had just taken place. All at once a cry of anguish burst upon us, such as, after more than forty years, I remember as if it were yesterday. There was no need to tell the awe-struck listeners what had happened. " Thus far I have spoken rather of Charles's moral than of his intellectual qualities. I must add something of these latter. His chief taste was, as I have hinted, for physical science. He was fond of studying all objects of the natural world, but for botany and geology he had an absolute enthusiasm. Whatever time he could spare from less congenial studies, and from ordinary play-ground games, which never specially attracted him, he gave to these. He liked nothing better than to sally out, hammer in hand and his botanical tin slung round his neck, on some long expedition in quest of new plants, and to investigate the cliffs within a few miles of Helston, dear to every geologist. 36 Charles Kings ley. " For the study of language he had no great liking. Later on, Greek and Latin interested him, because of their subject-matter ; but for classics, in the school-boy sense of the term, he had no turn. He would work hard at them by fits and starts on the eve of an examination, for instance ; but his industry was intermittent and against the grain. Nor do I think he had any such turn for mathe- matics as led him to make the most of the opportunities we had for that branch of study. His passion was for natural science, and for art. With regard to the former I think his zeal was led by a strong religious feeling a sense of the nearness of God in His works. " R. COWLEY POWLES." To his mother he writes during the early days of his school- life : " I am now quite settled and very happy. I read my Bible every night, and try to profit by what I read, and I am sure I do. I am more happy now than I have been for a long time ; but I do not like to talk about it, but to prove it by my conduct. " I am keeping a journal of my actions and thoughts, and I hope it will be useful to me." His poetical compositions, which were many at this time, were all given to his friend Mr. Powles, who has carefully preserved them. Charles kept no note of them himself, and would not have thought them worth keeping. But one more must be added, as it shows the working of the boy's mind at fifteen. He called it him- self HYPOTHESES HYPOCHONDRIACS. And should she die, her grave should be Upon the bare top of a sunny hill, Among the moorlands of her own fair land, Amid a ring of old and moss-grown stones In gorse and heather all embosomed. There should be no tall stone, no marbled tomb Above her gentle corse ; the ponderous pile Would press too rudely on those fairy limbs. The turf should lightly lie, that marked her home, A sacred spot it would -be every bird That came to watch her lone grave should be holy. The deer should browse around her undisturbed ; The whin bird by, her lonely nest should build All fearless ; for in life she loved to see Hypotheses Hypochondriacs. 37 Happiness in all things And we would come on summer days When all around was bright, and set us down And think of all that lay beneath that turf On which the heedless moor-bird sits, and whistles His long, shrill, painful song, as though he plained For her that loved him and his pleasant hills, And we would dream again of bygone days Until our eyes should swell with natural tears For brilliant hopes all faded into air ! As, on the sands of Irak, near approach Destroys the traveller's vision of still lakes, And goodly streams reed-clad, and meadows green ; And leaves behind the drear reality Of shadeless, same, yet everchanging sand ! And when the sullen clouds rose thick on high Mountains on mountains rolling and dark mist Wrapped itself round the hill tops like a shroud, When on her grave swept by the moaning wind Bending the heather-bells then would I come And watch by her, in silent loneliness, And smile upon the storm as knowing well The lightning's flash would surely turn aside, Nor mar the lowly mound, where peaceful sleeps All that gave life and love to one fond heart ! I talk of things that are not ; and if prayers By night and day availeth from my weak lips, Then should they never be ! till I was gone, Before the friends I loved, to my long home. O pardon me, if aught I say too much ; my mind Too often strangely turns to ribald mirth, As though I had no doubt nor hope beyond Or brooding melancholy cloys my soul With thoughts of days misspent, of wasted time And bitter feelings swallowed up in jests. Then strange and fearful thoughts flit o'er my brain By indistinctness made more terrible, And incubi mock at me with fierce eyes Upon my couch : and visions, crude and dire, Of planets, suns, millions of miles, infinity, Space, time, thought, being, blank nonentity, Things incorporeal, fancies of the brain, Seen, heard, as though they were material, All mixed in sickening mazes, trouble me, And lead my soul away from earth and heaven Until I doubt whether I be or not ! 38 Charles Kings ley. And then I see all frightful shapes lank ghosts, Hydras, chimeras, krakens, wastes of sand, Herbless and void of living voice tall mountains Cleaving the skies with height immeasurable, On which perchance I climb for infinite years, broad seas, Studded with islands numberless, that stretch Beyond the regions of the sun, and fade Away in distance vast, or dreary clouds, Cold, dark, and watery, where wander I for ever ! Or space of ether, where I hang for aye ! A speck, an atom inconsumable Immortal, hopeless, voiceless, powerless ! And oft I fancy I am weak and old, And all who loved me, one by one, are dead, And I am left alone and cannot die ! Surely there is no rest on earth for souls Whose dreams are like a madman's ! I am young And much is yet before me after years May bring peace with them to my weary heart ! C. K. In 1836 the happy free country life of Clovelly was exchanged for London work and the rectory of St. Luke's, Chelsea, to which Lord Cadogan had presented Mr. Kingsley. There the family settled, and Charles was entered, as a day student, at King's Col- lege, London, where, says Dr. Barry, the present principal, in a recent letter : " He became a member of the General Literature Department of the College that is, the department for those who are simply pursuing a liberal education (with a much larger admixture of mathematics, modes, languages, and physical science, than was then usual), after leaving school before settling to a profession or going to the university. ... It was a great pleasure to me, he adds, to have been able to invite one to whose writings I owe so much, to preach for us at the College in 1873, and to allow us to add his name to our list of Honorary fellows. . . ." It was a great grief to Charles to leave the West Country and the society of those who were all ready to help him in his botani- cal and geological studies, and in picking up the old traditions of the neighborhood. The parting with his dear friend Cowley Powles, the loss of the intellectual atmosphere of Mr. Coleridge's house and his valuable library, and, above all, of the beautiful nat- Removal to Chelsea. 39 ural surroundings of both Helston and Clovelly, was bitterly felt. The change to a London rectory, with its ceaseless parish work, the discussion of which is so wearisome to the young, the middle- class society of a suburban district as Chelsea then was, the polem- ical conversation all seemingly so narrow and conventional in its tone, chafed the boy's spirit, and had anything but a happy effect on his mind. His parents were busy from morning till night, the house full of district visitors and parish committees. In short, Chelsea was a prison from which he thankfully escaped two years later to the freer life of Cambridge. To his dear friend and schoolfellow at Helston he thus pours out his heart : CHELSEA RECTORY. " I find a doleful difference in the society here and at Helston, paradoxical as it may appear. . . . We have nothing but cler- gymen (very good and sensible men, but), talking of nothing but parochial schools, and duties, and vestries, and curates, &c., &c., &c. And as for women, there is not a woman in all Chelsea, leav- ing out my own mother, to be compared to Mrs. C., or ; and the girls here have got their heads crammed full of schools, and district visiting, and baby linen, and penny clubs. Confound ! ! ! and going about among the most abominable scenes of filth, wretch- edness, and indecency, to visit the poor and read the Bible to them. My own mother says the places they go into are fit for no girl to see, and that- they should not know such things exist. I regret here, then, as you may suppose, Mrs. D., and ; but, alas ! here are nothing but ugly splay-footed beings, three-fourths of whom can't sing, and the other quarter sing mites out of tune, with voices like love-sick parrots. Confound ! ! ! I have got here two or three good male acquaintances who kill the time ; one is Sub Secretary to the Geological Society. "As you may suppose all this clerical conversation (to which I am obliged to listen) has had a slight effect in settling my opinion on these subjects, and I begin to hate these dapper young-ladies- preachers like the devil, for I am sickened and enraged to see 'silly women blown about by every wind,' falling in love with the preacher instead of his sermon, and with his sermon instead of the JBible. I could say volumes on this subject that should raise both your contempt and indignation. I am sickened with its day-by-day occurrence.* As you may suppose, this hatred is rrarpoOtx 1 , here- * These early experiences made him most careful in after life, when in a par- ish of his own, to confine all talk of parish business to its own hours, and never, 40 Charles Kingsley. ditary, and the governor is never more rich than when he unbends on these points." For the next two years he had what he called hard grinding work at King's College, walking up there every day from Chelsea, reading all the way, and walking home late, to study all the even- ing. In his spare hours, which were few and far between, he com- forted himself for the lack of all amusement by devouring every book he could lay hands on. His parents were absorbed in their parish work, and their religious views precluded all public amuse- ments for their children : so that the only variety in Charles's life was during the summer holidays, when his father took him to Dur- ham to stay at his friend Dr. Wellesley's, or to Clovelly. as lie called it, " talk shop " before his children, or lower the tone of conversa- tion, by letting it degenerate into mere parochial and clerical gossip. CHAPTER III. 183842. AGED 19-23. Life at Cambridge Visit to Oxfordshire Undergraduate Days Decides to take Orders Takes his Degree Correspondence Letters from Cambridge Friends. IN the autumn of 1838 Charles Kingsley left King's College, London, and went up to Magdalene College, Cambridge, where he soon gained a scholarship, being first in his year in the May Examinations, and in the joy of his heart he writes home : MAGDALENE COLLEGE, May 31, 1839. "You will be delighted to hear that I am first in classics and mathematics also, at the examinations, which has not happened in the College for several years. I shall bring home prizes, and a decent portion of honor the King's College men (K.C. London) are all delighted. I am going to stay up here a few days longer if you will let me. Mr. Wand has offered to help me with my second year's subjects, so I shall read conic sections and the spherical trigonometry very hard while I am here. I know you and mamma will be glad to hear of my success, so you must pardon the wild- ness of my letter, for I am so happy I hardly know what to say. You know I am not accustomed to be successful. 1 am going to-day to a great fishing party at Sir Charles Wale's, at Shelford." The prize he refers to was a fine edition of Plato in eleven volumes. " His selection of such a book," says Mr. Mynors Bright, an undergraduate friend, afterwards senior tutor of Mag- dalene, in a recent letter to the Editor, " Speaks well for his judgment and taste. I recollect one of the examiners, a Fellow of the College, telling me, that whatever papers Kingsley sent up to any examination always showed marks of talent. As you must know, he was always of an excitable 42 Charles Kingsley. temperament. I recollect his telling me that he first began to smoke at Cambridge, and that it had a wonderful effect on his nervous system, and enabled him to work. He did not get a Fellowship, because there was no vacancy for him, till he obtained one which, no doubt, was more pleasing to him. When he was about to return as Professor to Cambridge, I was very much amused one morning, on saying to the College cook, ' We have a great man coming to us again, Mr. Kingsley ; do you recollect anything of him?' He thought a minute, and then answered: ' Mr. Kingsley Mr. Kingsley. Yes, I recollect him. I used to feed a dog of his, and he used to come and say' (trying to imitate Kingsley' s voice), 'You con founded beast, why can't you earn your own living, and not oblige me to pay for you ! ' ' In the summer of 1839 the Rector of Chelsea took duty, for the sake of country air and change, near some intimate friends, at the village of Checkenden, in Oxfordshire, and settled in the little parsonage house for two months with his wife and his family, Charles, then an undergraduate of Cambridge, Gerald in the Royal Navy (since dead), a daughter, and two schoolboys. On the 6th of July, Charles and his future wife met for the first time, " That was my real wedding day," he said, some fifteen years after- wards. He was then full of religious doubts ; and his face, with its unsatisfied hungering look, bore witness to the state of his mind. It had a sad longing expression, too, as if he had all his life been looking for a sympathy he had never found a rest which he never would attain in this world. His peculiar character had not been understood hitherto, and his heart had been half asleep. It woke up now, and never slept again. For the first time he could speak with perfect freedom, and be met with answering sympathy. And gradually as the new friendship (which yet seemed old from the first more of a recognition than an acquaintance) deepened into intimacy, every doubt, every thought, every failing, every sin, as he would call it, was laid bare. Counsel was asked and given, all things in heaven and earth discussed ; and a's new hopes dawned, the look of hard defiance gave way to a wonderful humility and tenderness, * which were his characteristics, with those who under- stood him, to his dying day. He was just like his own Lancelot in Yeast, in that summer of ^839 a bld thinker, a bold rider, a most chivalrous gentleman Visit to Oxfordshire. 43 sad, shy, and serious habitually ; in conversation at one moment brilliant and impassioned ; the next reserved and unapproachable ; by turns attracting and repelling, but pouring forth to the friend whom he could trust, stores of thought and feeling and information on every sort of unexpected subject which seemed boundless. It was a feast to the imagination and intellect to hold communion with Charles Kingsley even at the age of twenty ; the originality with which he treated a subject was startling, and his genius illumi- nated every object it approached, whether he spoke of " the delicious shiver of those aspen leaves," on the nearest tree, or of the deepest laws of humanity and the controversies of the day. Of that intercourse truly might these friends each say with Goethe " For. the first time, I may well say. I carried on a conversation ; for the first time, was the inmost sense of my words returned to me, more rich, more full, more comprehensive from another's mouth. What I had been groping for, was rendered clear to me ; what I had been thinking, I was taught to see. . . ." The Oxford Tracts had lately appeared, and, though he dis- cussed them from the merely human and not the religious point of view, he fiercely denounced the ascetic view of sacred human ties which he foresaw would result from them. Even then he detected in them principles which, as he expressed years afterwards in his preface to Hypatia, must, if once adopted, sapj:he very foundation of the two divine roots of the Church, the ideas of family and national life. Two months of such intercourse passed away only too quickly, and though from this time for the next four years and a half, the friends met but seldom, and corresponded at rare intervals, a new life had dawned for both, which neither absence nor sorrow, differ- ence of religious opinions, opposition of friends, or adverse cir- cumstances, could extinguish. Before he left Oxfordshire he was so far shaken in his doubts, that he promised to read his Bible once more to pray to open his heart to the Light, if the Light would but come. All, however, was dark for a time, and the conflict between hopes and fears for the future, and between faith and un- belief, was so fierce and bitter, that when he re turner! to Cam- bridge, he became reckless, and nearly gave up all for lost : he read little, went in for excitement of every kind boating, hunting, driving, fencing, boxing, duck-shooting in the Fens, anything to 44 Charles Kingsley. deaden the remembrance of the happy past, which just then promised no future. More than once he had nearly resolved to leave Cambridge and go out to the Far West and live as a wild prairie hunter; to this he refers when for the first time he found himself on the prairies of America in 1874. But through all, God kept him in those dark days for a work he little dreamed of. He had many friends in the University who took delight in his society, some for his wit and humor, others for his sympathy on art, and deeper matters, but they knew nothing of the real state of his mind. "He was very popular," writes an intimate undergraduate friend, " amongst all classes of his companions, he mixed freely with all, the studious, the idle, the clever, and the reverse, a most agreeable companion, full of information of all kinds, and abound- ing in conversation. Whatever he engaged in, he threw his whole energy into ; he read hard at times, but enjoyed sports of all kinds, fishing, shooting, riding, and cards." A letter from the Rev. E. Pitcairn Campbell, gives a graphic account of their under- graduate life just then. ASTON LODGE, November, 1875. " My first acquaintance with your husband was formed sometime in 1840. " We happened to be sitting together one night on the top of one of those coaches which in our time were subscribed for by a number of men los. or i each for various expeditions into the Fens for instance, when Whittlesea lay broadly under water Sir Colman Rashleigh, the Dykes of Cornwall, or other driving men taking the management, wearing wonderful coats and hats, and providing the horses. I remember the drive very well. The moon was high, and the air was frosty, and we talked about sport and natural history, while the cornopean professor astonished the natives with what he called Mr. Straw's (!) walzes. " At last we got upon fishing, and I invited your husband to come to my rooms to view some very superior tackle which had been left me by a relative. He came at once, inviting me to join him in some of his haunts up the Granta and the Cam, where he had friends dwelling, and hospitable houses open to him. " I never shall forget our first expedition. I was to call him, and for this purpose I had to climb over the wall of Magdalene College. This I did at two A.M., and about three we were both climbing back into the stonemason's yard, and off through Trump- ington, in pouring rain all the way, nine miles to Duxford. " We reached about 6.30. The water was clouded by rain, and Personal Traits. 45 I in courtesy to your husband yielded my heavier rod in order that he might try the lower water with the minnow. " He was, however, scarcely out of sight, before I spied, under the alders, some glorious trout rising to caterpillars dropping from the bushes. In ten minutes I had three of these fine fellows on the bank one of them weighed three pounds, others two pounds each. We caught nothing after the rain had ceased. " This performance set me up in your husband's opinion, and he took me with him to Shelford, where dwelt Sir Charles Wale. It was at Shelford that I executed the feat to which he refers in his Miscellanies.* " The Times coach used to take us up to breakfast, and many a good trout rewarded our labors. Then we dined with Sir Charles at five P.M., and walked back to Cambridge in the evening. Oh ! what pleasant talk was his, so full of poetry and beauty ! and, what I admired most, such boundless information. " Besides these expeditions we made others on horseback, and I think at times we followed the great Professor Sedgwick in his adventurous rides, which the livery stable-keepers called jolly- gizing ! f The old professor was generally mounted on a bony giant, whose trot kept most of us at a hand gallop. Gaunt and grim, the brave old Northern man seemed to enjoy the fun as much as we did his was not a hunting seat neither his hands nor his feet ever seemed exactly in the right place. But when we surrounded him at the try sting-place, even the silliest among us acknowledged that his lectures were glorious. It is too true that our method of reaching those trysting-places was not legitimate, the greater number preferring the field to the road, so that the un- happy owners of the horses found it necessary to charge more for a day's jolly-gizing than they did for a day's hunting. " There was another professor whose lectures we attended to- gether, but he was of a different type and character one who taught the gentle art of self defence a negro of pure blood, who appeared to have more joints in his back than are usually allotted to humanity. In carrying out the science which he taught, we occasionally discolored each other's countenances, but we thought that we benefited by these lectures in more senses than one. We had our tempers braced, yea, even our Christian charity ; for in- stance, when we learnt to feel as we knew we ought for those who had just punished us. "To crown our sports, we have now only to add the all-absorb- ing boating, and, dear Mrs. Kingsley, you will have reason to think that we have so filled up our time, as to have little left for legiti- * Chalk Stream Studies, Prose Idylls, p. 83. j- Professor Sedgwick gave Geological Field Lectures on horseback to a class in the neighborhood of Cambridge. 46 Charles Kingsley. mate study ; and so, alack, it was with me, but not so, I fancy, with your husband. However idle we both were at first, he took to reading in sufficient time to enable him to realize the degree he wanted After his examination, I altogether lost sight of your husband until, about the year 1865, I wrote to him and en- quired if the passage in the Chalk Stream studies did not refer to me. I long to find his reply it was a charming letter." Now began his difficulties in theology about the Trinity, and other important doctrines. He revolted from what seemed to him then, the " bigotry, cruelty, and quibbling," of the Athanasian Creed, that very Creed which in after years was his stronghold ; and he could get no clergyman to help him with advice he could rely on, on these points. Speaking of the clergy with whom he came in contact, and of his religious doubts, he writes, " This is not so much beyond reason, as it is beyond the proper bounds of induction. From very insufficient and ambiguous grounds in the Bible, they seem unjustifiably to have built up a huge superstructure, whose details they have filled in according to their own fancies, or alas ! too often according to their own in- terest Do not be angry. I know I cannot shake you, and I think you will find nothing flippant or bitter no vein of noisy and shallow blasphemy in my doubts. I feel solemn and sad on the subject. If the philosophers of old were right, and if I am right in my religion, alas ! for Christendom ! and if I am wrong, alas ! for myself! It is a subject on which I cannot jest I will write soon and tell you some of my temptations." CAMBRIDGE, November, 1840. " I have struggled to alter lately, and my alteration has been remarked with pleasure by some, with sheers by others. ' Kings- ley, they say, is not half as reckless as he used to be.' .... There is another benefit you have conferred upon me careless- ness for the opinion of the 'unworthy. Formerly, by a strange paradox, which I see in too many minds, I was servile to the opinions of the very persons I despised. I had no rule of morality felt and believed. My morals were only theoretical, and public opinion even more than self-interest, my only God. But now . . . . that I have found a centralizing point connecting my theo- retical notions of morality with my affections and my emotions, I begin to find that there is an object to be attained in morality be- yond public esteem and self-interest namely, the love and the esteem of the good, and, consequently, of God himself. The love and the esteem of the Deity, which I conceive is almost the same Doubts and Difficulties. 47 thing as loving good for its own sake, I cannot fully appreciate yet, or rather my natural feelings of the just and the beautiful, have, as you say, been dimmed by neglect." .... January, 1841. " .... I have an instinctive, perhaps a foolish fear, of any- thing like the use of religious phraseology, because I am sure that if these expressions were used by any one placed as I now am to me, I should doubt the writer's sincerity. I find that if I allow myself ever to use, even to my own heart, those vague and trite expressions, which are generally used as the watchwords of religion, their familiarity makes me careless, or rather dull to their sense, while their specious glibness makes me prove myself alternately fiend or angel, hurrying me on in a mass f language, of whose precise import I have no vital knowledge. This is their effect on me. We know too well what it often is on others. Believe, then, every word I write as the painful expression of new ideas and feelings in a mind unprejudiced by conventionality in language, or (I hope) in thought. ... I ask this because I am afraid of the very suspicion of talking myself into a fancied conversion. I see people do this often, and I see them fall back again. And this, perhaps, keeps me in terror lest I should have merely mis- taken the emotions of a few passionate moments for the calm convictions which are to guide me through eternity I have, therefore, in order to prevent myself mistaking words and feelings for thoughts, never made use of technicalities. " I have not much time for poetry,* as 1 am reading steadily. How I envy, as a boy, a woman's life at the corresponding age so free from mental control, as to the subjects of thought and reading so subjected to it, as to the manner and the tone. We, on the other hand, are forced to drudge at the acquirement of confessedly obsolete and useless knosvledge, of worn-out philoso- phies, and scientific theories long exploded while our finer senses and our conscience are either scared by sensuality or suffered to run riot in imagination and excitement, and at last to find every woman who has made even a moderate use of her time, far beyond us in true philosophy. "I wish I were free from this university system, and free to fol- fow such a course of education as Socrates, and Bacon, and More, and Milton have sketched out." .... CAMBRIDGE, February, 1841. " I strive daily and hourly to be calm. Every few minutes to stop myself forcibly, and recall my mind to a sense of where 1 am * During these years of trial and suspense he wrote little poetry. " Twin Stars" and " Palinodia" are all that mark the time. 48 Charles Kingsley. where 1 am going and whither I ought to be tending. This is most painful discipline, but wholesome, and much as I dread to look inward, I force myself to it continually I am read- ing seven to eight hours a day. I have refused hunting and driv- ing, and made a solemn vow against cards. My trial of this new mode of life has been short, but to have begun it is the greatest difficulty. There is still much more to be done, and there are more pure and unworldly motives of improvement, but actions will pave the way for motives, almost as much as motives do for actions. \. . " You cannot understand the excitement of animal exercise from the mere act of cutting wood or playing cricket to the manias of hunting or shooting or fishing. On these things more or less most young men live. Every moment which is taken from them for duty or for reading is felt to be lost to be so much time sacrificed to hard circumstance. And even those who have calmed from age, or from the necessity of attention to a profession, which has become custom, have the same feelings flowing as an under- current in their minds ; and, if they had not, they would neither think nor act like men. They might be pure and good and kind, but they would need that stern and determined activity, without which a man cannot act in an extended sphere either for his own good, or for that of his fellow-creatures. When I talk, then, of excitement, 1 do not wish to destroy excitability, but to direct it into the proper channel, and to bring it under subjection. I have been reading Plato on this very subject, and you-would be charmed with his ideas "Of the existence of this quality (excitability) there can be no doubt, and you must remember the peculiar trial which this " (alluding to the necessity for hard reading and giving up all amuse- ment for the time being) " proves to a young man whose super- fluous excitement has to be broken in like that of a dog or a horse for it is utterly animal. At this time his physical strength was great. He walked one day from Cambridge to London, fifty-two miles, starting early and arriving in London at 9 P.M., with ease; and for many years afterwards a walk of twenty or twenty-five miles in a fresh country was a real refreshment to him. Speaking of "renewed violent struggles to curb " himself, which made him " feel more agonizingly weak than ever," he says : CAMBRIDGE, February, 1841. " As for my degree, I can yet take high honors in the Univer sity, and ought to get my fellowship : but I was very idle and very sinful my first year. Reading and Resolutions. 49 " I attend morning chapel at eight ; read from nine to one or two ; attend chapel generally again at live. I read for some hours in the evening. As to my studies interesting me, if you knew the system and the subjects of study, you would feel that to be impos- sible. ... I wish to make duty the only reason for working, but my heart is in very different studies." .... May, 1841. " My only reasons for working for a degree are that I may enter the world with a certain prestige which may get me a living sooner. . . . . Several of my intimate friends here, strange to say, are going into the Church, so that our rooms, when we are not read- ing, are full of clerical conversation. One of my friends, the son of the English Minister at Turin, goes up for ordination next week. How I envy him his change of life. I feel as if, once in the Church, I could cling so much closer to God. I feel more and more daily that a clergyman's life is the one for which both my physique and morale were intended that the profession will check and guide the faulty parts of my mind, while it gives full room for my energy that energy which had so nearly ruined me ; but will now be devoted utterly, I hope, to the service of Clod. My views of theoretical- religion are getting more clear daily, as I see more completely the necessity of faith. What a noble mind Novalis's must have been. Do you know his works ? or have you read the review of them in Carlyle ? If not, pray do To publish a translation of them will be one of the first results of my German studies, after my degree " I forgot to thank you for the books. I am utterly delighted with them." The books referred to were Carlyle's works, and Coleridge's "Aids to Reflection." Carlyle's "French Revolution," sent by the same friend, had had a remarkable effect on his mind before he decided upon taking holy orders, in establishing and intensifying his belief in God's righteous government of the world. The " Mis- cellanies," and "Past and Present," followed it up, and were most useful to him, as was Maurice's " Kingdom of Christ," which she sent at a later period. SULLY, June 12, 1841. "My birth-night. I have been for the last hour on the sea shore, not dreaming, but thinking deeply and strongly, and forming deter- minations which are to affect my destiny through time and through eternity. Before the sleeping earth and the sleepless sea and stars I have devoted myself to God ; a vow never (if He gives me the faith I pray for) to be recalled." .... 4 50 Charles Kingsley. A great change had long been coming over him, to which in a previous letter he points when he speaks of himself as "Saved saved from the wild pride and darkling tempests of scepticism, and from the sensuality and dissipation into which my own rashness and vanity had hurried me before I knew you. Saved from a hunter's life on the Prairies, from becoming a savage, and perhaps worse. Saved from all this, and restored to my country and my God, and able to believe. And I do believe, firmly and practically, as a subject of prayer, and a rule of every action of my life." .... The Rev. James Montagu, Rector of Hawkwell, an old College friend, writing to the editor in 1876, refers to this period thus : " Our old Cambridge intercourse was to me very pleasant. There was something in dear Charles's young days then, which drew me (his senior by some six or eight years) very much to him. There was growing up in his brain, then indistinct and shadowy, much of that which came out in riper manhood. There was a dreaminess about him at times which caused remarks to be made about him. 1 have had it said to me, ' You seem to be much with Kingsley, is he not a little odd and cracky ? ' and I can remember my answer 'It would take two or three of our heads to mend the crack.' He would come up to my room with, 'Are you busy, Monty?' ' Not too busy for a chat with you, Kingsley.' And then I must tell you how artfully and cunningly I used to slip paper and pen- cils within his reach ; for I knew his wont to go on sketching all sorts of fanciful things, while we worried our young heads over other dreams as fanciful. Many of those pleasant memories come cropping out at times, though long years have passed and long years make memory weak. Since those days, from his busy life, our intercourse was but slight. I have not forgotten the few pleas- ant days spent at Eversley ; nor shall I ever lose the pride I feel in being called Charles Kingsley' s friend." His every-day college life, his love of art and drawing powers are recalled by another friend, now distinguished himself, as archi- tect of St. Paul's Cathedral, Frank Penrose, Esq., F.S.A., &c., &c. " My first acquaintance with Charles Kingsley was at South Clif- ton, Lincolnshire, when I must have had some romps with him as a little boy, say in 1823 ; but I saw nothing of him from that time till he came up to Magdalene College, Cambridge, as a freshman, in October, 1838, with me, and I welcomed him as something more Undergraduate Days. 51 than a casual acquaintance. We began duly attending the Col- lege lectures, and I saw at once that he was a man of no ordinary talents. I was ultimately the best of my years in mathematics ; but, if I remember rightly, he at first held his own on those sub- jects, and it was by his own vacating the ground that the tortoise gave him the go-by in that department I was always interested in your husband's conversation, and he was, I think; the only man in Cambridge with whom I ever got any art talk. . . In the boating department he was under my command, as captain of the Magdalene Boat Club, in 1840-41 ; he never, to the best of my belief, rowed in the races of our first boat. In those of the second boat he did constantly, and was regular on practis- ing days What I remember best are his sketches of figure subjects his showing me his Cambridge English verse prize poem, the Crusades. It was unsuccessful, but it showed the latent poetic genius. " I must add his dog Muzzie, a clever, sedate-looking grey Scotch terrier, of whom he was very fond. My last shall be a negative point, and you will not think it unacceptable. I never saw him do anything that I should have any objection to tell you." " ' We were both very idle, 1 said Mr. J. Barstow, ; in those days he idler than I apparently, for he often asked me to finish his papers for him, that he might have something to present to our common tutor. He lived very much alone. I think he was fonder of the saddle than the boats ; and I saw but little of him, but I liked and admired much what I saw.' " During the spring of this year he decided on the Church as his profession instead of the law. His name had been down at Lin- coln's-inn, but circumstances and his own convictions altered his plan of life, a change which he never regretted for a moment. TO HIS MOTHER. SHELFORD, CAMBRIDGE, June 23, 1841. " I have been reading the Edinburgh Review (April, 1841), on No. 90 of the Tracts for the Times, and I wish I could transcribe every word, and send it to . Whether wilful or self-deceived, these men are Jesuits, taking the oath to the Articles with moral reservations which allow them to explain them away in senses utterly different from those of their authors. All the worst doctri- nal features of Popery Mr. Newman professes to believe in." Dr. Bateson, Master of St. John's College, Cambridge, his tutor much beloved, whose kindly reception of him when he returned 52 Charles Kingsley. as Regius Professor of Modern History in 1860, was a source of grateful joy to him, thus recalls the undergraduate, to whom his help was so important : ST. JOHN'S, December, 1875. " Charles Kingsley came to Cambridge sufficiently well pre pared. He was almost immediately made a scholar of Magdalene, and he was prizeman at the college examination of freshmen in June, 1839. " I look back with much satisfaction, and shall always reflect with pride on my engagement to serve him in the capacity of clas- sical private tutor. He was my pupil for his three first terms, from October, 1838, to Midsummer, 1839, and again from October, 1840, to the end of the Long Vacation, 1841. Being appointed in the Michaelmas term of that year an examiner for the classical tripos for the following year, for which he was to be a candidate, I was unable to continue my engagement for a longer time. " It is too true, as no one lamented more than himself, that from various causes he made but an indifferent use of the opportu- nities which his residence in Cambridge afforded him, at all events for the greater part of the time. In this respect he differs little from many of the men of poetic genius who have been under- graduates at our universities. Whether it is that our system of training and of frequent examinations, has something in it which is repulsive and uncongenial, or that their fervid and impulsive na- tures are unable to brook the restraint of our discipline, certain it is that many youths of most brilliant promise, who have lived to achieve great things in after years, have left our colleges with but little cause to congratulate themselves on time well spent or talents well employed. My own relations with Charles Kingsley in those early days were always agreeable, although I was unable to induce him to apply himself with any energy to his classical work, until quite the close of his undergraduate career. Then, indeed, he seemed an altered man. With wonderful ability and surprising quickness during the last few months he made rapid strides, and J can well remember admiring his papers, more espe- cially those of Latin prose and verse, which he sent up for the classical tripos. They exhibited excellence and power, due far more to native talent than to industry or study, and raised him to a place in the first class of the classical tripos. For after all his degree was a good one, as senior optime in mathematics, and a first class in classics ; but I must add that it was nothing compared to what might have been attained by a man of 'his powers. If he had worked as an undergraduate with only a small portion of the industry and energy which he exhibited after he left Cambridge, there was no academic distinction that would not have been within his reach." Incident of the Examination. 53 An incident occurred during the examination which was much talked of at the time, and is recalled by the Rev. Rigby Kew- ley, now Rector of Baldock, and Honorary Canon of Rochester : " On one morning but one question remained of a paper on mechanics, ' Describe a Common Pump.' Of the internal ma- chinery of a pump Kingsley was unable to render a scientific ac- count, but of the outside his vivid imagination supplied a picture which his facile pencil soon transferred to paper. Under the head- ing, ' Describe a Pump,' he drew a grand village pump in the midst of a broad green, and opposite the porch of an ancient church. By the side of the pump stood, in all pomposity of his office, the village beadle, with uniform and baton. Around were women and children of all ages, shapes, dress, and sizes, each car- rying a crock, a jug, a bucket, or some vessel large or small. These were drawn with considerable power, and the whole was lighted up with his deep vein of humor ; while around the pump itself was a huge chain, padlocked, and surrounded by a notice, ' This pump locked during Divine service.' This, Kingsley sent up to the examiner as his answer to the question. I know not whether he got any marks for it ; but it was so clever that the moderator of the year had it framed and hung up on the wall of his room." He left Cambridge in February, much exhausted in body and mind, from having, by six months' desperate reading, done work which should have been spread over his three years of University life. He came out in honors, first-class in classics, and senior opt. in mathematics. CHAPTER IV. 1842 1843. AGED 23-24. Reads for Holy Orders Correspondence Ordained Deacon Settles at Eversley Parish Work Letters. DURING the spring, while slowly recovering the exhaustion of his degree and reading for Holy Orders, he had the offer of two cura- cies in Hampshire, at Kingsley and Eversley. He chose the latter. CHELSEA, April, 1842. " . . .1 hope to be ordained in July to the Curacy of Evers- ley in Hampshire. In the midst of lovely scenery rich but not exciting. And you will be with me in your thoughts, in my village visits, and my moorland walks, when I am drinking in from man, and nature, the good and the beautiful, while I purge in my voca- tion the evil, and raise up the falling and the faint. Can I not do it ? for have I not fainted and fallen ? And do I not know too well the bitterness that is from without, as well as the more dire one, from within .... My reading at present must be exclu- sively confined to divinity not so yours. You may still range freely among the meadows of the beautiful, while I am mining in the deep mountains of the true. And so it should be through life. The woman's part should be to cultivate the affections and the imagination ; the man's the intellect of their common soul. She must teach him how to apply his knowledge to men's hearts. He must teach her how to arrange that knowledge into practical and theoretical forms. In this the woman has the nobler task. But there is one more noble still to find out from the notices of the universe, and the revelation of God, and the uninspired truth which he has made his creatures to declare even in heathen lands, to find out from all these the pure mind of God, and the eternal laws whereby He made us and governs us. This is true science ; and this, as we discover it, will replace phantoms by reality, and that darkling taper of ' common sense,' by the glorious light of cer- The Man and the Woman. 55 tainty. For this the man must bring his philosophy, and the woman her exquisite sense of the beautiful and the just, and all hearts and all lands shall lie open before them, as they gradually know them one by one ! That glorious word know it is God's attribute, and includes in itself all others. Love truth all are parts of that awful power of knowing, at a single glance, from and to all eternity, what a thing is in its essence, its properties, and its relations to the whole universe through all time ! I feel awe- struck whenever I see that word used rightly, and I never, if I can remember, use it myself of myself. But to us, as to dying Schiller, hereafter many things will become plain and clear. And this is no dream of romance. It is what many have approximated to before us, with less intellectual, and no greater spiritual advantages, and strange to say, some of them alone buried in cloisters seldom in studies often some, worst of all, worn down by the hourly misery of a wife who neither loved them nor felt for them : but to those who, through love, have once caught a glimpse of ' the great secret,' what may they not do by it in years of love and thought ? For this heavenly knowledge is not, as boyish enthusiasts fancy, the work of a day or a year. Youth will pass before we shall have made anything but a slight approximation to it, and having handed down to our children the little wisdom we shall have amassed while here, we shall commend them to God, and enter eternity very little wiser in proportion to the universal knowledge than we were when we left it at our birth. " But still if our plans are not for time, but for eternity, our knowledge, and therefore our love to God, to each other, to our- selves, to everything, will progress for ever. " And this scheme is practical too for the attainment of this heavenly wisdom requires neither ecstasy nor revelation, but prayer, and watchfulness, and observation, and deep and solemn thought. And two great rules for its attainment are simple enough ' Never forget what and where you are ;' and, 'Grieve not the Holy Spirit.' And it is not only compatible with our duties as priests of the Eternal, but includes them as one of the means to its attainment, for 'if a man will do God's will, he shall know of the doctrine, whether it be of God.' They do not speak without scriptural as well as theoretical foundation, who think that we may hereafter bii called upon to preach God to other worlds beside our own ; and if this be so, does not the acquirement of this knowledge become a duty? Knowledge and love are reciprocal. He who loves knows. He who knows loves. Saint John is the example of the first, Saint Paul of the second." In the interval between Cambridge and his curacy he began to write the life of St. Elizabeth of Hungary, his ideal saint, not 56 Charles Kings ley. intending it for publication, but as a gift book to his wife on his marriage day, if that day should ever come. May, 1842. "When it is finished," he says, "I have another work of the same kind to begin a life of St. Theresa as a specimen of the dreamy mystic, in contrast with the working ascetic, St. Elizabeth, and to contrast the celibate saint with the married one. " For this we must read Tersteegen, Jacob Behmen, Madame Guyon, Alban Butler, Fenelon, some of Origen and Clemens Alex- andtinus, and Coleridge's 'Aids,' &c., also some of Kant, and a German history of mysticism. In order to understand puritanism and evangelicalism, we must thoroughly understand asceticism and mysticism, which have to be eradicated from them in preaching our * Message.' " June 8, 1842. "Amuse yourself get poetry and read it I have a book called 'Tennyson's Poems/ the most beautiful poetry of the last fifteen years .... Shall I send it you ? . " Tell me if I am ever obscure in my expressions, and do not fancy that if I am obscure I am therefore deep. If I were really deep, all the world would understand, though they might not appre- ciate. The perfectly popular style is the perfectly scientific one. Tell me then when I am obscure, for to me an obscurity is a rea- son for suspecting a fallacy .... Pray simply, ' O God lead us into all Truth, and make us like little children.' Do not repine when you feel no pleasure in the offices of religion, the change is in you, and not in God, and the fact of your being sensible of, and sorry for this change, shows that it is caused by no cessation of your love to God or his grace to you but by physical weakness." Early in July he went to Farnham for his ordination. From whence he writes : July 7, 1842. \ " I have finished the first day's examination better than I ex- pected, and though I was so nervous at first that I could hardly stand, I recovered myself tolerably afterwards. . . ." " I shall hope to do tolerably to-morrow, and the greater part ot Saturday I shall give up to prayer and meditation, and fasting." FARNHAM, July 10, 1842. ". . . God's mercies are new every morning. Here I am waiting to be admitted in a few hours to His holy ministry, and take refuge for ever in His Temple ! .... Yet it is an awful thing ! for we promise, virtually at least, to renounce this day not Preparation for Ordination. 57 only the devil and the flesh, but the world ; to do nothing, know nothing, which shall not tend to the furtherance of God's Kingdom, or the assimilation of ourselves to the Great Ideal, and to our proper place and rank in the great system whose harmony we are to labor to restore. And can we restore harmony to the Church, unless we have restored it to ourselves ? If our own souls are dis- cords to the celestial key, the immutable symphonies which revela- tion gives us to hear, can we restore the concord of the perplexed vibrations round us? .... We must be holy ! and to be holy we must believe rightly as well as pray earnestly. We must bring to the well of truth a spirit purified from all previous fancies, all medicines of our own which may adulterate the water of life ! We must take of that and not of our own, and show it to mankind. It is that glory in the beauty of truth, which was my idol, even when I did not practise or even know truth. But now that I know it, I can practise it, and carry it out into the details of life ; now I am happy ; now I am safe ! " But back ! back to the thought that in a few hours my whole soul will be waiting silently for the seals of admission to God's ser- vice, of which honor I dare hardly think myself worthy, while I dare not think that God would allow me to enter on them unwor- thily .... Night and morning, for months, my prayer has been : ' O God if I am not worthy ; if my sin in leading souls from Thee is still unpardoned ; if I am desiring to be a deacon not wholly for the sake of serving Thee ; if it be necessary to show me my weakness and the holiness of Thy office still more strongly, O God reject me ! ' and while I shuddered for your sake at the idea of a repulse, I prayed to be repulsed if it were necessary, ami in- cluded that in the meaning of my petition ' Thy will be done.' After this what can I consider my acceptance but as a proof that I have not sinned too deeply for escape ! as an earnest that God has heard my prayer and will bless my ministry, and enable me not only to raise myself, but to lift others with me ! Oh ! my soul, my body, my intellect, my very love, I dedicate you all to God ! And not mine only .... to be an example and an instrument of holiness before the Lord for ever, to dwell in His courts, to purge His Temple, to feed His sheep, to carry the lambs and bear them to that foster-mother whose love never fails, whose eye never sleeps, the Bride of God, the Church of Christ !....! would have written when I knew of my success yesterday, but there was no town post. "Direct to me next at Eversley ! . . . ." And now Charles Kingsley settled down, at the age of twenty- three, in Eversley ; little thinking it would be his home for thirty- three years. 58 Charles Kings ley. The parish of Eversley (Aper's lea) was mostly common land when he became curate, divided into three hamlets, each standing on its own little green, surrounded by the moorland, with young forests of self-sown fir trees cropping up in every direction. The population was very scattered "heth croppers" from time imme- morial and poachers by instinct and heritage. It was on the borders of Old Windsor Forest, the boundaries of which reached the adjoining parish of Finchampstead ; and the old men could remember the time when many a royal deer used to stray into Eversley parish. Every man in those days could snare his hare, and catch a good dinner of fish in waters not then strictly pre- served ; and the old women would tell of the handsome muffs and tippets, made of pheasants' feathers, not bought with silver, which they wore in their young days. Eversley Manor, it is said, was granted to the monks of West- minster by a charter from Edward the Confessor. We know from the charter that there was then a church at Eversley. William the Conqueror renewed the grant of the manor. It appears still to have belonged to the church of Westminster, in 1280 ; but it must ere long have passed from its possession, for Bishop Woodlock of Winchester, in the early years of the four- teenth century, instituted a priest to Eversley, on the presentation of Nicholas Heigheman. The chancel of the church dates from about the time of Henry VII. The great peculiarity of the parish are the fir trees, of which there are three fine specimens on the rectory lawn. For the first six weeks of his curate life he lived in the rectory house, and the following letter contained a sketch of the lawn and glebe from the drawing-room windows and a plan of the room. EVERSLEY RECTORY, July 14, 1842. " Can you understand my sketch ? I am no drawer of trees, but the view is beautiful. The ground slopes upward from the windows to a sunk fence and road, without banks or hedges, and rises in the furze hill in the drawing, which hill is perfectly beauti- ful in light and shade, and color .... Behind the acacia on the lawn you get the first glimpse of the fir-forests and moors, of which five-sixths of my parish consist. Those delicious self-sown firs ! Every step I wander they whisper to me of you, the delicious past melting into the more delicious future. ' What has been, shall be,' they say ! I went the other day to Bramshill Park, the home Daily Duties. 59 of the seigneur du pays here, Sir John Cope. And there I saw the very tree where an ancestor of mine, Archbishop Abbot, in James the First's time, shot the keeper by accident ! I sat under the tree, and it all seemed to me like a present reality. I could fancy the noble old man, very different then from his picture as it hangs in the dining room at Chelsea. I could fancy the deer sweeping by, and the rattle of the cross-bow, and the white splinters spark- ling off the fated tree as the bolt glanced and turned and then the death shriek, and the stagger, and the heavy fall of the sturdy forester and the bow dropping from the old man's hands, and the blood sinking to his heart in one chilling rush, and his glorious features collapsing into that look of changeless and rigid sorrow, which haunted me in the portrait upon the wall in childhood. He never smiled again ! And that solemn form always spoke to me, though I did not then know what it meant. It is strange that this is almost the only portrait saved in the wreck of our family.* As I sat under the tree, there seemed to be a solemn and remorseful moan in the long branches, mixed with the airy whisper of the lighter leaves that told of present as well as past ! " I go to the school every day. and teach as long as I can stand the heat and smell. The few children are in a room ten feet square and seven feet high. I am going after dinner to read to an old woman of 87; so you see I have begun. This is a plan of my room. It is a large, low, front room, with a light paper and drab curtains, and a large bow window, where I sit, poor me, solitary in one corner." Before his coming, the church services had been utterly neg- lected. It sometimes happened that when the rector had a cold, or some trifling ailment, he would send the clerk to the church door at eleven, to inform the few who attended that there would be no service. In consequence the ale-houses were full on Sunday and the church empty, and it was up-hill work getting a congrega- tion together. July 1 7th was the young curate's first day of public ministration in Eversley Church, and he felt it deeply. * This picture of Archbishop Abbot, by Vandyke, came into the family through William Kingsley, born 1626, Gentleman of the Privy Chamber to Charles II. son of William Kingsley, Archdeacon of Canterbury, and Damaris his wife, who was niece to Robertas Abbot, Archbishop of Canterbury. The archbishop was a great friend of Lord Zouche, then owner of Bramshill Park, and while on a visit to him killed the keeper by accident with a bolt from his cross-bow aimed at a stag. He was suspended for a time, and, it is said, never smiled again. 60 Charles Kings ley. "I was not nervous," he says, "for I had prayed before going into the desk that I might remember that I was not speaking on my own authority, but on God's, and the feeling that the responsi- bility (if I may so speak) was on God and not on me quieted the weak terror I have of offending people." EVERSLEY, Aug., 1842. " My views of poverty are very strange. Had I been a Haroun Alraschid, with every sense ' lapped in Elysium,' I could have en- joyed all. The man who cannot, enjoy, cannot be healthy, and cannot be self-denying. But had L been a prairie hunter, cold and nakedness and toil would have been no evils to me. I could have enjoyed that which was given me, and never, I believe firmly, re- membered that there were greater sensual pleasures in life." " Never depreciate, according to the foolish way of sentimental- ists, the brotherly love of men Remember the sanc- tity attached to it in Scripture, and believe that in this, as in other things, the man is the stronger vessel. There is something awful ! spiritual, in men's love for each other ! It requires not even the presence of the beloved brother or friend it requires no expres- sion 1 it is too deep for emotion. It goes on its way like a mighty unconscious stream, that brother's love, and sacrifices itself often for a man with whom it never exchanges a word. I could tell you a thousand stories I will some day to prove the mysterious abysses of a man's heart God's image ! Here is one. There were two Dover coachmen twins. One drove the up coach the other the down for thirty years, so that they never saw each other night or day, but when they whirled past once a day, each on his box, on their restless homeless errand. They never noticed each other in passing but by the jerk of the wrist, which is the cant sign of recognition among horse-driving men. Brutes ! the senti- mentalist will say for they were both fat, jolly men 1 And when one of them died, the other took to his bed in a few days, in per- fect health, and pined away and died also ! His words were ' Now Tom is gone, I can't stay.' Was not that spirit love? That story always makes me ready to cry. And cases as strong are common." EVERSLEY, 1842. " . . . The body the temple of the Living God There has always seemed to me something impious in the neglect of personal health, strength, and beauty, which the religious and sometimes clergymen of this day affect. It is very often a mere form of laziness and untidiness !....! should be ashamed of being weak. I could not do half the little good I do do here, if Physical Exercise. 61 it were not for that strength and activity which some consider coarse and degrading. Many clergymen would half kill themselves if they did what I do. And though they might walk about as much, they would neglect exercise of the arms and chest, and be- come dyspeptic or consumptive. Do not be afraid of my over- working myself. If I stop, I go down. I must work. .... How merciful God has been in turning all the strength and hardi- hood I gained in snipe shooting and hunting, and rowing and jack- fishing in those magnificent fens to His work ! While I was follow- ing my own fancies He was preparing me for His work. I could wish I were an Apollo for His sake ! Strange idea, yet it seems so harmonious to me ! ... Is it not an awful proof that mat- ter is not necessarily evil, that we shall be clothed in bodies even in our perfect state? Think of that! ... It seems all so harmonious to me. It is all so full of God, that I see no inconsis- tency in making my sermons while I am cutting wood, and no ' bizarrerie ' in talking one moment to one man about the points of a horse, and the next moment to another about the mercy of God to sinners. I try to catch men by their leading ideas, and so draw them off insensibly to my leading idea. And so I find shall I tell you? you know it is not vanity, but the wish to make you happy in the thought that God is really permitting me to do His work 1 find that dissent is decreasing ; people are coming to church who never went anywhere before ; that I am loved and respected or rather that God's ministry, which has been here deservedly despised, alas! is beginning to be respected ; and above all, that the young wild fellows who are considered as hopeless by most men, because most men are what they call 'spoony Methodists,' i. e., effeminate ascet- ics, dare not gainsay, but rather look up to a man who they see is their superior, if he chose to exert his power in physical as well as intellectual skill. " So 1 am trying to become (harmoniously and consistently) all things to all men, and I thank God for the versatile mind He has given me. But I am becoming egotistical." This was one secret of his influence in Eversley : he could swing a flj.il with the threshers in the barn, turn his swathe with the mow- ers in the meadow, pitch hay with the hay-makers in the pasture. From knowing every fox earth on the moor, the " reedy hover" of the pike, the still hole where the chub lay, he had always a word in sympathy for the huntsman or the old poacher. With the far- mer he discussed the rotation of crops, and with the laborer the science of hedging and ditching. And yet while he seemed to ask for information, he unconsciously gave more than he received. At this time Mr. Maurice's "Kingdom of Christ" vvaf put into 62 Charles Kings ley. his hands. It was in a great crisis of his life, and he always said that he owed more to that book than to any he had ever read, for by it his views were cleared and his faith established. It may seem strange to some that Carlyle's works should have laid the foundation to which Coleridge's " Aids " and Maurice's works were the superstructure : but so it was. The friend who gave them all to him little thought that Chevalier Bunsen, in his "Hyppolytus" at a later period would strike the point of contact between these three authors which explains their effect on Charles Kingsley's mind. Circumstances now caused a long break in this correspondence, but the faith and patience with which the trial was met may be seen in these parting words, or perhaps still more in some rules, intended for one eye only, but from which extracts have been made, in the hope they may help others who have the same thorny road to travel, without such a friend and guide. EVERSLEY, August, 1842. " . . . Though there may be clouds between us now, yet they are safe and dry, free from storm and rains our parted state now is quiet grey weather, under which all tender things will spring up and grow, beneath the warm damp air, till they are ready for the next burst of sunshine to hurry them into blossom and fruit. Let us plant and rear all tender thoughts, knowing surely that those who sow in tears shall reap in joy. ... I can under- stand people's losing by trusting too little to God, but I cannot un- derstand any one's losing by trusting too much to Him ! ." " There are two ways of looking at every occurrence a bright and a dark side. Two modes of action Which is most worthy of a rational being, a Christian and a friend? It is absurd, as a rational being, to torture one's self unnecessarily. It is inconsis- tent in a Christian to see God's wrath, rather than His mercy in everything How to avoid this morbidity of mind by prayer. ' Resist the devil and he will flee from you.' By turn- ing your mind from the dark view. Never begin to look darkly at a subject, without checking yourself and saying, ' Is there not a bright side to this ? Has not God promised the bright side to me ? Is not my happiness in my own power ? Do I not know that I am ruining my mind and endangering the happiness of those dear to me -by looking at the wrong side ? ' Make this your habit. Every gift of God is good, and given for our happiness ; and we sin if we abuse it. To use our fancy to our own misery is to abuse it and to sin the realm of the possible was given to man to hope, Parting Words. 63 and not to fear in If (in sorrow) the thought strikes you that we are punished for our sins mourn for them, and not for the happiness which they have prevented. Rather thank God that He has stopped us in time, and remember His promises of restor- ing us if we profit by his chastisement. "In cases of love to God and working to His glory in the first and second intention read Taylor's ' Holy Living.' But eschew his Popish fallacy about duties as different from perfections. Every step in love and to God, and devotion to Him is a duty ! That^ doctrine was invented to allow mankind to exist, while a few self- conceited shut themselves up in a state of unnatural celibacy and morbid excitement, in order to avoid their duty, instead of doing it. Avoid the Fathers, after Origen (including him), on this ac- count their theories are not universal .... "... We may think too much ! There is such a thing as mystifying one's self! Mystifying one's self is thinking a dozen thoughts in order to get to a conclusion, to which one might arrive by thinking one ; getting at ideas by an unnecessarily subtle and circuitous path : then, because one has been through many steps, one fancies one has gone deep. This is one form of want of sim- plicity. This is not being like a little child, any more than analys- ing one's own feelings. A child goes straight to its point, and it hardly knows why. When you have done a thing, leave it alone. You mystify yourself after the idea, not before. Second thoughts may be best before action they are folly after action, unless we find we have sinned. The consistent Christian should have no second thoughts,- but do good by the first impulse. How few at- tain to this. I do not object to subtlety of thought : but it is dan- gerous for one who has no scientific guide of logic, &c. " Aim at depth. A thought is deep in proportion as it is near God. You may be subtle, and only perceive a trifling property of the subject, which others do not. To be deep, you must see the subject in its relation to God yourself and the universe; and the more harmonious and simple it seems, the nearer God and the deeper it is. All the deep things of God are bright for God is light. The religion of terror is the most superficial of all religions. God's arbitrary will, and almighty power, may seem dark by them- selves, though deep, as they do to the Calvinists ; but that is because they do not involve His moral character. Join them witli the fact that He is a God of mercy as well as justice ; remember that His essence is love ; and the thunder-cloud will blaze with dewy gold, full of soft rain, and pure light ! " Again : remember that habit, more than reason, will cure one both of mystifying subtlety and morbid fear ; and remember that habits are a series of individual voluntary actions, continued till they become involuntary. One would not wish to become good by habit, as the Aristotle-loving Tractarians do; but one must ac- 64 Charles Kings ley. quire tones of inind by habit, in cases in which intellectual, not moral obliquity, or constitutional ill-health is the cause of failure. "Some minds are too 'subjective.' What I mean is, that they may devote themselves too much to the subject of self and man- kind. Now man is not 'the noblest study of man.' (What lies the trashy poets of Pope and Johnson's age tell, which are taken as gospel, and acted upon, because the idol said so !) God is the noblest study of man. He is the only study fit for a woman de- voted to Him. And Him you can study in three ways. " i st. From His dealings in History. This is th^real Philosophy of History. Read Arnold's 'Lectures on Modern History.' (Oh! why did that noblest of men die ? God have mercy upon England ! He takes the shining lights from us, for our National sins !) And read as he tells us to read, not to-study man a la Rochefoucauld, but God a la David ! " 2nd. From His image as developed in Christ the ideal, and in all good men great good men David, Moses, St. Paul, Hooker, the four Oxford martyrs, Luther, Taylor, Howard. Read about that glorious Luther ! and like him strive all your life to free men from the bondage of custom and self, the two great elements of the world that lieth in wickedness ! Read Maurice for this purpose, and Carlyle. "3rd. From His works. Study nature not scientifically that would take eternity, to do it so as to reap much moral good from it. Superficial physical science is the devil's spade, with which he loosens the roots of the trees prepared for the burning ! Do not study matter for its own sake, but as the countenance of God ! Try to extract every line of beauty, every association, every moral reflection, every inexpressible feeling from it. Study the forms and colors of leaves and flowers, and the growth and habits of plants ; not to classify them, but to admire them and adore God. Study the sky ! Study water ! Study trees ! Study the sounds and scents of nature ! Study all these, as beautiful in themselves, in order to re-combine the elements of beauty ; next, as allegories and examples from whence moral reflections may be drawn ; next, as types of certain tones of feeling, &c. ; but remain (yourself) in God-dependence, superior to them. Learn what feelings they ex- press, but do not let them mould the tone of your mind ; else by allowing a melancholy day to make you melancholy, you worship the creature more than the Creator. No sight but has some beauty and harmony ! "Read geology Buckland's ' Bridgewater Treatise' and you will rise up awe-struck and cling to God ! " Study the human figure, both as intrinsically beautiful and as expressing mind. It only expresses the broad natural childish emotions, which are just what you want to return to. Study ' natural language' I mean the 'language of attitude.' It is an inexhaust- Parting Words. 65 ible source of knowledge and delight, and enables one human being to understand another so perfectly. Draw, -learn to draw and paint figures. No one with such freedom of touch in landscape and perception of physical beauty requires anything but a few sim- ple rules, and some common attention to attitudes, to draw ex- quisitely. If you can command your hand in drawing a tree, you can in drawing a face. Perfect your coloring .... It will keep your mind employed on objective studies, and save you from morbid introversion of mind brooding over fallen man. It will increase your perception of beauty, and thereby your own harmony of soul and love to God ! "Practise music I am going to learn myself, merely to be able to look after my singers .... Music is such a vent for the feelings "Study medicine .... I am studying it .... Make yourself thoroughly acquainted with the wages, wants, and habits, and prevalent diseases of the poor, wherever you go. "Let your mind freely forth. Only turn it inwards at prayer time, to recollect sins of which you were conscious at the time, not to look for fresh ones. They are provided against by prayer for pardon of unintentional sins. What wisdom in our Church ! She knew that if she allowed sin hunting, people would fancy, like some Dissenters, that pretending everything they had done was sin- ful, was a sign of holiness ! " Let your studies, then, be objective entirely. Look forward to the future with hope. Build castles, if you will, but only bright ones, and not too many better to live in the Past. We cannot help thanking God for that ! Blessed Past ! Has not God led us like sheep through the desert ? Think of all He has done for us. Be happy Weep, but let them be tears of thankfulness. " Do not be too solicitous to find deep meanings in men's words. Most men do, and all. men ought to mean only what is evident at first sight on their books (unless they be inspired or write for a private eye). This is the great danger of such men as . Novalis, that you never know how much he means. Beware of subtlety again. The quantity of sounding nonsense in the world is incredible ! If you wish to be like a little child, study what a little child could understand nature ; and do what a little child could do love. " Use your senses much, and your mind little. Feed on Nature, and do not try to understand it. It will digest itself. It did so when you were a baby the first time ! Look round you much. Think little and read less ! Never give way to reveries. Have always some employment in your hands When you are doing nothing at night, pray and praise ! " See how much a day can do ! I have since nine this morning, 5 66 Charles Kingsley. cut wood for an hour; spent an hour and more in prayer and humiliation, and thereby established a chastened but happy tone, which lasts till now; written six or seven pages of a difficult part of my essay ; taught in the school ; thought over many things while walking ; gone round two-thirds of the parish visiting and doctoring ; and written all this. Such days are lives and happy ones. One has no time to be miserable, and one is ashamed to invent little sorrows for one's self while one is trying to relieve such grief in others as would kill us, if we gave way or fancied about them ! " Pray over every truth, for though the renewed heart is not ' desperately wicked,' it is quite ' deceitful ' enough to become so, if God be forgotten a moment ! " Keep a common-place book, and put into it, not only facts and thoughts, but observations on form, and color, and nature, and little sketches, even to the form of beautiful leaves. They will all have their charm, all do their work in consolidating your ideas. Put everything into it. ... Strive to put every idea into a tangible form, and write it down. Distrust every idea which you cannot put into words ; or rather distrust your own conception of it. Not so with feelings. Therefore write much. Try to put everything in its place in the great system . . . seeing the realities of Heaven and Earth." CHAPTER V. 18421843. AGED 23-24. Curate Life Letter from Colonel W. Brighter Prospects Correspondence Renewed Promise of Preferment Leaves Eversley. A YEAR passed by of silence and self-discipline, hard reading and parish duties. That sorrow was doing its work, his own words to his parents will testify. ". . . Christianity heightens as well as deepens the human as well as the divine affections. 1 am happy, for the less hope, the more faith God knows what is best for us, and very lucky that He does, for I am sure we do not. Continual resignation, at last I begin to find, is the secret of continual strength. ' Daily dying] as Behnien interprets it, is the path of daily living. . . ." His mother now paid him a visit, and she gives this account of his surroundings : EVERSLEY, 1842. " Here I am, in a humble cottage in the corner of a sunny green, a little garden, whose flower-beds are surrounded with tall and aged box, is fenced in from the path with a low white paling. The green is gay with dogs, and pigs, and geese, some running frolic races, and others swimming in triumph in a glassy pond, where they are safe from all intruders. Every object around is either picturesque or happy, fulfilling in their different natures the end of their creation Surely it must have been the especial providence of God that directed us to this place ! and the thought of this brightens every trial. There is independence in every good sense of the word, and yet no loneliness. The family at the Brewery are devoted to Charles, and think they cannot do enough for him. The dear old man says he has been praying for years for such a time to come, and that Eversley has not been so blessed for sixty years. Need I say rejoice with me. Here I sit surrounded by your books and little things which speak of you." To his college friend, Peter A. L. H. Wood, Esq. (now Rector of Copford, Essex), he writes to beg for a visit in his solitude. 68 Charles Kings ley. "PETER! EVERSLEY, August 5, 1842. " Whether in the glaring saloons of Almack's, or making love in the equestrian stateliness of the park, or the luxurious recum- bency of the ottoman, whether breakfasting at one, or going to bed at three, thou art still Peter, the beloved of my youth, the staff of my academic days, the regret of my parochial retirement ! Peter ! I am alone ! Around me are the everlasting hills, and the ever- lasting bores of the country ! My parish is peculiar for nothing but want of houses and abundance of peat bogs ; my parishioners remarkable only for aversion to education, and a predilection for fat bacon. I am wasting my sweetness on the desert air I say my sweetness, for I have given up smoking, and smell no more. Oh, Peter, Peter, come down and see me ! Oh that I could behold your head towering above the fir-trees that surround my lonely dwelling. Take pity on me ! I am ' like a kitten in the washhouse copper with the lid on ! ' And, Peter, prevail on some of your friends here to give me a day's trout-fishing, for my hand is getting out of practice. But, Peter, I am, considering the oscillations and perplex circumgurgitations of this piece-meal world, an improved man. I am much more happy, much more comfortable, reading, thinking, and doing my duty much more than ever I did before in my life. Therefore I am not discontented with my situation, or regretful that I buried my first-class in a country curacy, like the girl who shut herself up in a band-box on her wedding night (ride Rogers' s 'Italy.') And my lamentations are not general (for I do not want an inundation of the froth and tide-wash of Babylon the Great), but particular, being solely excited by want of thee, oh Peter, who art very pleasant to me, and wouldst be more so if thou wouldst come and eat my mutton, and drink my wine, and admire my sermons, some Sunday at Eversley. " Your faithful friend, " BOANERGES ROAR-AT-THE-CLODS." His friend responded to the call. " I paid him a visit," he says, " at Eversley, where he lived in a thatched cottage. So roughly was he lodged that I recollect taking him some game, which was dried to a cinder in the cooking and quite spoiled ; but he was as happy as if he were in a palace. . . ." And now the young curate, who had gained the love and respect of the parish, was rewarded by brigher prospects. He had little society, during his first year of curate life, except in the parish and at Sandhurst, where he had one or two friends in the Senior de- partment of the Military College. One of these friends thus de- scribes their intercourse at this time : Brighter Days. 69 FROM COLONEL W. "My memory often runs back to the days at Sandhurst, wher. I used to meet dear Kingsley continually in his little curate ro< 1;, at the corner of the Green at Eversley ; when he told me of jis attachment to one whom he feared he should never be able to marry, and that he supposed that he should live the rest of his life reading old books, and knocking his head against the ceiling of his room, like a caged bird. And well I remember a particular Sun- day, when walking with him to his church in the afternoon, having dined with him at mid-day. It was a lovely afternoon in the au- tumn passing through the corn in sheaf, the bells ringing, and people, young and old, gathering together near the church. He, looking down on the Rectory house, said to me " 'Oh ! how hard it is to go through life without wishing for the goods of others ! Look at the Rectory ! Oh, if I were there with a wife, how happy,' &c. God seemed to hear the desire of his creature, for when the next year's corn was in sheaf, you were with him at the Rectory. And he has told me in after years that his life with you was one of constantly increasing love. I called at his cottage one morning, and I found him almost beside himself, stamp- ing his things into a portmanteau. ' What is the matter, dear Kingsley ? ' ' 1 am engaged. I am going to see her now to-day? I was so glad, and left him to his joy. <( My tears will come to my eyes in writing these lines, for I loved Kingsley as well as man can love man. I have only one lit- tle scratch of a drawing of his. I have many pleasant^ reminiscen- ces, sparks of his large mind, as in friendly chat we would sit and draw together, or walk by river side and think of Nature, and all one's strongest desires, for a heart to share every thought and sight. And now this picture in life is over " In September, 1843, through the kindness of Lord Sidney Os- borne, a relation of his future wife, Lord Portman promised to give Charles Kingsley one of the first small livings that fell to his gift, and in the mean time advised him to apply for the curacy of Pim- perne, near Blandford, which with a good house would be vacant in the follosving spring. This being secured, Bishop Simmer gave permission for his resigning the curacy of Eversley at Christmas. The correspondence, which had dropped for a year, was now resumed. EVERSLEY CROSS, October, 1843. " I am getting very strong; and have been threshing wheat a good deal these last two wet days, which is splendid exercise. I look forward to working in the garden at Pimperne. What a place for summer nights ! We will go and sit in the church sometimes 70 Charles Kings ley. on summer nights, too .... but I am not fond, you know, of going into churches to pray. We must go up into the chase in the evenings, and pray there with nothing but God's cloud temple between us and His heaven ! And His choir of small birds and night crickets and booming beetles, and all happy things who praise Him all night long ! And in the still summer noon, too, with the lazy-paced clouds above, and the distant sheep-bell, and the bee humming in the beds of thyme, and one bird making the hollies ring a moment, and then all still hushed awe-bound, as the great thunderclouds slide up from the far south ! Then, there to praise God ! Ay, even when the heaven is black with wind, the thunder crackling over our heads, then to join in the paean of the storm-spirits to Him whose pageant of power passes over the earth and harms us not in its mercy ! " I once scandalized a man who had been sentimentalising about Gothic aisles, by telling him that all agreed that they were built in imitation of the glades of forest trees, with branches interlacing overhead ! and that I liked God's work better than man's ! Jn the Cathedral, we worship alone and the place is dumb, or speaks only to us, raising a semi-selfish emotion ; that is, having its beginning and end in us. In the forest, every branch and leaf, with the thou- sand living things which cluster on them, all worship with us ! " EVERSLEY, November, 1843. " . . . As to self-improvement, the true Catholic mode of learning is,- to ' prove all things,' as far as we can without sin or the danger of it, and 'hold fast that which is good.' Let us never be afraid of trying anything, though copied from people of different opinions to our own. And let us never, never be afraid of changing our opinions not our knowledge. If we should find fasting unsuc- cessful, we will simply give it up and so on with all practices and opinions not expressed in Scripture. That is a form of pride which haunts the more powerful minds, the unwillingness to go back from one's declared opinion, but it is not found in great child- like geniuses. Fools may hold fast to their scanty stock through life, and we must be very cautious in drawing them from it for where can they supply its place ? Therefore, there is no more unloving, heartless man-murderer, than the man who goes about trying, for the display of his own ' talents ' (a word I dislike), to shake people in their belief, even when that belief is not quite sound. Better believe in ghosts 'with no heads and jackboots on, 1 like my Eversley people, than believe in nothing but self ! Therefore Maurice's loving, Christian rule is, 'Never take away from a man even the shadow of a spiritual truth, unless you can give him substance in return.' Therefore, let those less educated or less holy minds, who have found some truth, hold it in peace Wandering Minstrels. 71 not tear up all their belief along with their prejudices, tares and wheat together, as the Tractarians are doing to the poor of England now ! But those who discover much truth ay, who make perhaps only one truth really their own, a living integral law of their spirits must, in developing it, pass through many changes of opinion. They must rise and fall Back, and rise higher again, and fall and rise again, till they reach the level table-land of truth, and can look down on men toiling and stumbling in the misty valleys, where the rising sunlight has not yet found its way. Or perhaps, their own minds will oscillate, like a pendulum, between Dualism and Uni- tarianism, or High Church and Low Church, until the oscillations become gradually smaller, and subside into the Rest of Truth ! the peace which passes understanding ! I fancy it is a law, that the greater the mind, the stronger the heart, the larger will ihe oscillations be, but the less they will be visible to the world, be- cause the wise man will not act outwardly upon his opinions until they ha.ve become knowledge, and his mind is in a state of rest. This 1 think the true, the only doctrine of Reserve reserve of our own fancies, not of immutable truth. ". . . People smile at the 'enthusiasm of youth ' that enthusiasm which they themselves secretly look back at with a sigh, perhaps unconscious that it is partly their own fault that they ever lost it. Is it not strange, that the only persons who appear to me to carry to the grave with them the joyousness, simplicity, and lovingness and trust of children, are the most exalted Chris- tians ? Think of St. John, carried into the Church at Smyrna, at the age of ninety-nine, and with his dying breath repeating the same simple words, ' Little children, love one another.' " EVERSLEY, October 27. " . . . I have been making a fool of myself for the last ten minutes, according to" the world's notion of folly, for there have been some strolling fiddlers under the window, and I have been listening and crying like a child. Some quick music is so inex- pressibly mournful. It seems just like one's own feelings exulta- tion and action, with the remembrance of past sorrow wailing up, yet without bitterness, tender in its shrillness, through the mingled tide of present joy ; and the notes seem thoughts thoughts pure of words, and a spirit seems to call to me in them and cry, ' Hast thou not felt all this?' And I start when I find myself answering unconsciously, ' Yes, yes, I know it all ! ' Surely we are a part of all we see and hear!' And then the harmony thickens, and all distinct sound is pressed together and absorbed in a confused paroxysm of delight, where still the female treble and the male base are distinct for a moment, and then one again absorbed into each other's being sweetened and strengthened by each 72 Charles Kings ley. other's melody .... why should I not cry ? Those men have unconsciously told me my own tale ! why should 1 not love them and pray for them ? Are they not my benefactors ? Have they not given me more than food and drink ? Let us never de- spise the wandering minstrel. He is an unconscious witness for God's harmony a preacher of the world-music the power of sweet sounds, which is a link between every age and race the language which all can understand, though few can speak. And who knows what tender thoughts his own sweet music stirs within him, though he eat in pot-houses, and sleep in barns ! Ay, thoughts too deep for words are in those simple notes why should not we feel them ?...." EVERSLEY, October, 1843. " . . . I have been thinking of how we are to order our estab- lishment at Pimperne. The best way will be, while we are in Somer- setshire (a season of solemn and delightful preparation for our work) we will hunt out all the texts in the Bible about masters and ser- vants, to form rules upon them ; and our rules we will alter and improve upon in time, as we find out more and more of the true relation in which we ought to stand to those whom God has placed under us I feel more and more that the new principle of considering a servant as a trader, who sells you a certain amount of work for a certain sum of money, is a devil's principle, and that we must have none of it, but return as far as we can to the patri- archial and feudal spirit towards them * "... And religion, that is, truth, shall be the only thing in our house. All things must be made to tend to it ; and if they cannot be made to tend to God's glory, the belief in, and knowledge of the spiritual world, and the duties and ties of 'humanity, they must be turned out of doors as part of ' the world.' One thing we must keep up, if we intend to be anything like witnesses for God, in perhaps the most sensual generation since Alaric destroyed Rome, I mean the continual open verbal reference of everything, even to the breaking of a plate, to God and God's providence, as the Easterns do. The reason why God's name is so seldom in people's mouths is not that they reverence Him, as they say, too much to talk of Him (! ! !), but because they do not think of him ! " About our Parish. No clergyman knows less about the working of a parish than I do ; but one thing I do know, that I have to preach Jesus Christ and Him crucified, and to be instant in that, in season and out of season and at all risks And therefore I pray daily for the Spirit of love to guide us, and the Spirit of * He carried out this principle in daily life, and at his death all the servants in his house had lived with him from seventeen to twenty-six years, and most of those who had left the rectory, left to go to a home of their own. Order in daily Work. 73 earnestness to keep us at work. P'or our work must be done by praying for our people, by preaching to them, in church and out of church (for all instruction is preaching vide Hooker by leading them to pray and worship in the liturgy, and by setting them an ex- ample ; an example in every look, word, and motion, in the pay- ing of a bill, the hiring of a servant, the reproving of a child. " We will have no innovations in ceremony. But we will not let public worship become ' dead bones.' We will strive and pray, day and night, till we put life into it, till our parish feels that God is the great Idea, and that all things are in Him, and He in all things. The local means, to which so much importance is attached now-a- days, by those very sects who pretend to despise outward instru- ments, I mean the schools, charities, &c., I know nothing of, in Pimperne. But we must attend to them (not alter them), and make them tools for our work, which is to teach men that there is a God, and that nothing done without Him is done at all, but a mere sham and makeshift. We must attend the schools and superintend the teaching, going round to the different classes, and not hearing them the letter, but trying by a few seasonable words to awaken them to the spirit ; this is the distinction which is so neglected between the duty of the parson and his wife, and that of the schoolmaster and mis- tress The Church Catechism must be the main point of instruction. Of the Bible, the Proverbs and the Gospels, with parts picked from the leading points of Old Testament history, are all they need know. They will soon learn the rest, if they can master the real meaning and spirit of Solomon and St. John. Few have done that, and therefore the Bible is a sealed book to the very people who swear by it, i. e., by some twenty texts in it which lay down their favorite doctrines plainly enough to be patched into a system, and those not understood skrn dee]). Let us observe the Ember days, . . praying over the sins of the clergy, one's own especial- ly. ... entreating God's mercy on the country, as children of a land fast hurrying to ruin in her mad love of intellectuality, main- monism, and false liberty ! and to avert some portion of the coming evil from Church and nation I see the dawn of better knowledge. Puseyism is a struggle after it. It has failed already failed, because unsound ; but the answer which it found in ten thousand hearts shows that men are yearning for better things than money, or dogmas, and that God's Spirit has not left us. Maurice is a struggle after it Thomas Carlyle is a struggle This book of Bosanquet's (' The Perils of the Nation ') is a struggle All more or less sound, towards true Christianity, and therefore true national prosperity. But will they hear the voices which warn them ? . . . . " But now I must bid good- night, and read my psalms and lessons and pray " CHAPTER VI. 1844 1847. AGED 25-28. Marriage Curacy of Pimperne Rectory of Eversley Correspondence. EARLY in 1844 Charles Kingsley was married to Fanny, daughter of Pascoe Grenfell and Georgiana St. Leger his wife. He had settled to take possession of the curacy of Pimperne, in Dorset- shire, in the following spring, but the living of Eversley falling vacant at that time, a strong effort was made by the parishioners to get the curate who had worked among them so indefatigably appointed rector. While the matter was pending, he went down into Dorsetshire for a few weeks alone to do the duty, staying either at Durweston Rectory or at Blandford, during which inter- val the following letters were written : SALISBURY, March 31, 1844. ". . . I spent a delightful day yesterday. Conceive my pleasure at finding myself in Bemerton, George Herbert's parish, and seeing his house and church, and fishing in the very meadows where he, and Dr. Donne, and Izaak Walton, may have fished be- fore me. I killed several trout and a brace of grayling, about three-quarters of a pound each a fish quite new to me, smelling just like cucumbers. The dazzling chalk-wolds sleeping in the sun, the clear river rushing and boiling down in one ever-sliding sheet of transparent silver, the birds bursting into song, and mating and toying in every hedge-row everything stirred with the gleam of God's eyes, when ' He reneweth the face of the earth ! ' I had many happy thoughts ; but I am very lonely. No time for more, as I am going to prayers in the cathedral." DURWESTON RECTORY, April i, 1844. "I looked into and read much of ' Henry Martyn's Life' (East Indian missionary) last night. My mind is in a chaos about him. Sometimes one feels inclined to take him at his own word, and believe him, as he says, a mere hypochondriac : then the next Carlyle and Wordsworth. 75 moment he seems a saint. I cannot fathom it. Of this I am cer- tain, that he is a much better man than I am." BLANDFORD, April 17, 1844. ". . . More and more I find that these* writings of Carlyle' s do not lead to gloomy discontent that 'theirs is not a dark but a bright view of life : in reality, more evil speaking against the age and its inhabitants is thundered from the pulpit daily, by both Evangelical and Tractarian, than Carlyle has been guilty of in all his works ; but he finds fault in tangible original language they speak evil of every one except their own party, but in such con- ventional language that no ear is shocked by the oft-repeated for- mulae of ' original sin ' and ' unconverted hearts,' and so on ; and the man who would be furious if Carlyle had classed him among the ' valets] bears with perfect equanimity the information of Mr. B * * *, that he is a ' vessel of wrath,' or of Dr. P * * *, that he has put himself beyond the pale of Christ's atonement by sin after baptism. Let us in all things take Dr. Johnson's golden rule : ' First clear your mind of cant." PIMPERXE, April 21, 1844. "I have been reading Wordsworth's 'Excursion,' with many tears and prayers too. To me he is not only poet, but preacher and prophet of God's new and divine philosophy a man raised as a light in a dark time, and rewarded by an honored age, for the simple faith in man and God with which he delivered his message ; whose real nobility is independent of rank, or conventionalities of language or manner, which is but the fashion of this world and passes away. I am trying, in my way, to do good ; but what is the use of talking to hungry paupers about heaven ? ' Sir,' as my clerk said to me yesterday, ' there is a weight upon their hearts, and they care for no hope and no change, for they know they can be no worse off than they are.' And so they have no spirit to arise and go to their Father ! Those who lounge upon down beds, and throw away thousands at Crockford's and Almack's they, the refined of this earth, have crushed it out of them. I have been very sad lately seeing this, and seeing, too, the horrid effects of that new Poor Law. You must be behind the scenes to see the truth, in places which the Malthus's and 'sknow nothing of." .... " S. G. O. is deep in statistics and abuses. Heaven knows, when there are so many abuses, we ought to thank a man who will hunt them out. I will never believe that a man has a real love for the good and beautiful, except he attacks the evil and the disgusting the moment he sees it ! Therefore you must make up your mind * "The Miscellanies," and "Past and Present." 76 Charles Kings ley. to see me, with God's help, a hunter out of abuses till the abuses cease only till then. It is very easy to turn our eyes away from ugly sights, and so consider ourselves refined. The refined man to me is he who cannot rest in peace with a coal-mine, or a factory, or a Dorsetshire peasant's house near him, in the state in which they are I am deep in ' The Perils of the Nation.' . . . ." SUNDAY NIGHT. " You know, I suppose, all that I can tell you. I am to see Sir John Cope at Arthur's Club House, to-morrow afternoon, and, at all events, shall return to you Monday, perhaps Rector of Evers- ley ! Forgive this short letter, as I am worn out ; but a bright future opens. Blessed be God. . . ." MONDAY. " All is settled at last. Sir John has given me the living, and is going to see the Bishop to-day, and I am to go down to Eversley to-morrow. He wishes me to settle there as soon as possible. God never fails those who put their trust in him " " . . . The presentation is to be ready in a few days. I am then to be instituted here in town, and then, please God, we shall get to Eversley on Friday or Saturday. The packing, van, &c., and some little comforts before we take possession, I have settled. Congratulations, as you may suppose, are plentiful .... and I had the pleasure of Bringing the news myself to Eversley. . . . . I go to the Bishop of Winchester to-morrow. I took the whole duty at St. George's Hospital yesterday morning, and preached a charity sermon at St. Luke's in the afternoon, and at the old church in the evening ; and am very tired, body and mind My brain has been in such a whirl that I have had no time for deep thoughts. I can understand, by the events of the last few days, how the minds of men of business, at the very moment they are wielding the vastest commercial or physical power, may yet be degraded and superficial. One seems to do so much in ' business,' and yet with how little fruit : we bustle, and God works. That glorious, silent Providence such a contrast to physical power, with its blast furnaces and roaring steam engines ! " Farewell till to-morrow " He now settled as rector, at Eversley, with his wife ; and life flowed on peacefully, notwithstanding the anxieties of a sorely neglected parish, and the expenses of an old house which had not been repaired for more than a hundred years. Owing to the cir- cumstances under which the living fell vacant, the incoming tenant got no dilapidation-money, and had arrears of Poor Rates and ' Settled at Eversley. 77 the pay of the curate to meet. The house itself was damp and unwholesome, surrounded with ponds which overflowed with every heavy rain, and flooded not only the garden and stables, but all the rooms on the ground floor, keeping up master and servants sometimes all night, bailing out the water in buckets for hours together ; and drainage works had to be done before it was habi- table. From these causes, and from the charities falling almost entirely on the incumbent, the living, though a good one, was for years unremunerative ; but the young rector, happy in his home and his work, met all difficulties bravely ; and gradually in the course of years, the land was drained ; the ponds which ran through the garden and stood above the level of the dwelling rooms were filled up, and though the house was never healthy, it was habitable. New clubs for the poor, shoe club, coal club, maternal society, a loan fund and lending library, were established one after another. An intelligent young parishioner, who is still school-master, was sent by the rector to the Winchester Training College ; an adult school was held in the rectory three nights a week for all the win- ter months ; a Sunday school met there every Sunday morning and afternoon ; and weekly cottage lectures were established in all the out-lying districts for the old and feeble. The fact of there being no school-house had a good effect in drawing the people within the humanizing influences of the rectory, which was always open to them, and will ever be associated in the minds of young and old of this generation at Eversley, with the kind and courteous sym- pathy and the living teaching which they all got from their rector. At the beginning of his ministry there was not a grown-up man or woman among the laboring class who could read or write for as boys and girls they had all been glad to escape early to field work from the parish clerk's little stifling room, ten feet square, where cobbling shoes, teaching, and caning went on together. As to religious instruction, they had had none. The church was nearly empty before the new curate came in 1842. The farmers' sheep, when pasture was scarce, were turned into the neglected churchyard. Holy Communion was celebrated only three times a year ; the communicants were few ; the alms were collected in an old wooden saucer. A cracked kitchen basin inside the font held the water for Holy Baptism. At the altar, which was covered by a moth-eaten cloth, stood one old broken 78 Charles Kings ley. chair; and so averse were the parish authorities to any change that when the new rector made a proposal for monthly commu- nions, it was only accepted on his promising himself to supply the wine for the celebration, the churchwardens refusing to provide except for the three great festivals. This he continued to do till a few years since, when Sir William Cope undertook the office of rector's churchwarden, and at once put this matter on a right footing. The evil results of such years of neglect could only be conquered by incessant labor, and the young rector's whole energies were de voted to the parish. He had to redeem it from barbarism : but it was a gentle barbarism, for the people, though not intelligently responsive, were a kindly people, civil and grateful for notice, and as yet wholly uninjured by indiscriminate almsgiving. He was daily with them in their cottages, and made a point of talking to the men and boys at their field work, till he was personally inti- mate with every soul in the parish, from the women at their wash- tubs, to the babies in the cradle, for whom he always had a loving word or look. Nothing escaped his eye. That hunger for knowl- edge on every subject, which characterized him through life, and made him ready to learn from every laboring man what he could tell him of his own farm work or the traditions of the place, had put him when he was curate on an easy human footing with the parishioners and was one secret of his influence ; so that before the state of his health obliged him, in 1848, to take a curate, he had got the parish thoroughly in hand. It was from his regular house to house visiting in the week, still more than his church services, that he acquired his power. If a man or woman were suffering or dying, he would go to them five and six times a day and night as well as day for his own heart's sake as well as for their soul's sake. Such visiting was very rare in those clays. For years he seldom dined out ; never during the winter months, when the adult school and the cottage readings took up six evenings in the week ; and he seldom left the parish except for a few days at a time to take his family to the sea-side, which occurred the more frequently from the constant illness pro- duced by the damp rectory ; but he was never easy away from his work. His only relaxation was a few hours' fishing in some stream close First Confirmation. 79 by. He never took a gun in hand, because from the poaching tastes of his people he felt it might bring him into unpleasant col- lision with them, and for this reason he never wished to be made a magistrate, lest he should have to sit on the bench in judgment on his parishioners. He could not afford to hunt, and when in after years he took a gallop now and then to refresh himself, and to see his friends in the hunting-field, where he was always welcome, it was on some old horse which he had picked up cheap for parson's work. "Another old screw, Mr. Kingsley,'' was said to him often by middle class men, who were well aware that he could ride, and that he knew a good horse when he saw it. They perhaps respected him all the more for his self-denial. At this time there were ken- nels in the parish ; the fox-hounds (now known as Mr. Garth's) were kept at Bramshill, Sir John Cope being Master. His stable- men were a very respectable set of men, and most regular at church ; and the rector, though he could not afford to ride, had always a friendly word with the huntsman and whips ; his love of horses and dogs and knowledge of sport made an intimacy between them, and he soon won their respect and affection. Of this they gave early proof, for when the first confirmation after his induction was given out in church, and he invited all who wished to be confirmed to come down to the rectory for weekly instruction, the stud groom, a respectable man of five-and-thirty, was among the first to come, bringing a message from the whips and stablemen to say they had all been confirmed once, but if Mr. Kingsley wished it they would all be happy to come again ! It had hitherto been the custom in Eversley and the neighbor- ing parishes to let the confirmation candidates get over as they could to some distant church, where the catechumens of four or five parishes assembled to meet the bishop. Consequently the public- houses were usually full on confirmation day, which often ended in a mere drunken holiday for boys and girls, who had many miles to walk, and had neither superintendence nor refreshment by the \vay provided for them. When he became rector, matters were ar- ranged very differently for the Kversley people. Each candidate was prepared separately as well as in class, for six weeks before- hand, and for the six Sundays previous to the confirmation, the catechism, creeds, and office of confirmation explained publicly. On the day itself the young people assembled early foi; refreshment 8o Charles Kings ley. at the rectory, whence they started in two vans for Heckfield church. He himself went with the boys, and his wife or some trustworthy person with the girls, and never lost sight of them till they returned, the girls to their homes, the boys and young men, some of them married men, who, from long years of neglect, had never been confirmed, to the rectory, where a good dinner awaited them, and they spent the evening in wandering over the glebe, or looking at curiosities and picture-books indoors, ending with a few words on their duty. So henceforth the solemn day was always associated with pleasant thoughts and an innocent holiday, which made the young people more inclined to come to him the week following to be prepared for Holy Communion. The appearance and manner of the Eversley catechumens were often remarked on the quiet dresses of the girls, and the neat caps provided for them. These seem trifling matters to dwell on in days when such things are done decently and in order in all parishes : but thirty- two years ago Eversley set the example on Confirmation as well as on many other days. His preaching was always remarkable. The only fault which Bishop Sumner found with the sermons he took up to show him when he went to Farnham for his Priest's Ordination, was that they were too colloquial : but it was this very peculiarity which arrested and attracted his hearers, and helped to fill a very empty church. His original mind and common sense alike revolted from the use of an unmeaning phraseology, and as all the facts of life were to him sacred, he was unfettered as to subject-matter and modes of expression. During the summer of 1844 he made acquaintance with Mr. Mau- rice, to whose writings he owed so much ; and the acquaintance soon strengthened into a deep and enduring friendship. In the fol- lowing letter he first ventured to consult him on his difficulties. "Mv DEAR SIR, "I must apologise for addressing one so much my superior, and so slightly acquainted with me, but where shall the young priest go for advice, but to the elder prophet ? To your works I am indebted for the foundation of any coherent view of the word of God, the meaning of the Church of England, and the spiritual phenomena of the present and past ages. And as through your thoughts God's spirit has given me catholicity, to whom therefore can 1 better go for details on any of these points ? Letter from F. D. Maurice. 8 1 " Two things are very troublesome to me at present. The want of any philosophical method of reading the Scriptures, without see- ing in them merely proofs of human systems ; and the great prev- alence of the Baptist form of dissent in my parish. The latter I find myself unable to cope with, founded as it is on supra-lapsarian Calvinistic dogmas, which have been received into the heart as the deepest counsels of God. " I therefore beg the favor of your advice upon these two sub- jects, and feeling that much may be said that would not be written, I must beg, if I am not guilty of too great an intrusion, that you would grant me an interview with you in London. " I know that the request is informal according to the ways of the world, but I have faith enough in you to be sure that you will take the request for what it is, an earnest struggle to get wisdom at all risks from any quarter where it may be found." .... The reply was as follows, and is given by the kind permission of Mr. Maurice's executors. REV. F. D. MAURICE TO REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY. July 22, 1844. " . . . I should be sorry not to give you the experience of any blunders I may have committed in past time, with such expe- rience as lias been the fruit of them, and it is sometimes easier to recover the different fragments of this experience, and to piece them together in writing than in speaking. " With respect to the study of the Scriptures, my own great error has been that I have formed and abandoned so many plans, any one of which, honestly pursued, might have led to good results. I fancy this is a prevalent temptation, though I have yielded to it and suffered from it more than any of my acquaintances. As I would turn diseases to commodity, or, at least, as God is some- times mercifully pleased to do this for us, I think I may say that all the deplorable waste of time which these changes have oc- casioned, has brought with it this compensation, that I have been solemnly and inwardly impressed with the truth, that- the Bible, as a means of attaining to the knowledge of the living God, is pre- cious beyond all expression or conception ; when made a substi- tute for that knowledge, may become a greater deadener to the human spirit than all other books. "The method of the Bible itself, and the means of its being overlooked, I think become more anil more clear to us, as \ve keep this consideration before us. If it be a human history, containing a gradual discovery of God, which discovery awakens the very fac- ulties and apprehensions which are to receive it, the treatment of it as a collection of notions, either about the invisible world or oui 6 82 Charles Kings ley. own duty, must entirely mislead us in all our studies ; and whether we rate it high or low, whether we extol it as the one rule of faith, maintain its authority to be concurrent with that of Church tradi- tion, or look upon it merely as a set of fragments containing the speculations of a certain nation about religious questions, the re- sult will be much the same. In each case the end of the book will be lost, and therefore all the steps to that end will be confused and incomprehensible. But if once the teachers in our theological schools would have courage to proclaim theology to be the knowl- edge of God, and not the teaching of a religion, I am satisfied that the scientific character of the Bible could be brought out as con- spicuously as its practical character, one being seen to be involved in the other. Then it would not be necessary to assert for theol- ogy its place in the scientia scientiarum, or to bid others fall into their places in connection with it, and subordination to it ; nor would it be necessary to be perpetually proclaiming church author- ity in favor of such and such doctrines. The truths concerning God would be felt so essential to the elucidation of those concern- ing man and nature, the relations of one to the other would be so ev- ident, there would be such a life infused into the features of human knowledge, and such a beautiful order and unity in the whole of it, that the opposition to them would be recognized as proceeding just as much from prejudice and ignorance, sure to disappear when- ever there were not moral causes to sustain them, as the opposition to gravitation or any of the most acknowledged physical or mathe- matical principles. I do not mean that this effect would follow suddenly, or that the actual impediments to the gospel from human pride and wickedness would be less felt. I suppose they would be more felt after it had followed. But we should not then be obliged to acknowledge that much of the resistance to the most precious principles may actually proceed from a love to some others, or even to those same ; we should not hear such a din of voices cry- ing out for this thing and that ; and nearly forgetting God in their love for abstractions ; we should not see so much violent straining and perverting of texts to serve a purpose ; we should have much less idolatry of the Bible, and much more reverence for it. And the hard-working clergy of our parishes, having been trained in such a school before they entered upon practical duty, would feel a clearness in their minds, a readiness for occasions, a power of bringing their studies to bear upon life, instead of being obliged, as is now so much the case, either to shut their eyes against any new light, or else to destroy and reconstruct their system each time that any is vouchsafed to them. But since our universities afford us no teaching of this kind at present, we must try to profit by the helps which we have. Our actual work is, I think, the best of these helps. It forces us, whether we will or no, out of the routine of systems, and leads us to seek for something in scripture which is Letter from F. D. Maurice. 83 altogether unlike them. And though I would strongly urge every one not to lose sight of the idea of that system of which I have spoken, I would by no means recommend any one who was not working as a professed theologian in the schools, to spend his time in contriving how he may adjust his own reading to it. The use of it to him will be far greater if he recollects that it exists when he is reading a single book, or chapter, or text, than if he determines doggedly to follow out the traces of it from Genesis to Revelation. The subject of his studies, I should think, must be always best de- termined by the wants of his parish. In preaching, I have always found it best to follow the order of the services, taking my subject from the epistle, gospel, collect, or first lesson, and 1 think if we read on a plan, we can hardly find a much better one. The study of words also is, I think, of immense profit, especially of families of words, as e.g., StKcu^oj, oxris, w/x,a, OO-JVYJ, through an epistle, or through many. Schmidt's 'Concordance' is worth much more, it seems to me, than Schleusner's or Bretschneider's Lexicons ; though I do not mean to say they are of no value. I think, too, that it is desirable, cautiously and deliberately to question our- selves about the leading idea of any Epistle ; I say cautiously and deliberately, because the mere taking up with customary formulas on the subject, such as that, the Epistles to the Romans and Gala- tians are about justification, will, 1 am satisfied, lead us astray. These Epistles are, I am convinced, strikingly different in their object and character. With respect to the Romans, the great mis- chief is, that commentators generally start from the third chapter, looking upon the first and second as merely an introduction or prologue, whereas any simple reader must perceive that St. Paul enters at once on his subject, and that it is really the ^avcpwcns r/;s 8i(caiocrw7j5 TOU deou, and not an abstract theory of justification." " . . . It is difficult to speak on the second point in your letter the Baptists in your parish without knowing how far they are, or are not, practically Antinomian. In many places they are, and a very vulgar brutal sect of Antinomians. Mr. Hall, who was a Baptist, describes such a class of men as existing in his body, and attacks them with a fury which proves that they must have acquired great influence, and have been very numerous in his life- time. In that case I should not be inclined to argue with them against their ultra-Calvinism, or to show them how it strengthens them in their evil courses ; I would rather admit what they say when they refer man's goodness and conversion to the will of God, and press the assertion of the apostle, ' This is the will of God, even your sauctification,' that all the purposes of God's decrees must be to make men righteous as He is, and that if the decrees to which they appeal do not produce this result, they are not His, but the devil's. And since their complaint of infant baptism must be on the ground that the children have yet given no sign of faith ill 84 Charles Kings ley. God, you may, without any personality, or any direct allusion to themselves, ask how far the facts warrant us in expecting any better result from the mature conscious baptism. Supposing, how- ever, they should be honest, earnest men, however outrageous may be their statements, I should be disposed rather to take advantage of their doctrine, than to repudiate it. You say that man's fall, and all other events, were parts of a great scheme of God. Well ! I grant you that the fall did not in the least frustrate the scheme of God. I grant you that it is very wrong to speak as if He had merely devised a scheme as a remedy for the consequences of the fall. Christ was before all things, and by Him all things consist. In Him He created man, and His incarnation, though it came later than the fall, was really in God's purpose before it. What we preach is, that men, being endued with that flesh and blood which Christ took, are to be looked upon as objects of God's love, and that they are to be accused of setting at nought that love. We do not set aside election ; our baptism is the witness for it. By it we refer all things to God ; we testify that He chooses with- out reference to their previous merits or holiness, and that all gifts and graces come from Him. Of course such a statement as this will be varied according to the capacities of the auditor, and the nature of his objections ; but it is the kind of language I should use, and that not from any calculation as to the effects it might produce, but from believing it to be the truest and honestest. In supra-lapsarian Calvinism, there lies a deep recognition of God as a living being, an originating will, which the feeble, frittering phrases of Arminianism can provide no substitute for. The great misery of the Calvinist is, his constant substitution of the idea of sovereignty for that of righteousness, which is the one always brought before us in Scripture. I would seek to deliver him from that evil, but as far as possible keeping entire and unhurt that which he has already." .... We return to his own letters. The news of his brother Lieut. Kingsley's death from fever in Torres Straits, on board H.M.S. "Royalist," now reached Eng- land, and he writes to his wife from CHELSEA, February 26, 1845. " . . . It is sad very sad but what is to be said ? I saw him twice last night in two different dreams strong and well and so much grown and I kissed him and wept over him and woke to the everlasting No ! "As far as externals go, it has been very sad. The sailors say commonly that there is but a sheet of paper between Torres Straits Death of Lieut. Kings ley. 85 and Hell. And there he lay, and the wretched crew, in the little brig, roasting and pining, day after day never heard of, or hearing of living soul for a year and a half. The commander died half the crew died and so they died and died on, till in May no officer was left but Gerald, and on the lyth of September he died too, and so faded away, and we shall never see him more for ever ? God that saved me knows. Then one Parkinson, the boatswain, had to promote himself to keep the pendant flying, all the officers being dead, and in despair left his post and so brought the brig home to Singapore, with great difficulty, leaking, with her mast sprung her crew half dead a doomed vessel. O God, Thou alone knowest the long bitter withering baptism of fire, wherewith the poor boy was baptized, day and night alone with his own soul. And yet Thou wert right as ever perhaps there was no way but that to bring him to look himself in the face, and know that life was a reality, and not a game ! And who dare say that in those weary, weary months of hope deferred, the heart eating at itself, did not gnaw through the crust of vanities (not of so very long growth either), and the living water which he did drink in his childhood find vent and bubble up ! Why not seeing that God is love?" Early in 1845 Dean Wood, of the Collegiate Church of Middle- ham, having two vacant stalls to dispose of, offered one to his son, the Rev. Peter Wood, now Rector of Copford, and the other to Charles Kingsley, his son's old college friend. The canonries were honorary, and had no duties connected with them, but being of historic interest, the two friends accepted the honor, and went down together to be inducted, to the stalls of St. Anthony and St. George. The deanery was abolished in 1856, on the death of Dean Wood. This was his first visit to Yorkshire, a county attractive to him, from its people as much as from its scenery. The rest of the year was spent quietly at Eversley in parish work and sermon writing : but the state of parties in Church and State, especially the former, lay heavy on his heart, and made him very anxious to join or start some periodical in which the young men of the day could find a vehicle for free expression of their opinions. The ' Oxford and Cambridge Review ' was then in existence, and it was proposed to make that the vehicle, and if not, to start a new one. On all these points Mr. Maurice was consulted, though he would not join. 86 Charles Kingsley. TO THE REV. R. COWLEY POWLES. CHELSEA, December u, 1845. "About the 'Oxford and Cambridge Review.' Froude seems to dread any fresh start, .... and I shall chew the cud and try to find out my own way a little longer before I begin trying to lead others. " God help us all ! for such a distempered tangled juncture must end in the putting of the Gordian knot, by the higher or lower powers ; and as the higher have fairly denied their cutting ability and have given it up, perhaps the lower may try their hands at it. I would, if I were hovering between nine shillings a week and the workhouse, as the sum of all attainabilities this side of heaven. God help us all ! I say again ; for there is no counsel to be got anywhere from man, and as for God's book, men have made it mean anything and nothing, with their commenting and squabbling, and doctrine picking, till one asks with Pilate, ' What is truth ? : Well, at all events, God knows, and Christ the King knows, and so all must go right at last, but in the meantime ? " I am just now a sort of religious Shelley, an Ishmael of catho- licity, a John the Baptist, minus his spirit and power, alas ! be- moaning myself in the wilderness. Were I to stop praying, and remembering my own sins daily, 1 could become a Democritus Junior, and sitting upon the bench of contemplation, make the world my cock-pit, wherein main after main of cocklets the ' shell,' alas ! scarce ' off their heads.' come forth to slay and be slain, mutually, for no quarrel, except ' thou-cock art not me-cock, therefore fight ! ' But I had as soon be the devil as old Lucretius, to sit with him in the ' Sapientum templa serena, despicere unde queas alios, atque, cernere passim errantes.' One must feel for one's fellows so much better, two out of three of them than one's self, though they will fill themselves with the east wind, and be proportionably dyspeptic and sulky. " Nobody trusts nobody. The clergy are split up into innumer- able parties, principally nomadic. Every one afraid to speak. Every one unwilling to listen to his neighbor ; and in the mean- time vast sums are spent, and vast work undertaken, and yet nobody is content. Everybody swears we are going backward. Everybody swears it is not his fault, but the Evangelicals, or the Puseyites, or the Papists, or the ministry ; or everybody, in short, who does not agree with him. Pardon this jeremiad, but I am an owl in the desert, and it is too sad to see a huge and busy body of clergy, utterly unable to gain the confidence or spiritual guidance of the nation, and yet never honestly taking the blame each man upon himself, and saying, ' I, not ye have sinned.' " Pardon, again, ihis threnodia, but I am sick of matters, and do earnestly wish for some one to whom to pour out my heart. The Hiving a Swarm of Bees. 87 principles which the great kings and bishops of the middle ages, and our reformers of the i6th century felt to be the foundation of a Church and nation, are now set at nought equally by those who pretend to worship the middle ages, and those who swear by the reformers. And Popery and Puritanism seem to be fighting their battle over again in England, on the foul middle ground of mammonite infidelity. They are re-appearing in weaker and less sincere forms, but does that indicate the approach of their individ- ual death, or our general decay ? He who will tell me this shall be my prophet : till then 1 must be my own " . . . . My game is gradually opening before me, and my ideas getting developed, and ' fixed,' as the Germans would say. But, alas ! as Hare has it, is not in one sense ' every man a liar ? ' false to his own idea, again and again, even if, which is rare no\v-a-days, we have one ? " TO HIS WIFE. EVERSLKY, May, 1846. "... I got home at four this morning after a delicious walk a poem in itself. I never saw such a sight before as the mists on the heath and valleys, and never knew what a real bird chorus was. I am lonely enough, but right glad I came, as there is plenty to do I shall start to-morrow morning, and will lose no time waiting for coaches at Ryde, but walk on at once to Shanklin. St. Elizabeth progresses, and consolidates I have had a great treat to-day ; saw a swarm of bees hived, for the first time in my life. Smith was gone to Heckfield, so G. White sent his cart for old Home ; and I stood in the middle of the flying army, and saw the whole to my great delight. Certainly man, even in the lowest grade, is infinitely wonderful, and infinitely brave give him habit and self-confidence. To see all those little poisonous insects crawling over Home, wrapt in the one thought of their new-born sister-queen ! I hate to think that it is vile self- interest much less mere brute magnetism (called by the ignorant 'instinct'), which takes with them the form of loyalty, prudence, order, self-sacrifice. How do we know that they have no souls ? 'The beasts which perish ?' Ay, but put against that 'the spirit of the beast which goeth downward to the earth' and whither then ? ' Man perisheth,' too, in scripture language, yet not for ever. But I will not dream. " I fancy you and baby playing in the morning. Bless you, my two treasures I had a most busy and interesting day yesterday in London. Called on * * * and found him under- going all the horrors of a deep, and as I do think, healthy baptism -of fire not only a conversion, but a discovery that God and the devil are living realities, fighting for his body and soul. This, in a man of vast thought and feeling, who has been for years a 88 Charles Kingsley. confirmed materialist, is hard work. He entreated me not to leave him " God help us all. and save our country not so much from the fate of France, as from the fate of Rome internal decay, and fall- ing to pieces by its own weight ; but I will say no more of this perhaps 1 think too much about it." .... TO THE REV. R. C. POWLES. December, 1846. " Do not, for God's sake, compliment me. If you knew the mean, inconsistent, desultory being I am in action, in spite of my fine words, you would be ashamed of me, as I am of myself. But I cannot stave off the conviction of present danger and radical disease in our national religion. And though I laugh at myself sometimes for conceit and uncharitableness tamen usque recurrit that hand-writing on the wall ; that ' mene, mene ' against Angli- canism and Evangelicalism at once both of which more and more daily prove to me their utter impotence to meet our social evils. Six months in a country parish is enough to prove it. What is to be done I do not see. A crisis, political and social, seems approach- ing, and religion, like a rootless plant, may be brushed away in the struggle. Maurice is full of fear I had almost said despondence and he, as you know, has said in his last book, that ' The real struggle of the day will be, not between Popery and Protestantism, but be- tween Atheism and Christ.' And here we are daubing walls with untempered mortar quarrelling about how we shall patch the superstructure, forgetting that the foundation is gone Faith in anything. As in the days of Noah with the Titans as in the days of Mahomet with the Christian sects of the East, they were eating, and drinking, and quarrelling, no doubt, and behold the flood came and swept them all away. And even such to me seems the prospect of the English Church. " People say indignantly, ' Oh ! but look at her piety ; look at the revival ; her gospel doctrines ; her church-building. She is beginning to live and not to die.' But we who have read history know how the candle always flames up at the last with a false gal- vanic life, when the spirit is gome. Remember the Church in Eng- la'nd just before the Reformation, how she burst out into new life ; how she reformed her monasteries; how she filled her pulpits; how she built more churches and colleges in fifty years than she had in two hundred before Somersetshire as a single example how she was in every respect, within as well as without, immeasurably improved just before the monasteries were dissolved. Bat her time was come. 'The old order' was to 'change,' 'giving place to the new' while God 'fulfils Himself in many ways,' as Tennyson has it. And not even a More and a Fisher could save her from A Periodical Proposed. 89 her fire-death, and phoenix resurrection. Mene ! Mene ! I say again for us. " But we must, in the widest and divinest sense, make friends of the Mammon of unrighteousness. It is the new commercial aris- tocracy ; it is the scientific go-ahead-ism of the day which must save us, and which we must save. We have licked the feet of the feudal aristocrats for centuries, and see whither they have brought us, or let us bring ourselves. In plain truth, the English clergy must Arnold-ise, if they do not wish to go either to Rome or to the workhouse, before fifty years are out. There is, I do believe, an Arnoldite spirit rising ; but most ' laudant, non sequuntur.' De- cent Anglicanism, decent Evangelical Conservatism (or Evangeli- calism) having become the majority, is now quite Conservative, and each party playing Canute and the tide, as it can scramble into the chair of authority. I would devote soul and body to get together an Arnoldite party of young men. If we could but begin a periodical in which every one should be responsible by name for his own article, thereby covering any little differences of opinion, such as must always exist in a reforming party (though not in a dead-bone-galvanising one, like the Tractarians). If we could but start anything daring and earnest as a ' coroccio,' or flag of misery, round which, as round David in the mountains, the spiritual rag- tag might rally, and howl harmonious the wrongs of the clergy and of literary men, it were a great thing gained ! " I have had serious thoughts of what such a thing ought to be. Its two mottoes should be Anti-Manichreism (and therefore Anti- Tractarian, and Anti-Evangelical) and Anti-Atheism. To attack unsparingly those two things in every one, from the bishop to the peasant ; and to try, on the positive side, to show how all this pro- gress of society in the present day is really of God, and God's work, and has potential and latent spiritual elements, which it is the duty and the glory of the clergy, if they are a clergy, to unfold and christen. We should require a set of articles on Church Re- form, a set on the Art of Worship, which should show that the worshipless state of Evangelicalism is no more necessary than good, and that Protestantism can just as much inspire itself into a glorious artistic ritual of its own, as Popery and Anglicanism have into one of their own. Then we should want a set of Condition-of-the-Poor- Ballads or articles, or anything ' spicy ' on that point. A set on the Religion of Science, and a set on Modern Poetry and the Drama, cursing the opera and praying for the revival of the legiti- mate. "This, I think, might keep the game alive, if men would only be bold and 'ride recklessly across country.' As soon as a man's blood is cool, the faster he "goes the safer he goes. Try to pick your way and you tumble down. If men would but believe this and be bold; we want some of that 'absolutism' which gave 90 Charles Kingslcy. strength to the Middle Ages ; and it is only the tyranny of fashion and respectability which keeps us from it ; for put the Englishman into a new country, break the thrall of habit and the fear of man, and he becomes great, absolute, Titanic at once." The Magazine plan came to nothing, and 1846 passed une vent- less in the routine of parish work and home happiness. Adult classes, a music class on Hullah's plan to improve the church music (which had been entirely in the hands of three or four poor men, with a trombone and two clarionets) brought his people on several nights in the week up to the rectory, where the long, un- furnished dining-room served the purpose of schoolroom. He never cared to leave his quiet home, doubly enriched by the presence of a little daughter. The following year his " Life of St. Elizabeth," which was begun in prose in 1842, and had been gradually growing under his hand, took the form of a drama. After working at it in this new form for some months, the thought of publishing it crossed his mind ; but he was so uncertain as to whether it was worth print- ing, that he decided nothing till he had consulted four friends on whose judgment and poetical verdict he could rely the Hon. and Rev. Gerald Wellesley, then Rector of Strathfieldsaye, now Dean of Windsor ; Rev. F. D. Maurice ; Rev. Derwent Coleridge, of St. Mark's ; and the Rev. R. C. Powles. Their opinion was unani- mous, but the difficulty was to find a publisher who would under- take the work of a young and unknown author. He took the MSS. to London, from whence he wrote home. " I breakfasted with Maurice this morning, and went over a great deal of St. Elizabeth, and I cannot tell you how thankful I am to God about it. He has quite changed his mind about scene i of act ii., Elizabeth's bower. He read it to Powles, who is decidedly for keeping it in just as it is, and thinks it ought to offend no one. He is very desirous to show the MSS. to A. G. Scott, Mrs. H. Coleridge, Tennyson, and Van Artevelde Taylor. He says that it ought to do great good with those who can take it in, but for those who cannot, it ought to have a preface : and has more than hinted that he will help me to one, by writing me something which, if I like, I can prefix. What more would you have ?...." "Coleridge's opinion of the poem is far higher than I expected. He sent me to Pickering with a highly recommendatory note ; which however, joined with Maurice's preface, was not sufficient to make him take the risk off my hands. St. Elizabeth in Press. 91 "I am now going to Parker's, in the Strand. I am at once very happy, very lonely, and very anxious. How absence in- creases love ! It is positively good sometimes to be parted, that one's affection may become conscious of itself, and proud, and humble, and thankful accordingly " Messrs. Parker, of 445 West Strand, undertook the publication, and he writes joyfully to Mr. Powles : "St. Elizabeth is in the press, having been taken off my hands by the heroic magnanimity of Mr. J. Parker, West Strand, who, though a burnt child, does not dread the fire. No one else would have it. "Maurice's preface comes out with it, and is inestimably not only to I myself I, but to all men who shall have the luck to read it, and the wit to understand it. I had hoped to have shown it to you before it went, but ' non concessere columnar.' " His eldest son was born this year, and named after Mr. Maurice, who with Mr. Powles, stood sponsors to the boy. In the summer he took his wife and two children for six weeks to Milford, a little sea-side place near the edge of the New Forest. It was his first six weeks' holiday since his marriage, which he earned by taking the Sunday services of Pennington, near Lymington. Here he had a horse, and the rides in the beautiful scenery of the New Forest, dear to him from old association with his father's youth and man- hood, excited his imagination. It was only either at a great crisis in his life, or in a time when all his surroundings were in perfect harmony, that he could compose poetry. And now, when in the forest, and in the saddle once more, or alone with his beloved ones, with leisure to watch his babies, his heart's spring bubbled up into song, and he composed several ballads : " Oh she tripped over Ocknell plain," "The Red King," and "The Outlaw." He explored the forest day after day, with deep delight, and laid up a store of impressions which in later years he began to work up into a New Forest Novel. This, however, was never completed. CHAPTER VII. 1848. AGED 29. Publication of " Saint's Tragedy "Chartist Riots Tenth of April Politics for the People Professorship at Queen's College " Yeast " Illness. THIS year, so marked in the history of Europe, was one of the most important of Charles Kings-ley's life. " The Saint's Tragedy" was published soon after Christmas, and, though it made little im- pression on the literary world in England, yet gave him in one sense a new position, especially among young men at the universi- ties. The Drama was eagerly read at Oxford, and fiercely at- tacked by the high church party, who were to be made still more bitter against its author by the publication of "Yeast," which came out later in the year as a serial in " Eraser's Magazine." He was surprised himself to find the interest "The Saint's Tragedy" had excited at Oxford. In Germany it was read and appreciated, and Chevalier Bunsen expressed his opinion in very strong terms about it. In higher quarters still the genius of the author was recognized. The Tragedy was reviewed, not very favorably, by Mr. (after- wards Professor) Conington at Oxford. This, however, led to an acquaintance, between author and critic, which soon ripened into friendship ; and when, in the course of a few months, " Politics for the People " were published, Mr. Conington became not only a warm ally in the cause, but a regular contributor, and constant visitor at Eversley. During the winter he went to Oxford to stay a few days with his friend, Mr. Povvles, Fellow of Exeter : and he writes to his wife : OXFORD, March 30, 1848. ". . . I may, I suppose, tell you that I am here undergoing the new process of being made a lion of, at least so Powles tells me. They got up a meeting for me, and the club was crowded Parish Work. 93 with men U'.erely to see poor me, so I found out afterwards : very lucky that I did not know it during the process of being trotted out. It is very funny and new. 1 dine this afternoon with Con- ington ; to-morrow with Palgrave ; Monday with Stanley, and so on. I like Conington very much ; he is a good, hearty piece of nature ; and I like his review very much. Of course he did not go to the bottom on the Love and Marriage question ; but there he showed his sense. Fronde gets more and more interesting. We had such a conversation this morning the crust is breaking, and the man coming through that cold polished shell. My darling babies ! kiss them very much for me. Monday I go to Chalgrove Field, to see Hampden's martyr place." His parish work this year was if possible more vigorous than ever. Every winter's evening was occupied with either night- school at the rectory, about thirty men attending ; or little services in the outlying cottages for the infirm and laboring men after their day's work. During the spring and summer a writing class was held for girls in the empty coach-house ; a cottage school for in- fants was also begun on -the common all preparing the way for the National School that was to be built some years later, and for which the teacher was in training. The parish made a great step forward. The number of communicants increased. The daily services and evening sermons in Passion week seemed to borrow intenser fervor and interest from the strange events of the great world outside the small quiet parish, and though poorly attended, still gathered together a few laboring folk. The political events which shook all Europe to its very founda- tions, stirred his blood, and seemed for the time to give him a supernatural strength, which kept up till the autumn, when he completely broke down. He wrote an article for " Eraser's Maga- zine " (the first he ever contributed to a periodical) on Popery : " Why should we fear the Romish Priests?" following up his " Saint's Tragedy," which had struck the key note of the after work of his life ; and "Yeast " now was seething in his mind. Of his contributions to " Politics for the People " more will be said hereafter. He preached to his people on emigration, on poaching, and on the political and social disturbances of the day. In addi- tion to parish and literary work he accepted the Professorship of English Literature and Composition at Queen's College, Harley Street, then in its infancy, of which Mr. Maurice was President, 94 Charles Kings ley. and he went up to London to give a lecture once a week. He was also proposed for a professorship at King's College. He was in constant communication with Mr. Maurice and the knot of re- markable men who gathered round him. He made acquaintance with Bishop Stanley, of Norwich, and his distinguished son ; with Archdeacon Hare, Arthur Helps, John Hullah, James Anthony Froude, John Malcolm Ludlow, and many other men of mark, but to none did he become more strongly attached than to Mr. Thomas Hughes. On the news of the Chartist rising and petition reaching Evers- ley, he determined, having closed his evening classes in the parish for the winter, to go to London for a few days ; and on the morn- ing of the loth of April, with his friend Mr. John Parker, jun., who had been spending the Sunday at Eversley, he went up to see what was going on. Mr. Parker, like many owners of property in London, was nervous and anxious about the results of the day, telling Mrs. Kingsley, half in joke as he left the door, that she might expect to hear of his shop having been broken into, and himself thrown into the Trafalgar Square fountains by the mob. On arriving in London, they went to the house of business at 445 West Strand, then on to Mr. Maurice's ; and in the afternoon he and Mr. Ludlow walked to Kennington Common, where pour- ing rain damped the spirits of the crowds assembled. By mid-day post he wrote to Eversley. LONDON, April 10, MONDAY. " . . . All is right as yet. Large crowds, but no one expects any row, as the Chartists will not face Westminster Bridge, but are gone round by London Bridge and Holborn, and are going to send up only the legal number of Delegates to the House. I am just going on to Maurice. The only fear is maurauding in the suburbs at night ; but do not fear for me, I shall be safe at Chelsea at 5. I met Colonel Herman, who says there is no danger at all, and the two Mansfields, who are gone as specials, to get hot, dusty, and tired nothing else. I will send down a letter by the latest post." April n, EVENING. "The events of a week have been crowded into a few hours. I was up till 4 this morning, writing posting placards under Maurice's auspices, one of which is to be got out to-morrow morning, the rest when we can get money. Could you not beg a few sovereigns Address to Workmen. 95 somewhere, to help these poor wretches to the truest alms ? to words texts from the Psalms, anything which may keep one man from cutting his brother's throat to-morrow or Friday ? Pray, pray, help us. Maurice has given me the highest proof of confi- dence. He has taken me into counsel, and we are to have meet- ngs for prayer and study, when I come up to London, and we are to bring out a new set of real ' Tracts for the Times,' addressed to the higher orders. Maurice is d la hauteur des circonstances de- termined to make a decisive move. He says: 'If the Oxford tracts did wonders, why should not we ? Pray for us. A glorious future is opening, and both Maurice and Ludlow seem to have driven away all my doubts and sorrows, and I see the blue sky again and my Father's face ! " On Wednesday, the i2th, all was still quiet, and this placard which he had written was posted up, in London. " WORKMEN OF ENGLAND ! " You say that you are wronged. Many of you are wronged ; and many besides yourselves know it. Almost all men who have heads and hearts know it above all, the working clergy know it. They go into your houses, they see the shameful filth and dark- ness* in which you are forced to live crowded together ; they see your children growing up in ignorance and temptation, for want of fit education ; they see intelligent and well-read men among you, shut out from a Freeman's just right of voting ; and they see too the noble patience and self-control with which you have as yet borne these evils. They see it, and God sees it. " WORKMEN OF ENGLAND ! You have more friends than you think for. Friends who expect nothing from you, but who love you, because you are their brothers, and who fear God, and there- fore dare not neglect you, His children ; men who are drudging and sacrificing themselves to get you your rights ; men who know what your rights are, better than you know yourselves, who are trying to get for you something nobler than charters and dozens of Acts of Parliament more useful than this ' fifty thousandth share in a Talker in the National Palaver at Westminster'! can give you. You may disbelieve them, insult them you cannot stop their working for you, beseeching you as you love yourselves, to turn back from the precipice of riot, which ends in the gulf of universal distnist, stagnation, starvation. " You think the Charter would make you free would to God it would ! The Charter is not bad ; if the men who use it are not bad ! But will the Charter make you free ? Will it free you from : The Window tax was not then taken off. f Carlyle. 96 Charles Kingsley. slavery to ten-pound bribes? Slavery to beer and gin ? Slavery to every spouter who flatters your self-conceit, and stirs up bitter- ness and headlong rage in you ? That, I guess, is real slavery ; to be a slave to one's own stomach, one's own pocket, one's own temper. Will the Charter cure that ? Friends, you want more than Acts of Parliament can give. " Englishmen ! Saxons ! Workers of the great, cool-headed, strong-handed nation of England, the workshop of the world, the leader of freedom for 700 years, men say you have common-sense ! then do not humbug yourselves into meaning ' licence,' when you cry for 'liberty;' who would dare refuse you freedom? for the Al- mighty God, and Jesus Christ, the poor Man, who died for poor men, will bring it about for you. though all the Mammonites of the earth were against you. A nobler day is dawning for England, a day of freedom, science, industry! " But there will be no true freedom without virtue, no true science without religion, no true industry without the fear of God, and love to your fellow-citizens. " Workers of England, be wise, and then you must be free, for you will \>tfit to be free. . " A WORKING PARSON." On the evening of the i2th, Archdeacon Hare, Mr. Maurice, and this little group of friends assembled at Mr. John Parker's rooms, West Strand, whence he writes home, PARKER'S, STRAND, April 12, 6 P.M. " . . . I really cannot go home this afternoon. I have spent it with Archdeacon Hare, and Parker, starting a new periodical a Penny ' People's Friend,' in which Maurice, Hare, Ludlo\v, Mansfield, and I, &c. are going to set to work, to supply the place of the defunct 'Saturday Magazine.' 1 send you my first placard. Maurice is delighted with it. I cannot tell you the interest which it has excited with every one who has seen it. It brought the tears into old Parker's eyes, who was once a working printer's boy. I have got already 2 los. towards bringing out more, and Maurice is subscription-hunting for me. He took me to Jelf to- day, the King's College principal, who received me very kindly, and expressed himself very anxious to get me the professorship, and will write to me as soon as the advertisements are out. I will be down at Winchfield to-morrow. Kiss the babes for me. Parker begs to remark that he has not been thrown into the Trafalgar fountain." On the i3th he returned to Eversley much exhausted, and preached on the Chartist riots to his own people the following Mr. Hughes Recollections. 97 Sunday. And now working in his parish, writing for the " Politics," pieparing his lecture for Queen's College, and sending in testimo- nials* for a professorship at King's College, for which Mr. Maurice had proposed him to the Council, filled up every moment of time. The various writers for the " Politics," including Mr. Conington, were continually coming to Eversley to talk over their work and consult "Parson Lot." As one of the few survivors of those most intimately associated with the author of " Alton Locke," his friend, Mr. Tom Hughes, has written an eloquent preface to a fresh reprint of that work and of " Cheap Clothes, and Nasty,' 1 from which he has kindly allowed the following extracts to be used. Mr. Hughes, speaking of the distinct period of Charles Kingsley's life extending from 1848 to 1856, says : ". . . My first meeting with him was in the autumn of 1847, at the house of Mr. Maurice, who had lately been appointed Reader of Lincoln's Inn. No parochial work is attached to that post, so Mr. Maurice had undertaken the charge of a small district in the parish in which he lived, and had set a number of young men, chiefly students of the Inns of Court, who had been attracted by his teaching, to work in it. Once a week, on Monday evenings, they used to meet at his house for tea, when their own work was reported upon and talked over. Suggestions were made and plans considered ; and afterwards a chapter of the Bible was read and discussed. Friends and old pupils of Mr. Maurice's, residing in the country, or in distant parts of London, were in the habit of coming occasionally to these meetings, amongst whom was Charles Kingsley. "His poem, f and the high regard and admiration which Mr. Maurice had for him, made him a notable figure in that small society, and his presence was always eagerly looked for. What impressed me most about him when we first met was, his affection- ate deference to Mr. Maurice, and the vigor and incisiveness of everything he said and did. He had the power of cutting out what he meant in a few clear words, beyond any one I have ever met. The next thing that struck one was, the ease with which he could turn from playfulness, or even broad humor, to the deepest earnest. At first I think this startled most persons, until they came to find * These testimonials were chiefly based on the historic power displayed in the "Saint's Tragedy," and on his own high personal character, from the Bishop of his Diocese, Archdeacon Hare, and many other friends. f " The Saint's Tragedy." 7 98 Charles Kingsley. out the real deep nature of the man ; and that his broadest humor had its root in a faith which realized, with extraordinary vividness, the fact that God's Spirit is actively abroad in the world, and that Christ is in every man, and made him hold fast, even in his saddest moments, and sad moments were not infrequent with him, the assurance that, in spite of all appearances, the world was going right, and would go right somehow, 'Not your way, or my way, but God's way.' The contrast of his humility and audacity, of his dis- trust in himself and confidence in himself, was one of those puzzles which meet us daily in this world of paradox. But both qualities gave him a peculiar power for the work he had to do at that time, with which the name of Parson Lot is associated. It was at one of these gatherings, towards the end of 1847 or early in 1848, when Kingsley found himself in a minority of one, that he said jokingly, he felt much as Lot must have felt in the Cities of the Plain, when he seemed as one that mocked to his sons-in-law. The name Parson Lot was then and there suggested, and adopted by him, as a familiar nom de plume. He used it from 1848 up to 1856 ; at first constantly, latterly much more rarely. But the name was chiefly made famous by his writings in 'Politics for the People,' ' The Christian Socialist,' and the ' Journal of Association,' three periodicals which covered the years from '48 to '52 ; by ' Alton Locke,' and by tracts and pamphlets, of which the best known, ' Cheap Clothes, and Nasty,' is now republished. " In order to understand and judge the sayings and writings of Parson Lot fairly, it is necessary to recall the condition of the England of that day. Through the winter of 1847-8, amidst wide- spread distress, the cloud of discontent, of which chartism was the most violent symptom, had been growing darker and more menac- ing, while Ireland was only held down by main force. The break- ing out of the revolution on the Continent in February increased the danger. In March there were riots in London, Glasgow, Edin- burgh, Liverpool, and other large towns. On April 7th, 'the Crown and Government Security Bill,' commonly called ' the Gagging Act,' was introduced by the Government, the first reading carried by 265 to 24, and the second, a few days later, by 452 to 35. On the loth of April the Government had to fill London with troops, and put the Duke of Wellington in command, who barricaded the bridges and Downing street, garrisoned the Bank and other public buildings, and closed the Horse Guards. When the momentary crisis had passed, the old soldier declared in the House of Lords, that no great society had ever suffered as London had during the preceding days, while the Home Secretary telegraphed to all the chief magis- trates of the kingdom the joyful news that the peace had been kept in London. In April, the Lord Chancellor, in introducing the Crown and. Government Security Bill in the House of Lords, re- ferred to the fact, that 'meetings were doily held, not only in Mr. Hughes Recollections. 99 London, but in most of the manufacturing towns, the avowed object of which was to array the people against the constituted authority of these realms.' For months afterwards the Chartist movement, though plainly subsiding, kept the Government in constant anxiety ; and again in June, 1848, the Bank, the Mint, the Custom House, and other public offices were filled with troops, and the Houses of Parliament were not only garrisoned but provisioned as if for a siege. " From that time, all fear of serious danger passed away. The Chartists were completely discouraged, and their leaders in prison ; and the upper and middle classes were recovering rapidly from the alarm which had converted a million of them into special con- stables, and were beginning to doubt whether the crisis had been so serious after all, whether the disaffection had ever been more than skin deejx At this juncture a series of articles appeared in the Morning Chronicle, on London labor and the London poor, which startled the well-to-do classes out of their jubilant and scornful attitude, and disclosed a state of things which made all fair-minded people wonder, not that there had been violent speaking and some rioting, but that the metropolis had escaped the scenes which had lately been enacted in Paris, Vienna, Berlin, and other Continental capitals. "It is only by an effort that one can now realize the strain to which the nation was subjected during that winter and spring, and which, of course, tried every individual man also, according to the depth and earnestness of his political and social convictions and sympathies. The group of men who were working under Mr. Maurice were no exceptions to the rule. The work of teaching and visiting was not, indeed, neglected, but the larger questions which were being so strenuously mooted the points of the people's charter, the right of public meeting, the attitude of the laboring class to the other classes, absorbed more* and more of their atten- tion. Kingsley was very deeply impressed with the gravity and danger of the crisis more so, I think, than almost any of his friends ; probably because, as a country parson, he was more directly in contact with one class of the poor than any of them. How deeply he felt for the agricultural poor, how faithfully he re- flected the passionate and restless sadness of the time, may be read in the pages of ' Yeast,' which came out later in ' Fraser.' As the winter months went on this sadness increased, and seriously affected his health."* On the 6th of May the first number of " Politics for the People " appeared. Its regular contributors were nearly all university men, * From Mr. Thomas Hughes's Preface to "Alton Locke," and "Cheap Clothes, and Nasty," by Parson Lot. ioo Charles Kingsley. clergymen of the Church of England, London barristers, men of science, and among them Archdeacon Hare, Sir Arthur (then Mr.) Helps, and a distinguished London physician. A few letters from workingmen, one signed " One of the wicked Chartists of Ken- nington Common," were readily admitted. Three papers on the National Gallery and British Museum, three letters to Chartists, some poetry, and a tale, "The Nun's Pool," which was rejected by the publisher as too strong, were Mr. Kingsley' s only contribu- tions. His weekly lecture at Queen's College, with two sermons every Sunday, and his indefatigable parish work (he had then no curate), prevented his doing more for the " Politics." It was a remarkable though short-lived publication, and those whose opinions of the " Radicals, Socialists, Chartists," who set it on foot, were formed by the public press, without reading the book itself would be surprised at the loyal, conservative, serious tone of its contents, and the gravity, if not severity, with which it attacked physical force Chartism, monster meetings, and the demand for universal suffrage by men who had neither education nor moral self-government to qualify them for a vote. But to return to Mr. Hughes' s Preface. " But it may be said, apart from his writings, did not Parson Lot declare himself a Chartist in a public meeting in London ; and did he not preach in a London pulpit a political sermon,* which brought up the incum- bent, who had invited him, to protest from the altar against the doctrine which had just been delivered ? "Yes ! both statements are true. Here are the facts as to the speech. In the early summer of 1848, some of those who felt with Charles Kingsley that the ' People's Charter' had not had fair play or courteous treatment, and that those who signed it had real wrongs to complain of, put themselves into communication with the lead- ers, and met and talked with them. At last it seemed that the time was come for some more public meeting, and one was called at the Cranbourn Tavern, over which Mr. Maurice presided. After the president's address several very bitter speeches followed, and a vehement attack was especially directed against the Church and and clergy. The meeting waxed warm, and seemed likely to come to no good, when Kingsley arose, folded his arms across his chest, threw his head back, and began with the stammer which always came at first when much moved, but which fixed every one's atten- tion at once ' I am a Church of England Parson ' a long pause 'and a Chartist;' and then he went on to explain how far he * This incident belongs to a later period, 1851, and will be given in its place. Mr. Hughes Recollections. 101 thought them right in their claim for a reform of Parliament ; how deeply he sympathized with their sense of the injustice of the law as it affected them ; how ready he was to help in all ways to get these things set right ; and then to denounce their methods in very much the same terms as I have already quoted from his letters to the Chartists. Probably no one who was present ever heard a speech which told more at the time. I had a singular proof that the effect did not pass away. The most violent speaker on that occasion was one of the staff of the leading Chartist newspaper. I lost sight of him entirely for more than twenty years, and saw him again, a little grey shrivelled man, by Kingsley's side, at the grave of Mr. Maurice, in the cemetery at Hampstead. " The experience of this meeting encouraged its promoters to continue the series of Tracts, which they did with a success which surprised no one more than themselves. " The fact is, that Charles Kingsley was born a fighting man, and believed in bold attack. ' No human power ever beat back a resolute forlorn hope,' he used to say ; ' to be got rid of, they must be blown back with grape and canister, because the attacking party have all the universe behind them, the defence only that small part which is shut up in their walls.' And he felt most strongly at this time that hard fighting was needed. ' It is a pity,' he writes to Mr. Ludlow, ' that telling people what's right won't make them do it ; but not a new fact, though the world has quite forgotten it, and assures you that the dear sweet incompris mankind only wants to be told the way to the millennium to walk willingly into it which is a lie. " The memorials of his many controversies lie about in the periodicals of that time, and any one who cares to hunt them up \fill be well repaid, and struck with the vigor of the defence, and still more with the complete change in public opinion which has brought the PLnglancl of to-day clean round to the side of Parson Lot. The most complete, perhaps, of his fugitive pieces of this kind, is the pamphlet ' Who are the Friends of Order? ' published by J \V. Parker & Son, in answer to a very fair and moderate arti- cle in ' Fraser's Magazine.' The Parson there points out how he and his friends were ' cursed by demagogues as aristocrats, and by tories as democrats, when in reality they were neither,' and urges that the very fact of the continent being overrun with communist fanatics, is the best argument for preaching association here." * To those who cannot look back on the political storms of 1848-49, his contributions on the subject of Art, on the pictures in * Preface to " Alton Locke," by T. Hughes. 1876. IO2 Charles Kings ley. the National Gallery, and on the British Museum will be more con- genial. This last we give entire : BRITISH MUSEUM. " My friend, Will Willow Wren is bringing before our readers the beauty and meaning of the living natural world the great Green- book which holds ' the open secret,' as Goethe calls it, seen by all, but read by, alas ! how few. And I feel as much as he, that nature is infinitely more wonderful than the highest art ; and in the com- monest hedgeside leaf lies a mystery and beauty greater than that of the greatest picture, the noblest statue as infinitely greater as God's work is infinitely greater than man's. But to those who have no leisure to study nature in the green fields (and there are now-a-days too many such, though the time may come when all will have that blessing), to such I say, go to the British Musem ; there at least, if you cannot go to nature's wonders, some of nature's wonders are brought to you. "The British Museum is my glory and joy ; because it is almost the only place which is free to English citizens as such where the poor and the rich may meet together, and before those works of God's spirit, 'who is no respecter of persons,' feel that 'the Lord is the maker of them all.' In the British Museum and the Na- tional Gallery alone the Englishman may say, ' Whatever my coat or my purse, I am an Englishman, and therefore I have a right here. I can glory in these noble halls, as if they were my own house.' " English commerce, the joint enterprise and industry of the poor sailor as well as the rich merchant, brought home these treas- ures from foreign lands, and those glorious statues though it was the wealth and taste of English noblemen and gentlemen (who ih that proved themselves truly noble and gentle) which placed them here, yet it was the genius of English artists men at once above and below all ranks men who have worked their way up, not by money or birth, but by worth and genius, which taught the noble and wealthy the value of those antiques, and which proclaimed their beauty to the world. The British Museum is a truly equaliz- ing place, in the deepest and most spiritual sense ; therefore I love it. " And it gives the lie, too, to that common slander, ' that the English are not worthy of free admission to valuable and curious collections, because they have such a trick of seeing with their fin- gers ; such a trick of scribbling their names, of defiling and disfigur- ing works of art. On the Continent it may do, but you cannot trust the English.' "This has been, like many other untruths, so often repeated, that people now take it for granted ; but I believe that it is utterly Paper on the British Museum. 103 groundless, and I say so on the experience of the British Museum and the National Gallery. In the only two cases, I believe, in which injury has been done to anything in either place, the de- stroyers were neither artisans, nor even poor reckless heathen street-boys, but persons who had received what is too often mis- called ' a liberal education.' The truth is, that where people pay their money (as they do in some great houses) for the empty pleas- lire of staring at luxuries which they cannot enjoy, vulgar curiosity too often ends in jealous spite ; and where people consider them- selves unjustly excluded from works of art, which ought, as far as possible, to be made as free as the common air, mean minds will sometimes avenge their fancied wrongs by doing wrong themselves. But national property will always be respected, because all will be content, while they feel that they have their rights, and all will be careful while they feel that they have a share in the treasure. " Would that the rich, who, not from selfishness so much as from thoughtlessness, lock up the splendid collections from the eyes of all but a favored few, would go to the British Museum in Easter week ! Would that the Deans and Chapters, who persist (in spite of the struggles of many of their own body) in making penny-peep- shows of God's houses, built by public piety and benevolence of St. Paul's and Westminster Abbey, which belongs not to them at all, but to God and the people of England, would go to the British Museum in Easter week and see there hundreds of thousands, of every rank and age, wandering past sculptures and paintings, which would be ruined by a blow past jewels and curiosities, any one of which would buy many a poor soul there a month's food and lodging only protected by a pane of glass, if by that ; and then see not a thing disfigured much less stolen. Everywhere order, care, attention, honest pride in their country's wealth and science ; earnest reverence for the mighty works of God, and of the God- inspired. 1 say, the people of England prove themselves worthy of free admission to all works of art, and it is therefore the duty of those who can to help them to that free admission. " What a noble, and righteous, and truly brotherly plan it would be, if all classes would join to form a free National Gallery of Art and Science, which might combine the advantages of the present Polytechnic, Society of Arts, and British Institution, gratis. Manu- facturers and men of science might send thither specimens of their new inventions. The rich might send, for a few months in the year as they do now to the British Institution ancient and modern pictures, and not only pictures, but all sorts of curious works of art and nature, which are now hidden in their drawing- rooms and libraries. There might be free liberty to copy any ob- ject, on the copyist's name and residence being registered. And surely artists and men of science might be found, with enough of the spirit of patriotism and love, to explain gratuitously to all com- 104 Charles Kings ley. ers, whatever their rank or class, the wonders of the Museum. I really believe that if once the spirit of brotherhood got abroad among us ; if men once saw that here was a vast means of educat- ing, and softening and uniting those who have no leisure to study, and few means of enjoyment, except the gin-shop and Cremorne Gardens ; if they could but once feel that here was a project, equally blessed for rich and poor, the money for it would be at once forthcoming from many a rich man, who is longing to do good, if he could only be shown the way ; and from many a poor jour- neyman, who would gladly contribute his mite to a truly national museum, founded on the principles of spiritual liberty, equality and fraternity. All that is wanted is the spirit of self-sacrifice, patriot- ism and brotherly love which God alone can give which 1 be- lieve He is giving more and more in these very days. " I never felt this more strongly than some six months ago, as I was looking in at the windows of a splendid curiosity-shop in Oxford Street, at a case of humming-birds. I was gloating over the beauty of those feathered jewels, and then wondering what was the meaning, what was the use of it all ? why those exquisite little creatures should have been hidden for ages, in all their splen- dors of ruby and emerald and gold, in the South American forests, breeding and fluttering and dying, that some dozen out of all those millions might be brought over here to astonish the eyes of men. And as I asked myself, why were all these boundless varieties, these treasures of unseen beauty, created ? my brain grew dizzy between pleasure and thought ; and, as always happens when one is most innocently delighted, ' I turned to share the joy,' as Wordsworth says ; and next to me stood a huge, brawny coal- heaver, in his shovel hat, and white stockings and high-lows, gazing at the humming-birds as earnestly as myself. As I turned he turned, and 1 saw a bright manly face, with a broad, soot grimed forehead, from under which a pair of keen flashing eyes gleamed wondering, smiling sympathy into mine. In that moment we felt ourselves friends. If we had been Frenchmen, we should, 1 sup- pose, have rushed into each other's arms and 'fraternised' upon the spot. As we were a pair of dumb, awkward Phiglishmen, we only gazed a half-minute, staring into each other's eyes, with a delightful feeling of understanding each other, and then burst out both at once with 'Isn't that beautiful ? ' ' Well, that is ! ' And .then both turned back again, to stare at our humming-birds. " I never felt more thoroughly than at that minute (though, thank God, I had often felt it before) that all men were brothers ; that fraternity and equality were not mere political doctrines, but blessed God-ordained facts ; that the party-walls of rank and fashion and money were but a paper prison of our own making, which we might break through any moment by a single hearty and kindly feeling ; that the one spirit of God was given without Devotion to Duty. 105 respect of persons ; that the beautiful things were beautiful alike to the coal-heaver and the parson ; and that before the wondrous works of God and of God's inspired genius, the rich and the poor might meet together, and feel that whatever the coat or the creed may be, ' A man's a man for a' that,' and one Lord the maker of them all. " For believe me, my friends, rich and poor and I beseech you to think deeply over this great truth that men will never be joined in true brotherhood by mere plans to give them a self-inter- est in common, as the Socialists have tried to do. No ; to feel for each other, they must first feel with each other. To have their sympathies in common, they must have not one object of gain, but an object of admiration in common ; to know that they are brothers, they must feel that they have one Father ; and a way to feel that they have one common Father, is to see each other wondering, side by side, at His glorious works ! " PARSON LOT." He had a sore battle to go through at this time with his own heart, and with those friends and relations, religious and worldly, who each and all from their own particular standpoint deprecated the line he took, and urged him to withdraw from this sympathy with the people, which was likely to spoil his prospects in life. In reference to this he writes to his wife : " . . . I will not be a liar. I will speak in season and out of season. I will not shun to declare the whole counsel of God. I will not take counsel with flesh and blood, and flatter myself into the dream that while every man on earth, from Maurice back to Abel, who ever tried to testify against the world, has been laughed at, misunderstood, slandered, and that, bitterest of all, by the very people he loved best, and understood best, I alone am to escape. My path is clear, and I will follow in it. He who died for me, and who gave me you, shall I not trust Him through what- soever new and strange paths He may lead me ?...." TO MR. LUDLOW. EVERSLEY, July, 1848. " I should have answered yesterday your noble and kind letter, had not my afternoon been employed in forcing a cruel, lazy farmer to shoot a miserable horse which was rotting alive in front of my house, and superintending its death by aid of one of my own bullets. What an awful wonderful thing a violent death is, even in a dumb beast ! I would not have lost the sight for a great deal. But now to business. You take a strange way to frighten a man off from novel-writing, by telling a man that he may become the greatest io6 Charles Kingsley. novelist of the age. If your good opinion of me was true, I should have less fear for myself, for a man could not become that in this wonderful era, without having ideas and longings which would force him to become something far better than a novelist ; but for myself, chaotic, piecemeal, passionate, ' lachemar ' as I am, I have fears as great as your own. I know the miserable, peevish, lazy, conceited, faithless, prayerless wretch I am, but I know this, too, that One is guiding me, and driving me when I will not be guided, who will make me, and has made me go His way and do His work, by fair means or by foul. He set rne on writing this 'novel.' He has' taught me things about the heart of fast sporting men, and about the condition of the poor, and our duty to them, which I have no doubt He has taught many more, but He has not set any one else to speak about them in the way in which I am speaking. He has given me a certain artistic knack of utterance (nothing but a knack), but He has done more. He has made the ' Word of the Lord like fire within my bones,' giving me no peace till I have spoken out. I know I may seem presumptuous to myself most of all, because I know best the 'liar to my own idea' which I am. I know that He has made me a parish priest, and that that is the duty which lies nearest me, and that I may seem to be leaving my calling in novel-writing. But has He not taught me all these very things by my parish-priest life ? Did He, too, let. me become a strong, daring, sporting wild-man-of the- woods for nothing ? Surely the education which He has given me, so different from that which authors generally receive, points out to me a peculiar calling to preach on these points, from my own experience, as it did to good old Isaac Walton, as it has done in our day to that truly noble man, Captain Marryat. Therefore I must believe ' Se tu segui la tua Stella ' with Dante, that He who ordained my star will not lead me into temptation, but through it, as Maurice says. Without Him all places and methods of life are equally dangerous with Him, all equally safe. Pray for me, for in myself I am weaker of purpose than a lost greyhound, lazier than a dog in rainy weather. ' But I feel intensely the weight of your advice to write no more novels. Why should I ? I have no more to say. W T hen this is done I must set to and read. The symbolism of nature and the meaning of history must be my studies. Believe me I long for that day the pangs of intellectual labor, the burden of spiritual pregnancy, are not pleasant things. A man cannot write in the fear of God without running against the devil at every step. He cannot sit down to speak the truth without disturbing in his own soul a hornet swarm of lies. Your hack-writer of no creed, your bigot Polyphemus, whose one eye just helps him to see to eat men, they do not understand this ; their pens run on joyful and light of heart. But no more talk about myself. Letter to his Daughter. 107 " Read a poem written by an acquaintance of mine, Clough of Oxford, 'The Bothie of Toper-na-Voirlich,' and tell me if you do not think it a noble specimen of Pantagruelism, and a hopeful sign for 'Young Oxford,' of which he is one of the leaders " Having been appointed Professor of English Literature at Queen's College, Harley Street, he gave his first introductory lecture on May ijth, and continued lecturing weekly. In the summer he made an expedition with Mr. Maurice to Crowland Abbey, near Peterborough, which deeply impressed him at the time, and formed one of the strong features in his story of " Hereward " at a later date. " We spent there a priceless day,'' he says; "these days with Maurice have taught me more than I can tell. Like all great things, he grows upon one more and more." He wrote several letters to his little daughter at this time, full of poetry and natural history, of which one is given. TO HIS LITTLE GIRL ROSE. Dux FORD, Cambridge. "MY DEAR MlSS ROSE, " I am writing in such a curious place. A mill where they grind corn and bones, and such a funny little room in it full of stuffed birds. And there is a flamingo, such a funny red bird, with long legs and a long neck, as big as Miss Rose, and sharks' jaws, and an armadillo all over great scales, and now I will tell you about the stork. He is called Peter, and here is a picture of him. See what long legs he has, and a white body and black wings, and he catches all the frogs and snails, and eats them, and when he is cross, he opens his long bill, and makes such a horrible clattering like a raHle. And he comes to the window at tea time, to eat bread and butter, and he is so greedy, and he gobbled down a great pinch of snuff out of Daddy's box, and he was so sick, and we all laughed at him, for being so foolish and greedy. And do you know there are such curious frogs here that people eat, and there were never any found in England before Mr. Thurnall found them, and he sent them to the British Museum and the wise men were so pleased, and sent him leave to go to the British Museum and see all the wonderful things whenever he liked. And he has got such beautiful butterflies in boxes, and whole cupboards full of birds' eggs, and a river full of beautiful fish, and Daddy went fishing yesterday, and caught an immense trout, very nearly four pounds weight, and he raged and ran about in the river so long, and Daddy was quite tired before he could get him out. And to-day Daddy is going back to Cambridge to get a letter from his dear home. And do you know when Mr. Thurnall saw me drawing the stork, he gave io8 Charles Kings ley. me a real live stork of my own to bring home to Miss Rose, and we will put him in the kitchen garden to run about what fun ! And to-morrow Daddy is going to see the beautiful pictures at the Fitz- william Museum, and the next day he is going to fish at Shelford, and the next day, perhaps, he is coming home to his darlings at Eversley Rectory, for he does not know what to do without them. How happy Miss Rose must be with her dear mother. She must say, 'thank God for giving me such a darling mother ! ' " Kiss her for me and Maurice, and now good-bye, and I will bring home the stork. " Your own DADDY." His acquaintance with Mr. Thomas Cooper, Chartist, was made this year, and out of it grew a long correspondence, of which this is the first letter. The rest will come at a later period. EVERSLEY, June 19, 1848. " Ever since I read your brilliant poem, ' The Purgatory of Sui- cides,' and its most affecting preface, I have been possessed by a desire to thrust myself, at all risks, into your acquaintance. The risk which I felt keenly, was the fear that you might distrust me. as a clergyman ; having, I am afraid, no great reason to love that body of men. Still, I thought, the poetic spirit ought to be a bond of communion between us. Shall God make us brother poets, as well as brother men, and we refuse to fraternise ? I thought also that you, if you have a poet's heart, as well as the poet's brain which you have manifested, ought to be more able than other men to appreciate and sympathise with my feelings towards ' the work- ing classes.' "You can understand why I held back from shame a false shame, perhaps, lest you should fancy me a hypocrite. But my mind was made up when I found an attack in the ' Common- wealth,' on certain papers which I had published in the 'Politics of the People,' under the name of Parson Lot. Now I had hailed \vkh cordial pleasure the appearance of the ' Commonwealth,' and sympathised thoroughly with it and here was this very ' Common- . wealth' attacking me on some of the very points on which I most agreed with it. It seemed to me intolerable to be so misunder- stood. It had been long intolerable to me, to be regarded as an object of distrust and aversion by thousands of my countrymen, my equals in privilege, and too often, alas ! far my superiors in worth, just because I was a clergyman, the very office which ought to have testified above all others, for liberty, equality, brotherhood, for time and eternity. I felt myself bound, then, to write to you, to see if among the nobler spirits of the working classes I could not make one friend who would understand me. My ancestors Prostration. 109 fought in Cromwell's army, and left all for the sake of God and liberty, among the pilgrim fathers, and here were men accusing me of 'mediaeval tyranny.' 1 would shed the last drop of my life blood for the social and political emancipation of the people of England, as God is my witness ; and here are the very men for whom I would die, fancying me an ' aristocrat.' It is not enough for me that they are mistaken in me. I want to work with them. I want to realize my brotherhood with them. I want some one like yourself, intimately acquainted with the mind of the working classes, to give me such an insight into their life and thoughts, as may enable me to consecrate my powers effectually to their ser- vice. For them I have lived for several years. 1 come to you to ask you if you can tell me how to live more completely for them. If you distrust and reject my overtures, I shall not be astonished pained I shall be and you must know as well as I, that there is no bitterer pain than to be called a rogue because you are honester than your neighbors, and a time-server, because you have intellect enough to see both sides of a question. " In the autumn he quite broke down, while writing " Yeast," as a series of papers in " Fraser's Magazine." He had not recovered the excitement of the Chartist movement, and having at that time no curate, every hour was occupied with sermon writing, cottage visiting, and he was forced to write "Yeast" at night when the day's work was over, and the house still. This was too much for brain and nerves, and one Sunday evening, after his two services had been got through with difficulty, he fell asleep, slept late into the next day, and awoke so exhausted that his medical man was alarmed at his weakness, ordered complete rest and change to Bournemouth. From thence, after a month's rest, he returned to Eversley only to sink again. TO AN OXFORD FRIEND. EVERSLEY, December, 1848. " I have delayed answering your letter because I did not wish to speak in a hurry on a subject so important to you. I am afraid that 's report of my opinion has pained you really it ought not : I spoke only as a friend and in sincerity. I cannot advise you to publish the poems of yours which I have seen at least for some year?, and I will give you my reasons " First, you write too easily ; that same imp 'facility' must not be let to ruin you, as it helped to ruin Theodore Hook. You must never put two words or lines where one will do ; the age is too busy and hurried to stand it. Again, you want to see a great I io Charles Kings ley. deal more, and study more that is the only way to have materi- als. Poets cannot create till they have learnt to recombine. The study of man and nature ; the study of poets and fiction writers of all schools is necessary. And, believe me, you can never write like Byron, or anybody else worth hearing, unless by reading and using poetry of a very different school from his. The early dramat- ists, Shakespeare above all ; and not less the two schools which made Shakespeare ; the Northern ballad literature ; nay even, I find the Norse myths. And, on the other hand, the Romance literature must be known, to acquire that objective power of embodying thoughts, without which poetry degenerates into the mere intellec- tual reflective, and thence into the metrical-prose didactic. Read, mark, and learn, and do not write. I never wrote five hundred lines in my life before the 'Saint's Tragedy,' but from my childhood I had worked at poetry from Southey's ' Thalaba,' Ariosto, Spen- ser, and the ' Old Ballads,' through almost every school, classic and modern, except the Spanish, and, alas ! a very little German, and that by translations. And I have not read half enough. I have been studying all physical sciences which deal with phe- nomena ; I have been watching nature in every mood ; I have been poring over sculptures and paintings since I was a little boy and all I can say is, I do not know half enough to be a poet in the nineteenth century, and have cut the IVluse/n? tempore. " Again, you have an infinity to learn about rhythm and metre, and about the coloring and chiaroscuro of poetry ; how to break up your masses, and how to make masses ; high lights and shad- ows; major and minor keys of metre ; rich coloring alternating with delicate. All these things have to be learnt, if you wish to avoid monotony, to arrest the interest, to gain the cardinal secret of giving ' continual surprise in expectation,' and ' expectation in surprise.' "Now don't be angry with me. I think you have a poetic faculty in you, from the mere fact of your having been always lusting to get your thoughts into poetry ; and because I think you have one, therefore I don't want you to publish, or even write, till you have learnt enough really to enable you to embody your thoughts. They are good and vigorous, and profitable to the age ; but they are as yet too bare-backed you must go clothes- hunting for the poor naked babbies. Let me hear from you again, for I am very much interested in all you do, and your true friend and well wisher." After a second prostration of strength, he was advised to give up all work entirely, and the winter and spring were spent in North Devon, at llfracombe and Lynmouth. CHAPTER VIII. 1849. AGED 30. Winter in Devonshire Ilfracombe Decides on taking Pupils Correspondence Visit to London Social Questions Fever at Eversley Renewed Illness Returns to Devonshire Cholera in England Sanitary Work Bermondsey Letter from Mr. C. K. Paul. THIS year began in ill-health at Ilfracombe, where Mr. Maurice with other friends came to visit him, and went away depressed at seeing the utter exhaustion, mental and bodily, of one who had been the life and soul of their band of workers in 1848. He was able to do nothing for months riding, walking, and even conversation were too much for him ; and wandering on the sea-shore, collecting shells and zoophytes, with his wife and children, was all the exertion that he could bear, while dreaming over " The Autobiography of a Cockney Poet," which in the autumn was to develop into "Alton Locke." With much difficulty he got through an article on Mrs. Jamieson's Sacred and Legendary Art" for " Fraser's Magazine," which he had promised.* Mr. Fronde came to him from Oxford in February, and then and there made acquaintance with his future wife, Mrs. Kingsley's sister, who was also at Ilfracombe. There are few letters to mark the winter and spring of 1849, anc ' f ewer poems. During a solitary ride on Morte Sands, he composed some elegiacs, of which he speaks in the following letter : TO J. MALCOLM LUDLOW, ESQ. Il.FRACOMBE, February, 1849. " .... I send you the enclosed lines as some proof that the exquisite elegiac metre suits our English language (as indeed everything beautiful does). They are but a fragment. You were the cause of their not being finished ; for your kindness swept away * Since published in his Miscellanies. 112 Charles Kingsley. the evil spirit of despondency, and I hold it a sin to turn on the Werterian tap, of malice prepense. If they are worth finishing, I shall have sorrows enough ere I die, no doubt, to put me in the proper vein for them again. I send them off to escape the torment of continually fidgeting and polishing at them ; for whatever I may say in defence of my own case, I dare not let anything go forth, except as highly finished as I can make it. Show them to the 'oak of the mountain,' the Master (Mr. Maurice), he will recognize the place, and the feeling of much of them, and ask him whether, with a palinode, setting forth how out of winter must come spring, out of death life, they would not be tolerably true Wearily stretches the land to the surge, and the surge to the cloudland ; Wearily onward I ride, watching the water alone. Not as of old, like Homeric Achilles, /cyrfe'i ya/wv, Joyous knight errant of God, thirsting for labor and strife. No more on magical steed borne free through the regions of ether, But, like the hack which I ride, selling my sinew for gold. Fruit-bearing autumn is gone ; let the sad, quiet winter hang o'er me What were the spring to a soul laden with sorrow and shame ? Blossoms would fret me with beauty ; my heart has no time to be -praise them ; Grey rock, bough, surge, cloud, waken no yearning within. Sing not, thou skylark above ! Even angels pass hushed by the weeper. Scream on, ye sea fowl ! my heart echoes your desolate cry. Sweep the dry sand on, thou wild wind, to drift o'er the shell and the sea-weed ; Sea-weed and shell, like my dreams, swept down the pitiless tide. Just is the wave which uptore us; 'tis Nature's own law which condemns us ; Woe to the weak who, in pride, build on the faith of the sand ! Joy to the oak of the mountain ; he trusts to the might of the rock-clefts; Deeply he mines, and in peace feeds on the wealth of the stone. " .... I have hope also of the book which I am writing, the Autobiography of a Cockney Poet, which has revealed itself to me so rapidly and methodically, that I feel it comes down from above, and that only my folly can spoil it which I pray against daily. " .... I never felt the reality and blessing of that church confession and absolution' more than I did in this morning's ser- vice. Thank you for all and every hint "Tell Charles Mansfield I have found to-day another huge comatula, and bottled him with his legs, by great dodging. I am always finding something fresh " Best love to all our friends. Poor Maurice ! But a little per- secution is a blessing to any man. Still it does make one sick to hear these quill-driving cowards and bigots attacking him." Taking Pupils. 113 The expenses of illness, and his inability to meet them by writing, obliged him now to think of some other means, and he consulted Mr. Maurice about taking pupils. Mr. Maurice wrote at once to Professor Thompson, now Master of Trinity, Cambridge : " Kingsley, who, 1 think, is known to you, has been disabled for some time, and has been obliged to leave his living. He is much better, and wishes very much for a pupil to prepare for orders or even for college. He is now at Ilfracombe. At Eversley he would have accommodation in a very pleasant house. I do not know a man more fitted for the work scarcely any one equally fitted. He is a good, accurate, and enthusiastic scholar, full of knowledge of all things about him, and delight in them ; and more likely to give a young man of the day a good direction in divinity, meeting his difficulties and dealing honestly with them, than any person I have fallen in with. His conversation is full of interest even when he is ill ; when he is well he is the freshest, freest hearted man in England. . . . His home is altogether most pleasant, and those who dwell in it. If you can give him help, I shall be most grateful to you. " Yours ever truly, " K D. MAURICE." He gives his own plan of teaching, or rather training a pupil, in a characteristic letter to Mrs. Scott, wife of Rev. A. J. Scott, after- wards Principal of Owens College, Manchester : " Will you excuse my burdening you with another word about pupils? .... I am not going to talk of what I can teach ; but what I should try to teach, would be principally physical science, history, English literature, and modern languages. In my eyes the question is not what to teach, but how to educate ; how to train not scholars, but men ; bold, energetic, methodic, liberal- minded, magnanimous. If 1 can succeed in doing that, I shall do what no salary can repay and what is not generally done, or ex- pected to be done, by private tutors " On the receipt of this letter, Mr. Scott remarked, "That is what is wanted, and it is what Charles Kingsley will do." Notwith- standing the efforts of his friends, the pupils were not forthcoming. His writings had caused a strong prejudice against him ; and it was not till the following year that he succeeded. The long waiting was repaid when the pupil came, and the labor, which throughout was a labor of love, was more than repaid, being spent on one who 8 H4 Charles Kingsley. realised the tutor's ideal in after life. That pupil will speak for him- self in another chapter. It had been a great sorrow to him to give up his work at Queen's College, and he was never able to resume it. Besides two intro- ductory lectures on literature and composition, instinct with genius. now out of print, he only delivered one course on Early English Literature. The Rev. Alfred Strettell took his place. From Clovelly, where he went with his wife's sister and Mr. Froude, he writes home : "Only a few lines, for the post starts before breakfast. We got here all safe. C. enjoyed herself by lying in misery at the bottom of the boat all the way. ... 1 cannot believe my eyes : the same place, the pavement, the same dear old smells, die dear old handsome loving faces again. It is as if I was a little boy again, or the place had stood still while all the world had been rushing and rumbling on past it ; and then I suddenly recollect your face, and those two ducks on the pier ; and it is no dream ; this is the dream, and I am your husband ; what have I not to thank God for ? 1 have been thanking Him ; but where can I stop ? We talk of sailing home again, as cheapest and pleasantest ; most probably Friday or Saturday. To-day- I lionize Charlotte over everything. Kiss the children for me." The following letter, addressed to a young man going over to Rome, though incomplete, is too valuable to omit. Several pages have been lost, which will account for any want of sequence. HARLEY HOUSE, CLIFTON, May u, 1849. MY DEAR SIR, " I have just heard from Charles Mansfield, to my inexpressi- ble grief, that you are inclined to join the Roman Communion ; and at the risk of being called impertinent, I cannot but write my whole heart to you. " What I say may be Trapd rdv Aoyov, after all ; if so, pray write and let me know what your real reasons are for such a step. I think, as one Christian man writing to another, I may dare to en- treat this of you. For believe me I am no bigot. I shall not trouble you with denunciations about the 'scarlet woman' or the ' little horn.' I cannot but regard with awe, at least, if not rever- ence, a form of faith which God thinks good enough still for one half (though it be the more brutal, profligate, and helpless half) of Europe. Believe me, I can sympathise with you. I have been through it ; I have longed for Rome, and boldly faced the conse- The Church of Rome. 115 quences of joining Rome ; and though I now have, thank God, cast all wish of change behind me years ago, as a great lying devil's temptation, yet I still long as ardently as ever to see in the Church of England much which only now exists, alas ! in the Church of Rome. Can I not feel for you ? Do I not long for a visible, one, organized Church ? Do 1 not shudder at the ghastly dulness of our services ? Do I not pray that I may see the day when the art and poetry of the nineteenth century shall be again among us, turned to their only true destination the worship of God ? Have I shed no bitter, bitter tears of shame and indignation in cathedral aisles, and ruined abbeys, and groaned aloud ' Ichabod, Ichabod, the glory is departed,' etc." [Here some pages are lost.] " Can you not commit the saving of your soul to Him that made your soul ? I think it will be in good keeping, unless you take it out of His hands, by running off where he has not put you. Did you never read how ' He that saveth his soul shall lose it.' Be- ware. " Had you been born an Italian Romanist I would have said to you, Don't leave Rome ; stay where you are and try to mend the Church of your fathers ; if it casts you out, the sin be on its own head ; and so I say to you. Do you want to know God's will about you ? What plainer signs of it, than the fact that he has made you, and educated you as a Protestant Englishman. Here, believe it believe the providentiam, ' Dei in rebus revelatam.' Here He intends you to work, and to do the duty which lies near- est. Hold what doctrines you will, but do not take yourself out of communion with your countrymen, to bind yourself to a sys- tem which is utterly foreign to us and our thoughts, and only by casting off which, have we risen to be the most mighty, and, with all our sins, perhaps the most righteous and pure of nations (a fact which the Jesuits do not deny). I assure you that they tell their converts that the reason why Protestant England is allowed to be so much more righteous than the Romish nations is to try the faith of the elect ! ! You will surely be above listening to such anile sophistry ! "Hut still, you think, 'you may be holier there than here.' Ah, sir, 'ccelum, non animum, mutant, qui trans mare currunt.' Ultramontanism will be a new system ; but not, I think, a new character. Certain outward acts, and certain inward feelings, which are all very nice, and right, and pleasant, will be made easier for you there than here : you will live so charmingly by rule and measure ; not a moment in the day but will be allotted out for you, with its appropriate acts of devotion. True, now you are a man, standing face to face with God ; then you will (believe one who knows) find yourself a machine, face to face, not with God, but with a priest and a system, and hosts of inferior deities, of which n6 Charles Kingsley. hereafter. Oh ! sir, you, a free-born Englishman, brought up in that liberty for which your forefathers died on scaffolds and in bat- tle-fields that liberty which begot a Shakspeare, a Raleigh, a Ba- con, Milton, Newton, Faraday, Brooke will you barter away that inestimable gift because Italian pedants, who know nothing of human nature but from the books of prurient celibates, tell you that they have got a surer 'dodge ' for saving your soul than those have, among whom God's will, not your own, has begotten and educated you ? But you ' will be able to rise to a greater holiness there.' Holiness, sir? Devoutness, you mean. The 'will of God' is your holiness already, and you may trust Him to perfect His will in you here for here He has put you if by holiness you mean godliness and manliness, justice and mercy, honesty and usefulness. But if by holiness you mean ' saintliness,' I quite agree that Rome is the place to get that, and a poor pitiful thing it is when it is got not God's ideal of a man, but an effeminate shaveling's ideal. Look at St. Francis de Sales, or St. Vincent de Paul's face, and then say, does not your English spirit loathe to see that 1 God made man in His image, not in an imaginary Virgin Mary's image. And do not fancy that you will really get any spiritual gain by going over. The very devotional system which will educe arid develop the souls of people born and bred up under it, and cast, constitu- tionally and by hereditary associations, into its mould, will only prove a dead leaden crushing weight on an Englishman, who has, as you have, tasted from his boyhood the liberty of the Spirit of God. You will wake, my dear brother, you will wake, not alto- gether, but just enough to find yourself not believing in Romish doctrines about saints and virgins, absolutions and indulgences, but only believing in believing them an awful and infinite differ- ence, on which I beseech you earnestly to meditate. You will find yourself crushing the voice of conscience, common-sense, and humanity I mean the voice of God within you, in order to swal- low down things at which your gorge rises in disgust. You will find the Romish practice as different from the Romish ideal as the English is from the English ideal, and you will find amid all your discontents and doubts, that the habits of religious excitement, and of leaning on priests whom you will neither revere nor trust for themselves, will have enchained you like the habits of a drunk- ard or an opium-eater, so that you must go back again and again for self-forgetfulness to the spiritual laudanum-bottle, which gives now no more pleasant dreams, but only painful heartache, and miserable depression afterwards. I know what I have seen and heard from eye-witnesses. " 1 know you may answer This may be all very fine, but if Rome be the only true Church, thither I must go, loss or gain. Most true. But take care how you get at this conviction that Rome is the true Church ; if by a process of the logical understanding, The Charticts, 1 1 7 that is most unfair, for you have to renounce the conclusions of the understanding when you go to Rome. How then can you let it lead you, to a system which asserts in limine that it has no right to lead you any where at all ? " But I must defer this question, and also that of Romish aesthetics, to another letter. I make no apology for plain speak- ing ; these are times in which we must be open with each other. And I was greatly attracted by the little I saw of you. I know there is a sympathy between us ; and having passed through these temptations in my own person, God would judge me if I did not speak what He has revealed to me in bitter struggles. One word more. Pray, answer this, and pray wait. Never take so impor- tant a step without at least six months' deliberate waiting, not till, but after your mind is made up. Five-and twenty years God has let you remain a Protestant. Even if you were wrong in being one, He will surely pardon your remaining one six months longer, in a world where the roads of error are so many and broad that a man may need to look hard to find the narrow way. Before resuming work again at Eversley, he went to London, and took up the old thread by attending a Chartist meeting on the 3d of June, and on the igth a workmen's meeting on the Land Colonization question, and from Chelsea he writes home : " .... I could not write yesterday, being kept by a poor boy who had fallen off a truck at Croydon and smashed himself, whom I escorted to Gu>'s Hospital. 1 have spent the whole day running up and down London on business. I breakfasted with Bnnsen, such a divine-looking man, and so kind. I have worlds to tell you. Met F. Newman last night, and breakfast with him to-morrow. I had a long and interesting talk with Froude last night ' Monday. I spent yesterday with Ludlow, and went with him to Dr. Thorpe's, and to Lincoln' s-inn Chapel in the afternoon a noble sight. Maurice's head looked like some great, awful Gior- gione portrait in the pulpit, but oh, so worn, and the face worked so at certain passages of the sermon. " Long and most interesting talk with Mons. Chevallier this O O morning. London is perfectly horrible. To you alone 1 look for help and advice God and you, else I think at times I should cry myself to death The women's shoe-makers are not set up yet. My sermons (' Village Sermons') are being lent from man to man, among the South London Chartists, at such a pace that Cooper can't get them back again. And the Manchester men stole his copy of the Saint's Tragedy 1 1 8 Charles Kingsley. " I have just been to see Carlyle." (Later) " On Friday I dined at Maurice's. Met Mrs. Augustus Hare, and a brother of the Archdeacon's, an officer in the Prussian army, also Mr. and Mrs. Scott, who were very kind indeed. I took George to a soiree at Parker's, and introduced him to all the set there. On Saturday we dined at Ludlow's, met dear Charles Mansfield and a Frenchman, now being tried in Paris for the June Row, a complete Red Republican and Fourierist ; he says nothing but Christianity can save France or the world. I had an intensely interesting talk with him. In the evening the Campbells, Shorter the Chartist, and Dr. Walsh, came in, and we had a glorious evening " June 12, 1849 (My Birthday). " Last night will never be forgotten by many, many men. Maurice was I cannot describe it. Chartists told me this morn- ing that many were affected even to tears. The man was inspired gigantic. No one commented on what he said. He stunned us ! I will tell you all when I can collect myself. .... " This morning I breakfasted with Dr. Guy, and went with him Tailor hunting, very satisfactory as yet Yesterday afternoon with Professor Owen at the College of Surgeons, where I saw unspeakable things " He now settled at Eversley again, and threw himself into the full tide of parish work with the loving help of the Rev. H. Percy Smith, of Baliol, who was ordained to the curacy of Eversley. The season was unhealthy ; cholera was brooding over England, and a bad low fever broke out at Eversley, which gave the rector incessant work and anxiety. The parishioners got frightened. It was difficult to get nurses for the sick, so that he was with them at all hours ; and after sitting up a whole night with one bad case, a laborer's wife, the mother of a large family, that he might himself give the nourishment every half-hour on which the poor woman's life depended, he once more completely broke down, and London physicians advised his taking a sea voyage. A trip to America and back was proposed ; but he dreaded the loneliness, and his parents being strongly averse to the plan, he went again to Devonshire, hoping that a month's quiet and idleness would re- store him. From thence he writes home. Fishing. 119 TORRIDGE MOORS, WEST COUNTRY INN. " I have been fishing the Torridge today. Caught i^ dozen very bright sun, which was against me. To-morrow I return to Clovelly. 1 have got a companion here who is fishing and collect- ing his rents. Gentleman-like man, and friend of Hawker's the West Country Poet. Tennyson was down here last year, and walked in on Hawker to collect Arthur legends." CLOVELLY, Aug. 16, 1849. " I have read Rabelais right through, and learnt immensely from him. I have been reading P. Leroux's book on Christianity and Democracy, and am now reading Ruskin. The weather has been too stormy for trawling, but I have got a few nice shells My landlady is an extraordinary woman, a face and figure as of a queen, but all thought, sensibility and excitement ; a great ' devote ' and a true Christian ; between grief and religion she has learnt a blessed lesson. Old VVim. potters in, like an old grey-headed New- foundland dog, about three times a day to look after me in all sorts of kind and unnecessary ways. I have been pestered with letter after letter asking me to join this new popular Church paper, but have of course fought off. I am convinced at moments that, after all, the best place for me is at home " " Saturday I start. J am quite in spirits at the notion of the Moor. It will give me continual excitement ; it is quite new to me and I am well enough now to walk in moderation. Let me know when you receive my drawings. I am doing you a set more still better J hope. ' The Artist's Wife,' seven or eight shetches of Claude-Mellot and Sabina, two of my most darling ideals, with a scrap of conversation annexed to each, just embodying my dreams about married love and its relation to art. TO J. M. LUDLOW, ESQ. CLOVELLY, August 17, 1849. " I am at last enjoying perfect rest doing nothing but fish, sail, chat with old sailor and Wesleyan cronies, and read, by way of a nice mixture, Rabelais, Pierre Leroux, and Ruskin. The first, were he seven times as unspeakably filthy as he is, I consider as priceless in wisdom, and often in true evangelic godliness more of him hereafter. The second is indeed a blessed dawn. The third, a noble, manful, godly book, a blessed dawn too : but I cannot talk about them ; I am as stupid as a porpoise, and I lie in the window, and smoke and watch the glorious cloud-phantasmagoria, infinite in color and form, crawling across the vast bay and deep woods below, and draw little sketches of figures, and do not even dieam, much less think " I2O Charles Kingsley. TO HIS WIFE. COLEBROOK, CREDITON, September 2, 1849. "Starting out to fish down to Drew's Teignton the old Druid's sacred place, to see Logan stones and cromlechs. Yesterday was the most charming solitary day I ever spent in my life scenery more lovely than tongue can tell. It brought out of me the follow- ing bit of poetry, with many happy tears. POET. I cannot tell what you say, green leaves, I cannot tell what you say ; But I know that there is a spirit in you, And a word in you this day. I cannot tell what ye say, rosy rocks, I cannot tell what ye say ; But I know that there is a spirit in you, And a word in you this day. I cannot tell what ye say, brown streams, I cannot tell what ye say ; But I know in you too, a spirit doth live, And a word in you this day. THE WORD'S ANSWER. Oh, rose is the color of love and youth, , And green is the color of faith and truth, And brown of the fruitful clay. The earth is fruitful, and faithful, and young, And her bridal morn shall rise ere long, And you shall know what the rocks and the streams, And the laughing green-woods say ! " Show these to C. If she has taken in the real good of Spino- zism, she ought to understand them. To-morrow I tramp for Two Bridges." And now the Cholera was once more in England, and sanitary matters absorbed him. He preached three striking sermons at Eversley, on Cholera, " Who causes Pestilence " (published to- gether in 1854, with preface). He worked in London and the country in the crusade against dirt and bad drainage. The terrible revelations of the state of the Water supply in London saddened Memories by C. Kegan Paul. 121 and sickened him, and led to his writing an article in the " North British Review" on the subject.* At this period many young men from Oxford and elsewhere gathered round him. The following letter from one of them, Mr. C. Kegan Paul, speaks for itself of the life at Eversley, which had become a centre to so many enquiring spirits. " I first saw Charles Kingsley in Oxford, in the spring term of 1848. He had just published the ' Saint's Tragedy,' and came up to stay with his old schoolfellow, Cowley Powles, one of our Exeter tutors. He had not, I think, the least notion he would find himself famous, but he was so among a not inconsiderable section of young Oxford, even one month after the drama had appeared. A large number of us were thoroughly dissatisfied with the high-church teaching, which then was that of most earnest tutors in Oxford. There were, indeed, some noble exceptions, Jowett of Balliol, Powles of Exeter, Congreve of Wadham, Stanley of University, Clough of Oriel. But they were scattered, and their influence was over men here and there ; the high-churchmen held the mass of intelligent young men, many of whom revolted in spirit, yet had not found a leader. Here was a book which showed that there was poetry also in the strife against asceticism, whose manly preface was as stirring as the verse it heralded. We looked at its author with the deepest interest ; it was a privilege to have been in the room with him; but my acquaintance with him was necessarily of the slightest. " In the summer of the following year, H. Percy Smith, of Balliol, who also had met Kingsley and taken a walk with him during that memorable Oxford visit, went to Eversley as curate, and almost as soon as he was settled, invited me to stay with him in his lodgings, about half a mile from the Rectory. The day after my arrival we dined at the Rectory. You were then using as a dining-room the larger room which afterwards was your drawing-room, and were alone ; Percy and 1 were the only guests. We went into the study afterwards while Kingsley smoked his pipe, and the evening is one of those that stand out in my memory with peculiar vividness, i had never then. 1 have seldom since, heard a man talk so well. "Kingsley's conversational powers were very remarkable. In the first place he had, as may be easily understood by the readers of his books, a rare command of racy and correct English, while he was so many sided that he could take keen interest in almost any subject which attracted those about him. He had read, and read much, not only in matters which every one ought to know, but had gone deeply into many out-of the way and unexpected studies. Old * " Water Supply of London," published in the Miscellanies. 122 Charles Kingsley. medicine, magic, the occult properties of plants, folk-lore, mesmer- ism, nooks and bye-ways of history, old legends ; on all these he was at home. On the habits and dispositions of animals he would talk as though he were that king in the Arabian Nights who under- stood the language of beasts, or at least had lived among the gipsies who loved him so well. The stammer, which in those days was so much more marked than in later years, and which was a serious discomfort to himself, was no drawback to the charm of his conversation. Rather the hesitation before some brilliant flash of words served to lend point to and intensify what he was saying ; and when, as ha sometimes did, he fell into a monologue, or recited a poem in his sonorous voice, the stammer left him wholly, as it did when he read or preached in church. " When, however, I use the word monologue, it must not be supposed that he ever monopolized the talk. He had a courteous deference for the opinions of the most insignificant person in the circle, and was even too tolerant of a bore. With all his vast powers of conversation, and ready to talk on every or any subject, he was never superficial. What he knew he knew well, and was always ready to admit the fact when he did not know. "The morning after that evening in the study, came a note to me dated, ' Bed this morning,' inviting me to breakfast, and to transfer my goods from the village public house Percy Smith had no spare bed-room to the Rectory. I did so, and this was the first of many visits, each one of increasing intimacy and pleasure. I cannot do better than expand some notes of those visits, which I sent to the ' Examiner ' newspaper, in the week which followed Kingsley' s death last year : " 'To those who, in the years of which we speak, were constant guests at Eversley, that happy home can never be forgotten. Kingsley was in the vigor of his manhood and of his intellectual powers, was administering his parish with enthusiasm, was writing, reading, fishing, walking, preaching, talking, with a twenty-parson power, but was at the same time wholly unlike the ordinary and conventional parson. " 'The picturesque bow-windowed Rectory rises to memory as it stood with all its doors and windows open on certain hot summer days, the sloping bank with its great fir-tree, the garden a gravel sweep before the drawing-room and dining-rooms, a grass-plat before the study, hedged off from the walk and the tall active figure of the Rector tramping up and down one or the other. His energy made him seem everywhere, and to pervade every part of house and garden. The MS. of the book he was writing lay open on a rough standing desk, which was merely a shelf projecting from the wall ; his pupils two in number, and treated like his own sons were working in the dining-room ; his guests perhaps lounging on the lawn, or read- ing in the study. And he had time for all, going from writing to Memories by C. Kegan Paul. 123 lecturing on optics, or to a passage in Virgil, from this to a vehe- ment conversation with a guest, or tender care for his wife who was far from strong or a romp with his children. He would work himself into a sort of white heat over his book, till, too excited to write more, he would calui himself down by a pipe, pacing his grass- plat in thought and with long strides. He was a great smoker, and tobacco was to him a needful sedative. He always used a long and clean clay pipe, which lurked in all sorts of unexpected places. But none was ever smoked which was in any degree foul, and when there was a vast accumulation of old pipes, they were sent back again to the kiln to be rebaked, and returned fresh and new. This gave him a striking simile, which, in "Alton Locke," he puts into the mouth of James Crossthwaite. " Katie here believes in Purgatory, where souls are burnt clean again, like 'bacca pipes." ' "When luncheon was over, and any arrears of the morning's work cleared up, a walk with Kingsley was an occasion of constant pleasure. His delight in every fresh or known bit of scenery was most keen, and his knowledge of animal life invested the walk with singular novelty even to those who were already country bred. 1 remember standing on the top of a hill with him when the autumn evening was fading, and one of the sun's latest rays struck a patch. on the moor, bringing out a very peculiar mixture of red-brown colors. What were the precise plants which composed that patch ? He hurriedly ran over the list of what he thought they were, and then set off over hedge and ditch, through bog and water-course, to verify the list he had already made. " During these afternoon walks he would visit one or another of his very scattered hamlets or single cottages on the heaths. Those who have read 'My Winter Garden,' in the 'Miscellanies,' know how he loved the moor under all its aspects, and the great groves of firs. Nothing was ever more real than Kingsley's parish visit- ing. He believed absolutely in the message he bore to the poor, and the health his ministrations conveyed to their souls, but he was at the same time a zealous sanitary reformer, and cared for their bodies also. I was with him once when he visited a sick man satfering from fever. The atmosphere of the little ground-floor bed-room was horrible, but before the Rector said a word he ran up-stairs, and, to the great astonishment of the inhabitants of the cottage, bored, with a large auger he had brought with him, several holes above the bed's head for ventilation. His reading in the sick room and his words were wholly free from cant. The Psalms and the Prophets, with judicious omissions, seemed to gain new meaning as he read them, and his after-words were always cheerful and hopeful. Sickness, in his eyes, seemed always to sanctify and purify. He would say, with the utmost modesty, that the patient endurance of the poor taught him day by day lessons which he took 124 Charles Kings ley. back again as God's message to the bed-side from which he had learnt them. " One great element of success in his intercourse with his parish- ioners was his abounding humor and fun. What caused a hearty laugh was a real refreshment to him, and he had the strongest be- lief that laughter and humor were elements in the nature of God Himself. " This abounding humor has with some its dangers. Not so with Kingsley. No man loved a good story better than he, but there was always in what he told or what he suffered himself to hear, a good and pure moral underlying what might be coarse in expression. While he would laugh with the keenest sense of amusement at what might be simply broad, he had the most utter scorn and loathing for all that could debase and degrade. And he was the most reverent of men, though he would say things which seemed daring because people were unaccustomed to hear sacred things named without a pious snuffle. This great reverence led him to be even unjust to some of the greatest humorists. I quoted Heine one day at his table. 'Who was Heine?' asked his little daughter. ' A wicked man, my dear,' was the only answer given to her, and an implied rebuke to me. " On the week-day evenings he frequently held a ' cottage lecture ' or short service in a cottage, for the old and feeble who lived at a distance from church. To this he would sally forth in a fisherman's knitted blouse if the night were wet or cold. " Old and new friends came and went as he grew famous not too strong a word for the feeling of those days and the drawing- room evening conversations and readings, the tobacco parliaments later into the night, included many of the most remarkable persons of the day. " I do not give any recollections of those conversations, partly because it would be difficult to do so without giving names which I have no right here to introduce, and partly because his opinions on all subjects will be amply illustrated in his own words from let- ters to many who sought his advice. But 1 know that those evening talks kept more than one who shared in them from Rome, and weaned more than one from vice, while others had doubts to faith removed which had long paralyzed the energy of their lives. " It would not be right, however, to pass over the fact that it was through his advice, and mainly in consequence of the aid he gave me, that I was myself enabled to take orders. You know that I have again become a layman, but though my views have greatly developed from those I held twenty-three years ago, I do not regret that I then was encouraged to become a clergyman. Kings- ley enabled me to dismiss at once and forever all faith whatever in the popular doctrine of eternal punishment, and all the whole class Memories by C. Kegan Paul. 125 of dogmas which tend to confuse the characters of God and the Devil. " A day rises vividly to memory, when Kingsley remained shut up in the study during the afternoon, the door bolted, inaccessible to all interruption. The drowsy hour had come on between the lights, when it was time to dress for dinner, and talk, without the great inspirer of it, was growing disjointed and fragmentary, when he came in from the study, a paper, yet undried, in his hand, and read us the ' Lay of the Last Buccaneer,' most spirited of all his ballads. One who had been lying back in an arm-chair, known for its seductive properties as 'sleepy hollow,' roused up then, and could hardly sleep all night for the inspiring music of the words read by one of the very best readers I have ever heard. " It was my good fortune to be staying with you through the sum- mer in which the greater part of ' Hypatia ' was written. I was especially struck not only with his power of work, but with the extra- ordinary pains he took to be accurate in detail. We spent one whole day in searching the four folio volumes of Synesius for a fact he thought was there, and which was found there at last. The hard reading he had undergone for that book alone would furnish an answer to some who thought him superficial. " Others will write better than I of his work in the parish gener- ally, and of his theology. " In some places in the country it is still the custom to perform part of the marriage service in the body of the church, and then proceed to the chancel. So it had always been in the Oxfordshire parish to which I was appointed. Kingsley told with infinite delight how a curate at or near Bideford had tried to introduce the practice, and how the Devon clerk protested, saying, ' First he went up the church, and then he went down the church, side-a-ways, here-a-ways, and theer-a-ways, a scrattlin' like a crab. 1 " His sermons were full of most tender care for individual cases known only to himself. When he was most impressive and pathetic it was generally because' his sermon touched the sorrow of some one in the congregation, though the words seemed general. Once, when I was to preach for him, he asked me to let him look at two or three MS. sermons I had with me. He read them care- fully, and selected one, not by any means the best written. Preach //iaf, Charles ; there is a poor soul who will be in church whose sins it may touch, and whose sorrows it may heal. God help us all.' " In the summer of 1851, I travelled from Reading to London with Miss Mitford, who did not then know Kingsley, though after- wards they became very good friends. She said she had driven by Eversley churchyard a few days before, and had seen Kingsley reading the funeral service ; that he looked quite what she should have expected, ' a pale student.' I need hardly say she had seen his curate, and that Kingsley was as unlike a pale student as any 126 Charles Kings ley. man who ever lived. His temperament was artistic and impulsive. He delighted in out-door life, in sport, in nature in all her moods and phases. His physical frame was powerful and wiry, his com- plexion dark, his eye bright and piercing. Yet he often said he did not think that his would be a long life, and the event has sadly con- firmed his anticipations. " My life at Eton as Master in College was one which left me scant time for visits to Eversley. But my rare interviews with Kingsley, when I snatched a day to drive over, were always full of delight. I often consulted him about professional difficulties, and found his insight into school-boy life most remarkable, and his sympathy with the young unflagging. He spent one day only with us at Eton in those eight years, but I remember his delight in a row on the river, visiting the boys' bathing places. " Cambridge, indeed, in those years was more accessible than Eversley, and that again would furnish me with somewhat to say, did not others know that portion of the life better than I. I was staying at Cambridge at the time of the Prince Consort's death, and remember how he was affected by it, as at the loss of a per- sonal friend. I walked over the next day to Maddingley with Kingsley, who wished to hear Windsor news from some of the suite, and met, on the way, more than one of the specially chosen young associates of the Prince of Wales. I can never forget, nor probably will those who were addressed forget, the earnest, solemn, and agitated tones in which he spoke of the Prince Consort's care for his son, and the duty which lay on them, the Prince of Wales' young friends, to see that they did all in their power to enforce the wise counsel of him who was dead. "My removal into Dorset yet further sundered us in person, but never in heart. When we met from time to time, his cordial grasp said more than words to assure me of the old brotherly affection. " Coming once more to live in London, I hoped for the old unrestricted intimacy once again. It was not so to be. I saw him, and saw him only but once, enough to notice that he was sorely changed in body, which, though far from puny, was fretted away by his fiery spirit. And when they laid him to rest, in Eversley churchyard, near the graves where some whom he loved repose, and where the shadow of the great Scotch fir lies each summer afternoon, 1 could stand by his grave only in thought. But it will ever have association of the most solemn kind. I am among those many who can never forget that, widely as they have differed from Charles Kingsley, and that, whatever were his failings and incom- pletenesses, his was just that one influence which, at a time they needed a guide, roused them to live manly lives, and play their parts in the stir of the world, while to me he was the noblest, truest, kindest friend I ever had or can hope to have." CHAPTER IX. 1850 1851. AGED 31, 32. Resigns the Office of Clerk in Orders at Chelsea Pupil Life at Eversley Pub- lication of " Alton Locke" Letters from Mr. Carlyle Writes for " Chris- tian Socialist" Troubled State of the Country Burglaries The Rectory Attacked. THE year 1850 was spent by the Rector of Eversley at home, in better health, with still fuller employment ; for in addition to parish and writing, he had the work of teaching a private pupil, which was quite new to him. Times were bad, rates were high, rate- payers discontented, and all classes felt the pressure. The Rector felt it also, but he met it by giving the tenants back ten per cent. on their tithe payments, and thus at once and for ever he won. their confidence. He had, since his marriage, held the office of Clerk in Orders in his father's parish of St. Luke's, Chelsea, which added consider- ably to his income, and in those days was not considered incom- patible with non-residence ; but though his deputy was well paid, and he himself occasionally preached and lectured in Chelsea, he looked upon the post as a sinecure, and so he resigned it. The loss of income must however be met, and this could only be done by his pen. It was a heavy struggle just then, with Rector's Poor Rates at ^150 per annum, and the parish charities mainly depen- dent on him ; but he set to work with indomitable industry, and by a great effort finished "Alton Locke." It was a busy winter, for the literary work was not allowed to interfere with the pupil work, or either with the parish ; he got up at five every morning, and wrote till breakfast ; after breakfast he worked with his pupil and at his sermons ; the afternoons were devoted as usual to cot- tage visiting ; the evenings to adult school and superintending the fair copy of "Alton Locke" made by his wife for the press. It was the only book of which he had a fair copy made. His habit 128 Charles Kings ley. was thoroughly to master his subject, whether book or sermon, al- ways out in the open air, in his garden, on the moor, or by the side of a lonely trout stream, and never to put pen to paper till the ideas were clothed in words ; and these, except in the case of poetry, he seldom altered. For many years his writing was all done by his wife from his dictation, while he paced up and down the room. When "Alton Locke" was completed, the difficulty was to find a publisher : Messrs. Parker, who had, or thought they had, suffered in reputation for publishing "Yeast" in the pages of F'raser, and " Politics for the People," refused the book ; and Mr. Carlyle kindly gave the author an introduction to Messrs. Chapman & Hall, who, on the strength of his recommendation, undertook to bring it out. "I have written to Chapman," says Mr. Carlyle, "and you shall have his answer, on Sunday, if it come within post hours to-mor- row ; if not then on Tuesday. But without any answer, I believe I may already assure you of a respectful welcome, and the new novel of a careful and hopeful examination from the man of books. He is sworn to secrecy too. This is all the needful to-day, in such an unspeakable hurry as this present. " And so, right glad myself to hear of a new explosion, or salvo of red-hot shot against the Devil's Dung-heap, from that particular battery, " I remain, "Yours always truly, " T. CARLYLE." The spread of infidel opinions among the working classes and the necessity of meeting them, continually occupied him, and he writes to his friend Mr. Ludlow, " But there is something else which weighs awfully on my mind, the first number of Cooper's Journal, which he sent me the other day. Here is a man of immense influence, openly preaching Straussism to the workmen, and in a fair, honest, manly way, which must tell. Who will answer him ? Who will answer Strauss ? Who will denounce Strauss as a vile aristocrat, robbing the poor man of his Saviour of the ground of all democracy, all freedom, all asso- ciation of the Charter itself? Oh si mihi centum voces et ferrea lingua. Think about that talk to Maurice about that. To me it is awfully pressing. If the priests of the Lord are wanting to the cause now ! woe to us ! A Flood. 129 "Don't fire at me about smoking. I do it, because it does me good, and I could not (for I have tried again and again) do without it. I smoke the very cheapest tobacco. In the meantime I am keeping no horse a most real self-sacrifice to me. But if I did, I should have so much the less to give to the poor. God knows all about that, John Ludlow, and about other things too." EVERSLEY, June, 1850. " Up till one this morning, keeping a great flood out amid such lightning and rain as I think I never saw before; up to my knees in water, working witli a pickaxe by candle-light to break holes in the wall, to prevent all being washed away. Luckily my garden is saved. But it all goes with me under the head of ' fun.' Some- thing to do and lightning is my highest physical enjoyment. I should like to have my thunderstorm daily, as one has one's dinner. What a providence I did not go to town last night. My man was gone home, and we should have had the garden ruined, and the women frightened out of their wits." A new penny periodical had been proposed, to counteract the spread of infidel opinions among the masses. Before it was set on foot the writers for "Politics" brought out a series of tracts, " On Christian Socialism." Among the most remarkable was " Cheap Clothes, and Nasty," by Parson Lot,* exposing the slop- selling system, which was at the root of much of the distress in London and the great towns. The Tailors' Association was formed, and a shop opened in Castle Street, to which the publication of "Cheap Clothes" took many customers; and in June, a friend writes to Mrs. Kingsley from London : ". . . Three copies of 'Cheap Clothes, and Nasty' are lying on the Guards' Club table ! Percy Fielding (Captain in the Guards) went to Castle Street and ordered a coat, and I met two men at dinner yesterday with Castle Street coats on." In August the Rectory party had an addition, Mr. Lees, a young Cambridge man arriving for three months to read for Holy Orders. It was a bold step in those days for any man to take, to read divinity with the author of "Yeast" and "Alton Locke," but after twenty-six years' ministry in the Church, he looks back to it as a time not only of enjoyment, but of profit. With his pupil he read Strauss's " Leben Jesu," of which an English translation had just been published. He considered * Now republished in a new edition of " Alton Locke." 9 130 Charles Kingsley. Strauss, as he considered Comte eighteen years later, the great false prophet of the day, who must be faced and fought against by the clergy. To another candidate for Holy Orders, who wrote to him at that time, he replies : TO C. KEGAN PAUL, ESQ. " You wish to know what to read for Orders ? That depends on what you mean. If to get through a Bishop's examination, just ask any one who has been lately ordained what he crammed ; and cram that, which may take you some six weeks, and no trouble. "But if you want to be of any use, I should advise you, if you can, which all men cannot, to sit down and read your Bible honestly, and let it tell you its own story, utterly careless of any theories, High Church or Puritan, which have been put into the text first, and then found there by their own inserters. " For instance : read the Pentateuch and the books of Samuel and Kings ; Isaiah in Lowth's and the minor prophets in New- come's translation ; the Gospels from Alford's new text, and the Epistles by the light of your own common sense and honest scholar- ship. Believe that if TTOUT means a foot in profane Greek, it will most likely mean a foot also in ecclesiastical Greek, and avoid the popular belief that the Apostles write barbarisms, whenever their words cannot be made to square at first sight with Laud or Calvin. " For books : Kitto's ' Encyclopaedia of Biblical Literature' will tell you all that is known of Bible history and antiquities ; * and for doctrine, I advise you to read Maurice's ' Kingdom of Christ,' ' Christmas Day and other sermons,' and his new edition of the 'Moral and Metaphysical Philosophy.' " Thus much now, but if you will ask me questions from time to time, I will tell you all I know, if you think my knowledge worth having. Never think of bothering me. It is a delight to me to give hints to any one whom I can ever so little put forward in these confused times." During the autumn of 1850 the state of the country was ominous. In his own parish there was still low fever, and a general depression prevailed. Work was slack, and as winter approached gangs of housebreakers and men who preferred begging and robbery to the workhouse, wandered about Hampshire, Surrey, and Sussex. No house was secure. Mr. Holiest, the clergyman of Frimley, was * It must be remembered that this was in 1850, before the " Dictionary of the Bible," &c., &c., were published. Forebodings. 131 murdered in his own garden while pursuing the thieves ; and the little Rectory at Eversley, which had never hitherto needed pro- tection, and had scarcely a strong lock on its doors, was armed with bolts and bars, fortunately before it too was attempted by the same gang. The Rector slept with loaded pistols by his bed-side, and policemen from Winchester watched in and about the quiet garden by night. . The future of England looked dark, and he writes to Mr. Maurice : EVERSLEY, SUNDAY, October, 1850. " MY DEAREST MASTER, " I hear you are come home. If so, for God's sake come down and see me, if but for a day. I have more doubts, perplexi- ties, hopes, and fears to pour out to you than I could utter in a week, and to the rest of our friends I cannot open. You compre- hend me ; you are bigger than I. Come down and tell me what to think and do, and let Fanny as well as me, have the delight of seeing your face again. I would come to you, but I have two pupils, and business besides, and also don't know when and how to catch you. " The truth is, I feel we are all going on in the dark, toward some- thing wonderful and awful, but whether to a precipice or a paradise, or neither, or both, I cannot tell. All my old roots are tearing up one by one, and though I keep a gallant ' front ' before the Char- lotte Street people (Council of Association), little they know of the struggles within me, the laziness, the terror. Fray for me ; I could lie down and cry at times. A poor fool of a fellow, and yet feeling thrust upon all sorts of great and unspeakable paths, in- stead of being left in peace to classify butterflies and catch trout. " If it were not for the Psalms and Prophets, and the Gospels, I should turn tail, and flee shamefully, giving up the whole ques- tion, and all others, as agri somnia" TO J. M. LUDLOW, ESQ. EVERSLEY, October, 1850. " I have been thinking about two ways of working this penny periodical, and which is the right. Whether our present idea is not to write down to the people, to address ourselves too exclu- sively to the working man, to give them only a part of our thoughts ? Whether the truly democratic method would not be to pour out our whole souls in it. To say, if not all we think, yet all we think fit to say on every subject ; to make it, if possible, an organ of Chris- tian teaching to all classes, on the things now agitating their minds. " To have the best criticism, metaphysics, history, and everything else, and by teaching all, to teach the working man merely as a. 132 Charles Kings ley. member of the whole, and of equal rights and mind with all. I cannot help fancying this the true brotherly method to speak to factory-worker and duke alike to put them on one common ground, show that we consider them subject to the same law. " The rogues are frightened off. I had to send a charge of slugs, not deadly though unpleasantly straight, after one the other night, and they have eschewed us since. " I will get ready the Labor Conference Tract as soon as I can. But I have been disorganized, and kept up at night by these sons of Belial, and so I am behind in my work " " Jeremiah is my favorite book now. It has taught me more than tongue can tell. But I am much disheartened, and -am minded to speak no more words in this name (Parson Lot). Yet all these bullyings teach one, correct one, warn one, show one that God is not leaving one to go one's own way. ' Christ reigns,' quoth Luther." "Alton Locke" came out in August, and the verdict of the Press was of course a severe one. The best artizans, however, hailed it as a true picture of their class and circumstances, and there are still thoughtful men and women of the higher orders who consider it one of the finest of his productions. Mr. Carlyle's words on the subject are noteworthy. CHELSEA, October 31, 1850. "It is now a great many weeks that I have been your debtor for a book which in various senses was very welcome to me. ' Alton Locke ' arrived in Annandale, by post, from my wife, early in September, and was swiftly read by me, under the bright sun- shine, by the sound of rushing brooks and other rural accompani- ments. I believe the book is still doing duty in those parts ; for I had to leave it behind me on loan, to satisfy the public demand. Forgive me that I have not, even by a word, thanked you for this favor. Continual shifting and moving ever since, not under the best omens, has hindered me from writing almost on any subject or to any person. " Apart from your treatment of my own poor self (on which sub- ject let me not venture to speak at all), I found plenty to like, and be grateful for in the book : abundance, nay exuberance of gen- eral zeal ; head-long impetuosity of determination towards the man- ful side on all manner of questions ; snatches of excellent poetic description, occasional sunbursts of noble insight ; everywhere a certain wild intensity, which hol'ds the reader fast as by a spell : these surely are good qualities, and pregnant omens in a man of your seniority in the regiment ! At the same time, I am bound to Letter from Thomas Carlylc. 133 say, the book is definable as crude ; by no manner of means the best we expect of you if you will resolutely temper your fire. But to make the malt sweet, the fire should and must be slow : so says the proverb, and now, as before, I include all duties for you under that one ! ' Saunders Mackaye,' my invaluable country- man in this book, is nearly perfect ; indeed 1 greatly wonder how you did contrive to manage him his very dialect is as if a na- tive had done it, and the whole existence of the rugged old hero is a wonderfully splendid and coherent piece of Scotch bravura. In both of your women, too, I find some grand poetic features ; but neither of them is worked out into the ' Daughter of the Sun ' she might have been ; indeed, nothing is worked out anywhere in comparison with ' Saunders ; ' and the impression is of a fer- vid creation still left half chaotic. This is my literary verdict, both the black of it and the white. " Of the grand social and moral questions we will say nothing whatever at present : any time within the next two centuries, it is like, there will be enough to say about them ! On the whole, you will have to persist ; like a cannon-ball that is shot, you will have to go to your mark, whatever that be. I stipulate farther that you come and see me when you are at Chelsea ; and that you pay no attention at all to the foolish clamor of reviewers, whether laud- atory or condemnatory. "Yours with true wishes, 'T. CARLYLE." The publication of "Yeast" brought him some enemies and many correspondents ; and more than one "fast man" came down from London to open his heart to its author and ask advice. In the religious world the Anglican question occupied one large sec- tion of the Church, and the tide set Rome-wards. Clergymen wrote to him to ask him to advise them how to save members of their flock from Popery ; mothers to beg him to try and rescue their daughters from the influence' of Protestant confessors; while wo- men themselves hovering between Rome and Anglicanism, be- tween the attractions of a nunnery and the monotonous duties of family life, laid their difficulties before the author of the "Saint's Tragedy." He who shrank on principle from the office of father- confessor had the work thrust upon him by many whom he never met face to face in this world, and whom he dared not refuse to help. The labor was severe to a man who felt the importance of such communications, and the responsibility of giving counsel, as in- 134 Charles Kingsley. tensely as he did ; and those who saw the daily letters on his study table would say that the weight of such correspondence alone was enough to wear any man down, who had not in addition sermons to write, books to compose, a parish to work, and a pupil to teach. But his iron energy, coupled with a deep conscientiousness, en- abled him to get through it. " One more thing done," he would say, " thank God," as each letter was written, each chapter of a book or page of sermon dictated to his wife ; " and oh ! how blessed it will be when it is all over, to lie down in that dear churchyard." The correspondence increased year by year, as each fresh book touched and stirred fresh hearts. Officers both in the army and navy would write to him all strangers one to ask his opinion about duelling ; another to beg him to recommend or write a ra- tional form of family prayer for camp or hut ; another for a set of prayers to be used on board ship in her Majesty's navy ; others on more delicate social points of conscience and conduct, which the writers would confide to no other clergyman ; but all to thank him for his books. The atheist dared tell him of his doubts ; the pro- fligate of his fall ; young men brought up to go into Holy Orders, but filled with misgivings about the Articles, the Creeds, and, more than all, on the question of endless punishment, would pour out all their difficulties to him; and many a noble spirit now working as a priest and pastor in the Church of England would never have taken orders but for Charles Kingsley. CHAPTER X. 1851. AGED 32. Opening of the Great Exhibition Attack on " Yeast " in the " Guardian " and Reply Occurrence in a London Church Goes to Germany Letter from Mr. John Martineau. THE year of the Great Exhibition, which began with distress and discontent in England, and ended with a Revolution in Paris, was a notable one in the life of Charles Kingsley. His parochial work was only varied by the addition of new plans of draining the parish at the points where low fever had prevailed ; which he success- fully carried out without help from any sanitary board. " Hypa- tia " was begun as a serial in "Eraser's Ma.gazine." "Santa Maura " and several shorter poems were written. He contributed to the "Christian Socialist" eight papers on "Bible Politics, or God justified to the People," four on the " Firmley Murder," three entitled "The Long Game," a few ballads and sonnets, and "The Nun's Pool," which had been rejected by the publishers of "Poli- tics." He preached two sermons in London, one of which made him notorious, and occasionally he attended the Conferences of the Promoters of Association. He crossed the Channel for the first time. His friendship with Erederika Bremer, the Swedish novelist, and with Miss Mitford, date from this year. In January he writes to Mr. Maurice about the new romance which was dawning upon his imagination. EVERSLEY, January 16, 1851. ' A thousand thanks for all your advice and information, which encourages me to say more. I don't know how far I shall be able to write much for the ' Christian Socialist.' Don't fancy that I am either lazy or afraid. But, if I do not use my pen to the uttermost in earning my daily bread, I shall not get through this year. I am paying off the loans which I got to meet the expenses of re- 136 Charles Kings ley. pairing and furnishing ; but, with an income reduced this year by more than 2oo/., having given up, thank God, that sinecure clerk- ship, and having had to return ten per cent, of my tithes, owing to the agricultural distress, I have also this year, for the first time, the opportunity, and therefore the necessity, of supporting a good school. My available income, therefore, is less than 400?. I can- not reduce my charities, and I am driven either to give up my curate, or to write, and either of these alternatives, with the in- creased parish work, for I have got either lectures or night school every night in the week, and three services on Sunday, will demand my whole time. What to do unless 1 get pupils I know not. Martineau leaves me in June. " My present notion is to write a historical romance of the be- ginning of the fifth century, which has been breeding in my head this two years. But how to find time I know not. And if there is a storm brewing, of course I shall have to help to fight the Phil- istines. Would that I had wings as a dove, then would I flee away and be at rest ! I have written this selfish and egotistical letter to ask for your counsel ; but I do not forget that you have your own troubles. My idea in the romance is to set forth Christianity as the only really democratic creed, and philosophy, above all, spir- itualism, as the most exclusively aristocratic creed. Such has been my opinion for a long time, and what J have been reading lately confirms it more and more. Even Synesius, ' the philosophic ' bishop, is an aristocrat by the side of Cyril. It seems to me that such a book might do good just now, while the Scribes and Phaii- sees, Christian and heathen, are saying, ' This people, which knoweth not the law, is accursed ! ' Of English subjects I can write no more just now. I have exhausted both my stock and my brain, and really require to rest it, by turning it to some new field, in which there is richer and more picturesque life, and the elements are less confused, or rather, may be handled more in the mass than English ones now. I have long wished to do something an- tique, and get out my thoughts about the connection of the old world and the new ; Schiller's ' Gods of Greece ' expresses, I think. a tone of feeling very common, and which finds its vent in modern Neo-Platonism Anythingarianism. But if you think I ought not, I will not. I will obey your order." TO GEORGE BRIMLEY, ESQ. Monday, October, 1851. " I am quite astonished at the steady-going, respectable people who approve more or less of ' Alton Locke.' It was but the other night, at the Speaker's, that Sir *** ***, considered one of the safest Whig traditionists in England, gave in his adher- ence to the book in the kindest terms. Both the Marshall s have Teetotalism. 137 done the same so has Lord Ashburton. So have, strange to say, more than one ultra-respectable High-Tory Squire so goes the world. If you do anything above party, the true-hearted ones of all parties sympathize with you. And all I want to do is to awaken the good men of all opinions to the necessity of shaking hands and laying their heads together, and to look for the day when the bad of all parties will get their deserts, which they will, very accurately, before Mr. Carlyle's friends, 'The Powers' and 'The Destinies,' have done with them. " The article I have not seen, and don't intend to. There is no use for a hot-tempered and foul-mouthed man like myself praying not to be led into temptation, and then reading, voluntarily, at- tacks on himself from the firm of Wagg, Wenham, and Co. But if you think I ought to answer the attack formally, pray tell me so. " Hypatia grows, little darling, and I am getting very fond of her ; but the period is very dark, folks having been given to lying then, as well as now, besides being so blind as not to see the mean- ing of their own time (perhaps, though, we don't of ours), and so put down, not what we should like to know, but what they liked to remember. Nevertheless there are materials for a grand book. And if I fail in it, 1 may as well give up writing perhaps the best thing for me ; though, thanks to abiue-puffs, my books sell pretty steadily." The " Christian Socialist " movement had been severely at- tacked in an article in the " Edinburgh" and in the "Quarterly;" in both articles Communism and Socialism were spoken of as identical, and the author of "Alton Locke" was pointed at as the chief offender. Among other topics discussed in the " Christian Socialist " was " Teetotalism." While Mr. Kingsley argued against it, and for the right of the poor man to wholesome (and therefore not public- house) beer, he was for ever urging on landlords, magistrates, and householders to make a stand against the increasing number of public-houses and consequent increase of drunkenness and de- moralization, which paralyzed the work of the clergy, by refusing licences to fresh public-houses, and above all by withholding spirit ^licences. He saw no hope for country parishes unless the number of public-houses could be legally restricted by the area of the par- ish and the amount of population to the lowest possible number, and those placed under the most vigilant police superintendence, especially in the outlying districts where they are nests of poachers and bad characters, and utterly ruinous to the boys, girls, and 138 Charles Kings ley. young men who frequent them from the moment they leave school. TO THOMAS HUGHES, ESQ. ". . . . You are green in cottoning to me about our '48' mess. Because why ? I lost nothing i risked nothing. You fellows worked like bricks, spent money, and got midshipman's half-pay (nothing a day and find' yourself ), and monkey's allowance' (more kicks than halfpence). 1 risked no money ; 'cause why, I had none ; but made money out of the movement, and fame too. I've often thought what a poor creature I was. I made ^150 by ' Alton Locke,' and never lost a farthing ; and I got, not in spite of, but by the rows, a name and a standing with many a one who would never have heard of rne otherwise, and I should have been a mendicant if I had holloaed when I got a facer, while I was win- ning by the cross, though I didn't mean to fight one. No. And if I'd had ^100,000, I'd have, and should have, staked and lost it all in 1848-50. I should, Tom, for my heart was and is in i v , and you'll see it will beat yet; but we ain't the boys, we don't see but half the bull's eye yet, and don't see at all the policeman which is. a-going on his beat behind the bull's eye, and no thanks to us. Still, some somedever, it's in the fates, that association is the pure caseine, and must be eaten by the human race if it would save its soul alive, which, indeed, it will ; only don't you think me a good fellow for not crying out, when I never had more to do than scratch myself, and away went the fleas. But you all were real bricks; and if you were riled, why let him that is without sin cast the first stone, or let me cast it for him, and see if I don't hit him in the eye. " Now to business ; I have had a sorter kinder sample day. Up at five, to see a dying man ; ought to have been up at two, but Ben King, the rat-catcher, who came to call me, was taken ner- vous ! ! ! and didn't make row enough ; was from 5.30 to 6.30 with the most dreadful case of agony insensible to me, but not to his pain. Came home, got a wash and a pipe, and again to him at eight. Found him insensible to his own pain, with dilated pupils, dying of pressure of the brain going any moment. Prayed the commendatory prayers over him, and started for the river with W. Fished all the morning in a roaring N.E. gale, with the dreadful agonized face between me and the river, pondering on The mystery. . Killed eight on ' March brown,' a ' governor,' by drowning the flies and taking 'em out gently to see if aught was there, which is the only dodge in a north-easter. 'Cause why ? The water is wanner than the air ergo, fishes don't like to put their noses out o' doors, and feeds at home down stairs. It is the only wrinkle, Tom. The captain fished a-top, and caught but three all day. They weren't Notes on Fishing. 139 going to catch a cold in their heads to please him or any man. Clouds burn up at i p.m. I put on a minnow, and kill three more ; I should have had lots, but for the image of the dirty hick- ory stick, which would ' walk the waters like a thing of life,' just ahead of my minnow. Mem. never fish with the sun in your back ; it's bad enough with a fly, but with a minnow its strychnine and prussic acid. My eleven weighed together four and a-half pounds, three to the pound ; not good, considering 1 had passed many a two-pound fish, I know. if Corollary. Brass minnow don't suit the water. Where is your wonderful minnow ? Send me one down, or else a horn one, which I believes in desperate ; but send me something before Tuesday, and I will send you P.O.O. Horn minnow looks like a gudgeon, which is the pure caseine. One pounder I caught to-day on the ' March brown,' womited his wittles, which was rude, but instructive ; and among worms was a gudgeon three inches long and more. Blow minnows gudgeon is the thing. " Came off the water at three. Found my man alive, and, thank God, quiet. Sat with him, and thought him going once or twice. What a mystery that long, insensible death- struggle is ! Why should they be so long about it ? Then had to go to Hartley Row for an Archdeadon's Sunday-school meeting three hours useless (I fear) speechifying and shop ; but the archdeacon is a good man, and works like a brick beyond his office. Got back at 10.30, and sit writing to you. So goes one's day. All manner of incongruous things to do, and the very incongruity keeps one beany and jolly. Your letter was delightful. I read part of it to W., who says you are the best fellow on earth, to which I agree. " So no more from your sleepy and tired, "C. KINGSLEY." TO HIS WIFE. EVERSLEY RECTORY. " Friday. Such a ducking ! such a storm ! I am glad you were not at home for that only. We were up fishing on the great lake at Bramshill : the morning soft, rich, and lowering, with a low, fall- ing glass. I have been prophesying thunder for two or three days. Perch would not bite. I went to see E. H. ; and read and prayed with her. How one gets to love consumptive patients. She seems in a most happy, holy state of mind, thanks to Smith. Then I went on to L. G. ; sat a long time with her, and came back to the lake day burning, or rather melting, the country looking glorious. The day as hot without sun, as it generally is with. There appeared a black storm over Reading. I found the luckless John had hooked a huge jack, which broke everything in a moment, and went off with all his spinning tackle which he prizes so. Then the storm began to work round in that mysterious way storms will, and 140 Charles Kingsley. gather from every quarter, and the wind which had been dead calm' S.E., blew N.E., N., W., and lastly as it is doing now, and always does after these explosions, S.W. And then began such a sight, and we on the island in the middle of the great lake ! The light- ning was close, and we seemed to strike the ground near Sand- hurst again and again, and the crackle and roar and spit and grumble over our heads was awful. I have not been in such a storm for four years. And it rained fancy it ! We walked home after an hour's ducking. I gave John a warm bath and hot wine and water, for I did not feel sure of his strength. I am not ashamed to say that I prayed a great deal during the storm, for we were in a very dangerous place in an island under high trees ; and it seemed dreadful never to see you again. I count the hours till Monday. Tell the chicks I found a real wild duck's nest on the island, full of eggs, and have brought one home to hatch it under a hen ! Kiss them for me. We dined at theT.'s last night, and after dinner went birds' nesting in the garden, and found plenty. Tell Rose a bull- finch's, with eggs, and a chaffinch's, and an oxeye's, and a thrush's, and a greenfinch's; and then Ball and I, to the astonishment and terror of old Mrs. Campbell, climbed to the top of the highest fir tree there, to hang our hats on the top. The opening of the Great Exhibition was a matter of deep in- terest to him, not only for its own sake, but for that of the Great Prince who was the prime mover in the undertaking. On enter- ing the building he was moved to tears ; to him it was like going into a sacred place, not a mere show as so many felt it, and still less a mere giganhc shop, in which wares were displayed for selfish purposes, and from mere motives of trade competition. The science, the art, the noble ideas of universal peace, universal brotherhood it was meant to shadow forth and encourage, excited him intensely, while the feeling that the realization of those great and noble ideas was as yet so far off, and that these achievements of physical science were mere forecastings of a great but distant future, saddened him as profoundly. Four days after the opening, he preached to a London congregation in St. Margaret's, West- minster, on Psalm Ixviii. 18, and Eph. iv. 8 : " When He ascended up on high., He led captivity captive, and received gifts for men, yea, even for His enemies, that the Lord God might dwell among them" he startled his hearers by contrasting the wide-spread un- belief of the present day in God, as the Fount of all science, all art, all the intelligence of the nation, with the simple faith of our forefathers. Attack on "Yeast" 141 In the month of May there was a review of his " Yeast " in the " Guardian " by a well-known Oxford graduate, a strong partisan of the Anglican party. The review was anonymous, and con- tained very grave charges against the book and its writer of heresy of encouraging profligacy, &c., &c. Their effect was to leave a general impression that the book in- culcated the vilest principles, and most pernicious doctrines, while not a single quotation from it was given, so as to afford the readers of the review an opportunity of judging for themselves. Mr. Kingsley had hitherto made it a rule not to answer news- paper attacks on himself, especially those of the religious press, but these charges being beyond all precedent, he repudiated them in the following indignant words : TO THE EDITOR OF THE "GUARDIAN." May, 1851. " SIR, u Having lived for several years under the belief that the Editor of the ' Guardian ' was a gentleman and a Christian, I am bound to take for granted that you have not yourself read the book called ' Yeast,' which you have allowed to be reviewed in your columns. This answer therefore is addressed, not to you, but to your re- viewer ; and I have a right to expect that you will, as an act of common fairness, insert it. " I most thoroughly agree with the reviewer that he has not mis- understood me ; on the contrary, he sees most Clearly the gist of the book, as is proved by his carefully omitting any mention what- soever of two questions connected with a character whose existence is passed over in silence, which form the very pith and moral of the whole book. 1 know well enough why he has ignored them ; because they were the very ones which excited his wrath. " But he makes certain allegations against me which I found it somewhat difficult to answer, from their very preposterousness, till, in Pascal ' s Fifteenth Provincial Letter, 1 fell on an argument which a certain Capuchin Father, Valerian, found successful against the Jesuits, and \vnich seems to suit the reviewer exactly. I shall therefore proceed to apply it to the two accusations which concern me most nearly as a churchman. " i. He asserts that I say that ' it is common sense and logic to make ourselves children of God by believing that we are so when we are not.' Sir, you and your readers will hardly believe me when I tell you that this is the exact and formal opposition to what I say, that the words which he misquotes, by leaving out the context and the note of interrogation, occur in a scornful reductio 142 Charles Kingsley. ad absurdum of the very doctrine which he wantonly imputes to me, an appeal to common sense and logic against and not for the lie of the Genevan School. 1 have a right to use the word ' wan- tonly,' for he cannot say that he has misunderstood me ; he has refused to allow me that plea, and I refuse to allow it to him. In- deed, I cannot, for the passage is as plain as daylight, no school- boy could misunderstand it ; and every friend to whom I have shown his version of it has received it with the same laughter and indignation with which I did, and felt with me, that the only answer to be given to such dishonesty was that of Father Valerian, ' Mentiris impudentissime! "2. So with the assertion, that the book 'regards the Catholic doctrine of the Trinity as the same thing with that of the Vedas Neo-Platonists,' &c. &c. ; or considers ' a certain amount of youth- ful profligacy as doing no real and permanent harm to the charac- ter perhaps strengthening it for a useful and even religious life ; and that the existence of the passions is a proof that they are to be gratified.' Sir, I shall not quote passages in disproof of these calumnies, for if I did I should have to quote half the book. I shall simply reply, with Father Valerian, ' Mentiris impudentis- sime' " I shall enter into no further defence of the book ; I have no doubt of there being many errors and defects in it. 1 shall be most thankful to have them pointed out, and to correct them most patiently. But one thing I may say, to save trouble hereafter, that whosoever henceforth, either explicitly or by insinuation, says that I do not hold and believe ex animo, and in the simple and literal sense, all the doctrines of the Catholic and Apostolic Church of England, as embodied in her Liturgy or Articles, shall have no answer from me but Father Valerian's Mentiris impudentissime. " I am, Sir, " Your obedient and faithful servant, " THE AUTHOR OF ' YEAST.' " In speaking of this correspondence, Mr. Maurice says : "If / had been accused of profligacy and heresy, as Mr. Kings- ley has been in the ' Guardian,' I believe I should have felt much more indignation than he has, though I might have expressed it with less simplicity and brevity. If a man in a mask, calling him- self a ' We,' tells a clergyman that he has been all his life uttering a lie, that his whole professions before God and man are a lie, that he is an advocate for profligacy when he professes to make men moral, a deliberate teacher of heresy when he knows that his in- most desire is to preach the Catholic faith, and when he knows that he expresses that desire most loudly, not in the presence of dignitaries who might patronize him for it, but of infidels who Effect of "Yeast" 143 would despise him for it, it does not seem very strange that such a clergyman should say in Latin or English, Sir We ! thou thyself tellest a lie " Some may think it needless to revive these old controversies, but attacks on his moral teaching in this case, and at a later period on " Hypatia," implying as they did, a want of moral prin- ciple in himself, and the encouragement of it in others, touched Mr. Kingsley on his tenderest point, and cannot be passed over, if only to show those who know what the results of his work have been, and have seen the different tone taken since by the religious press with regard to him and his writings, what sore battles he had at one time to fight, what bitter insults he had to stand, while laboring day and night for the good of others. But when once the moment and the expression of righteous indignation was over, he had a wonderful power of putting attacks and the individuals who made them, out of his mind, bearing no malice, and going on his way. " Life is too hard work in itself," he would say, " to let one stop to hate and suspect people." The " Guardian" replied again, reiterating its charges, but hap- pily there was another side to the question. Only three weeks before . these attacks he had received the following among many other testimonies to the moral influence of " Yeast," on men whose hearts could not be touched by teachers of a narrower school : April 2, 1851. " DEAR SIR, " I have just finished ' Yeast' /;/ extenso, having only skimmed it in Fraser, and, fresh from the book, 1 cannot resist communi- cating to you my heartfelt thanks for it. You will not care about whether / thank you or not ; never mind, I shall relieve myself by writing, and you at any rate will not feel insulted. I believe you have taken up the right ground in standing firmly by the spirit of Christianity, and the divineness of Christ's mission, and showing the people how they are their best friends and the truest reformers. I have been as far as most people into the Kingdom of the Ever- lasting No, and had nearly, in my intellectual misery, taken up with blank Atheism and the Reasoner ; and should have done so, had not my heart rebelled against my head, and flooding in upon me reflections of earlier, purer days, brighter days of Faith, bade me pause. For six months 1 have been looking back to Chris- tianity, my heart impelling me towards it ; my head urging me 144 Charles Kings ley. into farther cimmerias. I wanted some authoritative word to confirm my heart, but could not meet with it. I read orthodox books of argument, of persuasion, of narrative, but I found they only increased my antagonism to Christianity. And I was very miserable as I believe all earnest men must be when they find themselves. God-abandoned in times like these when, picking up your ' Christian Socialist,' I read your ' God justified to the People,' and felt that here now was a man, not a mere empty evangelical tub-thumper (as we of the North call Ranters), but a bona fide man, with a man's intellect, a man of genius, and a scholar, and yet who did not spit upon his Bible, or class it with Goethe and Dante, but could have sympathies with all the ferment of the age ; be a Radical Reformer without being a vague Denier, a vaguer ' Spiritualist,' as our ' Leader ' friends have it, or an utter Atheist. If this man, on further acquaintance, prove what I sus- pect him to be, here is the confirmation I desire. Impelled by this, and by the accounts 1 gathered of you from Mr. and Mrs. Carlyle, I devoured ' Yeast ; ' and ' Alton Locke,' I am now in the middle of (I am no novel reader, which must be my excuse for being so late in the field). I find that I am quite correct, 'that I have not exaggerated your capacity at all ; and having, day and night, meditated on what you have to say, I feel that the con- firmation I have got from you is sufficient. But I have another better confirmation in my own heart. I feel as if I had emerged from a mephitic cavern into the open day. In the midst of worldly reverses, such as I never before experienced, I feel a mental serenity I never before knew ; can see life and my role in life, clear and definite for the first time, through all manner of inter- vening entanglements. " I know not by what right I make you my father confessor, but I feel strangely drawn towards you, and even at the risk of being deemed impertinent, must send this rambling missive to thank you and to bless you for having helped in the light and the leaven to a sad yeasty spirit hitherto. In the summer of 1851 several London clergymen arranged to have courses of lectures specially addressed to the working men, who came in numbers to see the Great Exhibition. One of these clergymen, whose church was in the neighborhood of a lecture- hall much frequented by working men of atheistic views, begged Mr. Maurice to take part in his course of lectures and (once more to quote Mr. Hughes's words) : " to ask Kingsley to do so also ; assuring Mr. Maurice that he ' had been reading ICingsley's works with the greatest interest, and Occurrence in a London Church. 145 earnestly desired to secure him as one of his lecturers.' ' I prom- ised to mention this request to him,' Mr. Maurice says, ' though I knew he rarely came to London, and seldom preached except in his own parish. He agreed, though at some inconvenience, that he would preach a sermon on the Message of the Church to the Laboring Man. I suggested the subject to him. The incumbent intimated the most cordial approval of it. He had asked us, not only with a previous knowledge of our published writings, but expressly because he had that knowledge. I pledge you my word that no questions were asked as to what we were going to say, and no guarantees given. Mr. Kingsley took precisely that view of the message of the Church to laboring men which every reader of his books would have expected him to take.' "Kingsley took his text from Luke iv. verses 18 to 21 : 'The Spirit of the Lord is upon me, because He hath anointed me to preach the gospel to the poor,' &c. What then was that gospel ? Kingsley starts at once with ' I assert that the business for which God sends a Christian priest in a Christian nation is, to preach freedom, equality, and brotherhood, in the fullest, deepest, widest meaning of those three great words ; that in as far as he so does, he is a true priest, doing his Lord's work with His Lord's blessing on him ; that in as far as he does not he is no priest at all, but a traitor to God and man ; ' and again, ' I say that these words ex- press the very pith and marrow of a priest's business ; I say that they preach freedom, equality, and brotherhood, to rich and poor for ever and ever.' Then he goes on to warn his hearers how there is always a counterfeit in this world of the noblest message and teaching. " Thus there are two freedoms the false, where a man is free to do what he likes ; the true, where a man is free to do what he ought. " Two equalities the false, which reduces all intellects and all characters to a dead level, and gives the same power to the bad as to the good, to the wise as to the foolish, ending thus in practice in the grossest inequality ; the true, wherein each man has equal power, to educate and use whatever faculties or talents God has given him, be they less or more. This is the divine equality which the church proclaims, and nothing else proclaims as she does. " Two brotherhoods the false, where a man chooses who shall be his brothers, and whom he will treat as such ; the true, in svhich a man believes that all are his brothers, not by the will of the flesh, or the will of man, but by the will of God, whose children they all are alike. The church has three special possessions and treasures. The Bible, which proclaims man's freedom, Baptism his equality, the Lord's Supper his brotherhood." (Preface to 'Alton Locke '). 10 146 Charles Kingsley. The sermon was listened to with profound attention by a large congregation, in which were many working men. But at its close, just as the preacher was about to give the blessing, the incumbent rose in the reading-desk and declared, that while he agreed with much that had been said by the preacher, it was his painful duty to add that he believed much to be dangerous and much untrue. The excitement of the congregation was intense ; the working men could with dimculy be kept quiet, and to a man of the preacher's vehement temperament it must have required a great effort not to reply. He only bowed his head, and with deepened solemnity came down from the pulpit, passed straight through the crowd that thronged him with outstretched hands, and an eager " God bless you, sir," on their lips, and went into the vestry, where his friends gathered round him to express their sympathy, and to take the sermon from him that it might be printed exactly as it was written.' ' ; Those," said Mr. Maurice, " who observed the solem- nity of Mr. Kingsley's manner while he was delivering his sermon, still more when he was praying with the congregation, and blessing them, will believe that the thought of having unwittingly made himself a stumbling-block to his fellow-men, was infinitely more bitter to him than any mere personal insult which he was called upon to endure." " You will have heard ere this," writes a friend to Mrs. Kingsley the day following, " all about the strange event of last night. Nothing could justify the violation of church order and de- cency which was committed Thank God, thank Him on your knees, that Charles did not answer a single word ; if he had, I do not know what might not have happened. Robertson and Hansard had severally to quiet knots of working men, who were beginning to hiss or otherwise testify their disapproval. A word from Charles, or, indeed, from any one on his behalf, might have raised such a storm as God only could have quelled. " What the consequences of the whole thing may be, none, I suppose, can tell ; but they are in God's hands, and He knows best, and makes all things work together for good for us if we truly fear Him. Charles, I think, feels that it is his only policy to keep quiet and so must his friends for the present. Tell him old Lum- ley is showing himself a man, and will be extremely glad to publish the sermon. ." Mr. Kingsley returned to Eversley exhausted and depressed, and in the meantime the storm burst. A leading morning paper began Sympathy of Working Men. 147 the attack, with an article, which being full of inaccuracies, made its due impression on those who did not know the facts, and who were already strongly prejudiced against the " Apostle of Socialism." This was followed by a letter from the Bishop of London (Dr. Bloomfield), who hearing of the disturbance, wrote to Air. Kingsley to express his displeasure, and forbade him to preach in London. Mr. Kingsley replied most respectfully, requesting his lordship to suspend his judgment till he had read the sermon. Meanwhile letters of sympathy poured in from all quarters, from a few of the clergy, from many of the laity, and from numbers of working men. There was a meeting of working men on Kennington Com- mon, and an expression of their warm allegiance and sympathy. A proposal was also made before the bishop's prohibition was with- drawn, to induce Mr. Kingsley to start a free church independent of episcopal rule, with a promise of a huge following. It is need- less to say he did not entertain this proposal for a moment. In the meantime the sermon was printed, and a copy sent to the Bishop, who wrote at once to ask Mr. Kingsley to come up and see him at London House ; and after a kind reception he withdrew his prohibition, and in a fortnight Mr. Kingsley preached at the parish church of Chelsea. Before the meeting on Kennington Common, the secretary of the John Street Lecture Hall, where the principal audience was composed of Chartists, free thinkers, and followers of Strauss, wrote to offer Mr. Kingsley the use of their lecture hall, which he de- clined in the following words : EVERSLEY, June 26, 1851. " I have conferred with my friends on their willingness to give lectures in John Street, and find it to be their unanimous opinion, that to do so, would be interpreted by the public into an approval, more or less, of other doctrines which are taught there, from which I, of all men in England, differ most strongly, and from which I hold myself bound most strongly to protest. "As a churchman, such a suspicion would be intolerable to me, as it would be gratuitously incurred. Those who wish to know mv opinions will have plenty of opportunities elsewhere ; and I must therefore, in common with my friends, distinctly, but most cour- teously, decline your kind offer of the John Street lecture rooms." He was so much exhausted with the work and the controversies of the last eight months, that his parents, who were going to Ger- 148 Charles Kingsley. many for some weeks, seeing the importance of his having tho- rough change, persuaded him to leave his parish in the care of a curate and go abroad with them. It was the first time he had crossed the water, and it was quite a revelation to him, to be enjoyed as thoroughly as he could enjoy any thing which took him from his home. But even in new scenes his fiery spirit could not rest ; and the cause of the Church and the People pressed heavily on him. TO HIS WIFE. MENDERSCHEID, August 7. " I write from the loveliest place you can imagine, only how we got here I know not ; having lost our way between some 'feld' or other to here. We found ourselves about 8 P.M. last night at the top of a cliff 500 feet high, with a roaring river at the bottom, and no path. So down the cliff face we had to come in the dark, or sleep in the forest to be eaten by wild boars and wolves, of which latter, one was seen on our route yesterday ' as high as a table.' And down we came, knapsacks, fishing-rods, and all ; which process must not be repeated often if we intend to revisit our native shores. I have seen such wonders, I don't know where to begin. Craters filled sometimes with ghastly blue lakes, with shores of volcanic dust, and sometimes, quaintly enough, by rye-fields and reapers. The roads are mended with lava ; the whole country the strangest jumble, alternations of Cambridgeshire ugliness (only lifted up 1.200 feet high) with all the beauties of Devonshire. The bed of the Issbach, from the baths of Bertrich, up which we came yesterday, was the most ravishingly beautiful glen scenery I ever saw ; such rocks such baths such mountains covered with huge timber not mere scrub, like the Rhine forests. Such strips of lawn here and there between the stream and the wood. All this, of course, you get on a grander scale on the Moselle, which was perfectly exquisite ; yet there is a monotomy in its luxious richness and soft- ness, and I was right glad to find myself on my legs at Alf. Two days of that steamer running would have been too much for one, with its heat and confinement, so I think this plan of walking is the best. Weather glorious." TREVES, August 17. " Here we are at Treves, having been brought here under ar- rest, with a gensdarme from the Mayor of Bittsburg, and liberated next morning with much laughter and many curses from the police here. However, we had the pleasure of spending a night in pri- son, among fleas and felons, on the bare floor. It appears the barbarians took our fishing-rods for ' todt-instrumenten ' deadly Arrested at Treves. 149 weapons and our wide-awakes for Italian hats, and got into their addle pates that we were emissaries of Mazzini and Co. distributing political tracts, for not a word of politics had we talked. Luckily the police-inspector here was a gentleman, and his wife and daugh- ter ladies, and they did all they dare for us, and so about ten next morning we were set free with many apologies, and the gensdarme (who, after all, poor fellow, was very civil) sent back to Bittsburg with a reprimand. We are the lions of Treves at present, for the affair has made a considerable fuss. We leave this to-morrow after having seen all the wonders and what wonders there are to see. I need not tell you all I have felt here and at Fleissem. But at first the feeling that one is standing over the skeleton of the giant iniquity Old Rome is overpowering. And as I stood last night in that amphitheatre, amid the wild beasts' dens, and thought of the Christian martyrdoms and the Frank prisoners, and all the hell- ish scenes of agony and cruelty that place had witnessed, I seemed to hear the very voice of the Archangel whom St. John heard in Pat- mos, crying, ' Babylon the Great is fallen ; ' but no more like the sound of a trumpet, but only in the still whisper of the night breeze, and through the sleeping vineyards, and the great still smile of God out of the broad blue heaven. Ah ! and you were not there to feel it with me ! I am so longing to be home ! " Before going abroad, he had parted with the beloved pupil who had become quite one of the family at the Rectory, and was dear to him and his wife as a son. Mr. John Martineau's graphic words and tender recollections of the eighteen months he spent at Evers- ley, give the best picture of the home life at that period, between January 21, 1850, and June 28, '851. PARK CORNER, HECKFIELD, Christmas Eve, 1875. " I first knew him in January, 1850. I entered his house as his pupil, and was for nearly a year and a half his constant companion ; indeed, out of doors, almost his only companion, for during the greater part of the time he had no other pupil, and hardly any inti- mate friends within reach. He was then in his thirty-first year, in the fulness of his strength ; I a raw receptive school-boy of fifteen ; so that his mind and character left their impression upon mine as a seal does upon wax. What that impression was I will put down as best I can. " He was then, above all things and before all things else, a parish clergyman. His parish work was not indeed so laborious and absorbing as it had been six years before, when he was first made Rector. The efforts of these six years had told, the seed was bearing fruit, and Eversley would never again be as it had 150 Charles Kingsley. been. His health had nearly broken down not long before, and he had now a curate to help him, and give him the leisure which he needed for writing and other things. Still, even so, with a large and straggling though not very populous parish, with his share of three services on Sunday and cottage-lectures on two week-day evenings in winter, there was much for him to do ; throwing him- self into it, as he did, with all his intensity and keen sense of responsibility. At this time, too, he had not, as in later years, the help and the purses of laymen to assist him. " These were the days when farm-laborers in Hampshire got from eight to ten shillings a week, and bread was dear, or had not long ceased to be so. The cholera of 1849 had just swept through the country, and though it had not reached Eversley, a severe kind of low fever had, and there had been a season of much illness and many deaths, during which he had, by his constant, anxious, tender care of -the sick poor, won their confidence more than ever before. The poor will not go*to the relieving officer if they can get their needs supplied elsewhere ; and the Eversley poor used to go for relief, and something more than relief, to the Rectory. There were few mornings, at that time, that did not bring some one in distress, some feeble woman, or ailing child, or a summons to a sick bed. Up to that time he had allowed (I believe) no man or woman in his parish to become an inmate of the work-house through infirmity or old age, except in a few cases were want had been the direct consequence of indolence or crime. " At times, too, other poor besides those of his parish, might be seen at his door. Gipsies were attracted to him from all the country round. He married and christened many of them, to whom such rites were things almost unknown. "I cannot give any description of his daily life, his parish work, which will not sound commonplace. There were the morn- ings chiefly spent in reading and writing, the afternoons in going from cottage to cottage, the long evenings in writing. It sounds monotonous enough. But there never was a man with whom life was less monotonous, with whom it was more full to overflowing, of variety, and freshness. Nothing could be so exquisitely delight- ful as a walk with him about his parish. Earth, air, and water, as well as farm-house and cottage, seemed full of his familiar friends. By day and by night, in fair weather and in storm, grateful for heat and cold, rain and sunshine, light and soothing darkness, he drank in nature. It seemed as if no bird, or beast, or insect, scarcely a drifting cloud in the sky, passed by him unnoticed, un- welcomed. He caught and noted every breath, every sound, every sign. With every person he met he instinctively struck some point of contact, found something to appreciate often, it might be, some information to ask for which left the other cheered, self-respecting, raised for the moment above himself ; and whatever Letter from Mr. John Martineau. 151 the passing word might be, it was given to high or low, gentle or simple, with an appropriateness, a force, and a genial courtesy, in the case of all women, a deferential courtesy, which threw its spell over all alike, a spell which few could resist. " So many-sided was he that he seemed to unite in himself more types and varieties of mind and character, types differing as widely as the poet from the man of science, or the mystic from the soldier ; to be filled with more thoughts, hopes, fears, interests, aspirations, temptations than could co-exist in any one man, all subdued or clenched into union and harmony by the force of one iron will, which had learnt to rule after many a fierce and bitter struggle. " His senses were acute to an almost painful degree. The sight of suffering, the foul scent of a sick-room well used as he was to both would haunt him for hours. For with all his man's strength there was a deep vein of woman in him, a nervous sensitiveness, an intensity of sympathy, which made him suffer when others suffered, a tender, delicate, soothing touch, which gave him power to under- stand and reach the heart ; to call out, sometimes at first sight ^what he of all men least sought), the inmost confidences of men and women alike in all classes of life. And he had sympathy with all moods from deepest grief to lightest humor for no man had a keener, quicker perception of the humorous side of anything a love and ready word of praise for whatever was good or beautiful, from the greatest to the least, from the heroism of the martyr to the shape of a good horse, or the folds of a graceful dress. And this wide-reaching hearty appreciation made a word of praise from him sweeter, to those who knew him well, than volumes of commenda- tion from all the world besides. " His every thought and word was penetrated with the belief, the full assurance, that the world the world of the soldier or the sportsman, as well as the world of the student or the theologian was God's world, and that everything which He had made was good. ' Humani nihil a me alienum puto,' he said, taught by his wide human sympathies, and encouraged by his faith in the Incar- nation. And so he rejected, as Pharisaic and unchristian, most of what is generally implied in the use of such words as ' carnal,' 'unconverted,' 'worldly,' and thereby embraced in his sympathy, and won to faith and hope, man)' a struggling soul, many a bruised reed, whom the narrow and exclusive ignorance of schools and religionists had rejected. "No human being but was sure of a patient, interested hearer in him. 1 have seen him seat himself, hatless, beside a tram]) on the grass outside his gate in his eagerness to catch exactly what he had to say, searching him, as they sate, in his keen kindly way with question and look. With as great a horror of pauperism and alms- giving as any professed political economist, it was in practice very hard to him to refuse any one. The sight of unmistakable misery, 152 Charles Kingsley. however caused, covered to him, the multitude of sins. I recollect his passing backwards and forwards again and again the strong impulsive will for once irresolute between the breakfast-room and a miserable crying woman outside, and 1 cannot forget, though twenty-five years have passed since, the unutterable look of pain and disgust with which, when he had decided to refuse the request, he said, ' Look there ! ' as he pointed to his own well-furnished table. " Nothing roused him to anger so much as cant. Once a scoundrel, on being refused, and thinking that at a parsonage and with a parson it would be a successful trick, fell on his knees on the door-step, turned up the whites of his eyes and began the dis- gusting counterfeit of a prayer. In an instant the man found him- self, to his astonishment, seized by collar and wrist, and being swiftly thrust towards trje gate, with a firm grip and a shake that deprived him of all inclination to resist, or, till he found himself safe outside it, even to remonstrate. " He had at that time great physical strength and activity, and an impetuous, restless, nervous energy, which I have never seen equalled. All his strength, physical, mental, and moral, seemed to find expression in his keen grey eyes, which gazed, with the look of an eagle, from under massive brows, divided from each other by two deep perpendicular furrows at that time, together with the two equally deep lines from nostril to mouth, very marked features in his face. One day, in a neighbor's yard, a large savage dog flew out at him, straining at its chain. He walked up to it, scolding it, and by mere force of eye, voice, and gesture, drove it into its kennel, close to which he stopped, keeping his eye on the cowed animal, as it growled and moved uneasily from side to side. He had done the same thing often before, and had even pulled an in- furiated dog out of its kennel by its chain, after having driven it in. " By boyish habits and tastes a keen sportsman, the only sport he ever enjoyed at this time was an occasional day's trout or pike fishing, or throwing a fly for an hour or two during his afternoon's walk over the little stream that bounded his parish. Hunting he had none. And in later years, when he did hunt occasionally, it was generally a matter of two or three hours on an old horse, taken as a relaxation in the midst of work, not, as with most other men, as a day's work in itself. Fond as he was of horses, he never in his Itfe had one worth fifty pounds, so little self-indulgent was he. He never then, or afterwards so far as I know went out shoot- ing. " Though exercising intense self-control, he was very restless and excitable. Constant movement was a relief and almost a necessity to him. His study opened by a door of its own upon the garden, and most of his sermons and books were thought out and composed as he paced up and down there, at all hours and in all weathers, Mr. Maurice. 153 his hands behind his back, generally smoking a long clay pipe ; for tobacco had, as he found by experience having once tried a year's total abstinence from it an especially soothing beneficial effect upon him. He ate hurriedly, and it was an effort to him to sit still through a meal. His coat frequently had a white line across the back, made by his habit of leaning against the whitened chimney- piece of the dining-room during breakfast and dinner. Once in the long summer days we were condemned to a more than usually dull dinner-party at a neighbor's house, where the only congenial person was a young scientific doctor from the next parish. After dinner, it being broad daylight, we were all in the garden, and opposite to us were two high thick-foliaged trees. I do not know which of the two suggested it, but in an instant his coat and the doctor's were off, and they were racing each other, each up his tree, like schoolboys, one getting first to the top, the other first down again to the ground. "Of society he had then very little, and it was rarely and un- willingly that he passed an evening away from home. He did not seek it, and it had not yet begun to seek him. Indeed, at no time was general society a congenial element to him ; and those who knew him only thus, did not know him at his best. A few intimate friends, and now and then a stranger, seeking his advice on some matter, would come for a night or a Sunday. Amongst the former, and honored above all, was Mr. Maurice. One of his visits hap- pened at a time when we had been startled by a burglary and murder at a parsonage a few miles off, and had armed ourselves and barricaded the rambling old Rectory in case of an attack. In the middle of the night an attempt was made to force open the back door, which roused us all, and we rushed down stairs with pistols, guns, and blunderbuss, to expel the thieves, who, however, had taken alarm and made off. Mr. Maurice, the only unarmed and the coolest man amongst us, was quietly going out alone, in the pitch darkness, into the garden in pursuit of them, when Mr. Kingsley fortunately came upon him and stopped him ; and the two passed the rest of the night together talking over the study-fire till morning came. " Many a one has cause to remember that Study, its lattice window (in later years altered to a bay), its great heavy door, studded with large projecting nails, opening upon the garden ; its brick Moor covered with matting ; its shelves of heavy old folios, with a fishing-rod, or landing-net, or insect-net leaning against them ; on the table, books, writing materials, sermons, manuscript, proofs, letters, reels, feathers, fishing-Mies, clay-pipes, tobacco. On the mat, perhaps the brown eyes, set in thick yellow hair, and gently-agitated tail, asking indulgence for the intrusion a long- bodied, short-legged Dandy Dinmont Scotch terrier, wisest, hand- somest, most faithful, most memorable of its race. When the rest 1 54 Charles Kingsley. of the household went to bed, he would ask his guest in, ostensibly to smoke. The swing-door would be flung open and slam heavily after him, as it always did, for he would never stop to catch and close it. And then in the quiet of night, when no fresh face could come, no interruption occur to distract him, he would give himself wholly to his guest, taking up whatever topic the latter might sug- gest, whatever question he might ask, and pouring out from the full stores of his knowledge, his quick intuitive sagacity, his ready sympathy. Then it was, far more than in the excitement and dis- traction of many voices and many faces, that he was himself, that the true man appeared ; and it was at times such as these that he came to be known and trusted and loved, as few men ever have been, as no man has been whom I ever knew. " He had to a wonderful degree the power of abstraction and concentration, which enabled him to arrange and elaborate a whole sermon, or a chapter of a book, while walking, riding, or even fly- fishing, without making a note, so as to be able on his return to write or dictate it in clear terse language as fast as pen could move. He would read a book and grasp its essential part thoroughly in a time so short that it seemed impossible that his eyes could have traversed its pages. Compared with other men who have written or thought much, he worked for a few hours in the day, and with- out much system or regularity ; but his application was so intense that the strain upon his vital powers was very great. Nor when he ceased could his brain rest. Except during sleep, and even that was characteristic, so profound was it, repose seemed impossible to him for body or mind. So that he seemed to live three days, as it were, while other men were living one, and already foresaw that there would be for him no great length of years. " Connected with this rapid living was a certain impatience of trifles, an inaccuracy about details, a haste in drawing conclusions, a forgetfulness of times and seasons, and of words lightly spoken or written, and withal an impulsive and almost reckless generosity, and fear of giving pain, which sometimes placed him at an unfair disadvantage and put him formally in the wrong when substantially he was in the right. It led him, too, to take too hastily a favor- able estimate of almost every one with whom he came personally into contact, so that he was liable to suffer from misplaced con- fidence ; while in the petty matters of daily life it made him a bad guardian of his own interests, and but for the wise and tender assistance that was ever at his side would almost have overwhelmed him with anxieties. " In the pulpit, and even at his week-day cottage-lectures, where, from the population of his parish being so scattered, he had some- times scarcely a dozen hearers, he was at that time eloquent be- yond any man I ever heard. For he had the two essential con- stituents of eloquence, a strong man's intensity and clearness of Hesitation in Speech, 155 conviction, and a command of words, not easy or rapid, but sure and unhesitating, an unfailing instinct for the one word, the most concrete and pictorial, the strongest and the simplest, which expressed his thought exactly. ''M.iny have since then become familiar with his preaching, many more with his published sermons, but few comparatively can know what it was to hear him, Sunday after Sunday, in his own church and among his own people, not preach only, but read, or rather pray, the prayers of the Church-service. So completely was he in harmony with these prayers, so fully did they satisfy him, that with all his exuberance of thought and imagination, it seemed as if for him there was nothing to be asked for beyond what they asked for. So that in his cottage-lectures, as in his own household wor- ship, where he was absolutely free to use any words he chose, I scarcely ever heard him use a word of prayer other than the words of the Prayer book. " In conversation he had a painful hesitation in his speech, which diminished as he got older, though it never wholly left him. But in preaching, and in speaking with a set purpose, he was wholly free from it. He used to say that he could speak for God but not for himself, and took the trial and to his keenly sensitive nature it was no small one, patiently and even thankfully, as having by God's* mercy saved him from many a temptation to mere brilliancy and self-seeking. The successful effort to overcome this difficulty increased instead of diminishing the impressiveness of his voice, for to it \vas partly due the strange, rich, high-pitched, musical monotone in which he prayed and preached, the echo of which, as it filled his church, or came borne on the air through the open window of a sick room, seems to travel over the long past years and kindle his words afresh, as I read them in the cold dead page. " And as it was an unspeakable blessing to Eversley to have him for its Rector, so also it was an inestimable benefit to him to have had so early in life a definite work to do which gave to his generous sympathetic impulses abundant objects and responsibilities and a clear purpose and direction. Conscious, too, as he could not but be, of great powers, and impatient of dictation or control, the repose and isolation of a country parish afforded him the best and healthiest opportunities of development, and full liberty of thought and speech, with sufficient leisure for reading and study. " Great as was his love of natural science, in so many of its branches, his genius was essentially that of a poet. Often a time of trouble and sadness and there was in him a strong undercurrent of sadness at all times, would result in the birth of a lyrical poem or song, on a subject wholly unconnected with that which occupied him, the production of which gave him evident relief, as though in some mysterious way his mind was thereby disburdened and set free for the reception of new thoughts and impressions. In June, 1851, 156 Charles Kingsley. he preached a powerful sermon to working men in a London church. No sooner had he finished it than the incumbent who had asked him to preach, rose in the reading-desk and denounced it. It was a painful scene, which narrowly escaped ending in a riot, and he felt keenly not the insult to himself but the dis- credit and scandal to the Church, the estrangement that it would be likely to increase between the clergy and the working men. He came home the day after, wearied and worn out, obliged to stop to rest and refresh himself at a house in his parish during his after- noon's walk. That same evening he brought in a song that he had written, the * Three Fishers,' as though it were the outcome of it all ; and then he seemed able to put the matter aside, and the current of his daily life flowed as before. " Not that he at this time or indeed at any time wrote much verse. Considering that what the world needed was not verse, however good, so much as sound knowledge, sound reasoning, sound faith, and above all, as the fruit and evidence of the last, sound morality, he did not give free rein to his poetical faculty, but sought to make it his servant, not his master, to use it to illuminate and fix the eyes of men on the truths of science, of social relationship, of theology, of morality. His books and they are many are the living witnesses of the fruit of these efforts, of the many purposes, the varied subjects, on which he employed the gift that was in him. The letters which he received in countless numbers, often from utter strangers who knew nothing of him but from his books, seeking counsel on the most delicate and important matters of life, testify how great a gift it was, how truly and tellingly it was used. " In reading all his writings, on whatever subject, it must not be forgotten that he was a poet, that he could not help thinking, feeling, and writing as a poet. Patience, industry, a memory for detail, he had, even logical and inductive power of a certain in- tuitive intermittent kind, not sustained, indeed, or always reliable, for his was not a logical, or in details an accurate mind, and surface inconsistencies are not hard to find in his writings ; but as a poet, even if he saw all sides, he could not express them all at once. The very keenness of his sympathy, the intensity with which he realized all that was passing around him, made it impossible for him to maintain the calm unruffled judgment of men of a less fiery temperament, or to abstract and devote himself to the pursuit of any one branch of study without being constantly distracted from it and urged in some new direction by the joys and sorrows of the surging world around, to seek if by any means he might find a medicine to heal its sickness. " Hence it may, perhaps, be that another generation will not fully realize the wide-spread influence, the great power, he exer- cised through his writings. For, in a sense, it may be said that, as A Radical and Chartist. 157 to some of them, not their least merit is that in part they will not live, except as the seed lives in the corn which grows, or water in the plant which it has revived. For their power often lay mainly in the direction of their aim at the special need of the hour, the memory of which has passed, or will pass, away. As his ' Master,' as he affectionately and humbly called Mr. Maurice, was a theo- logian, and, in its original sense, a ' Prophet,' so Mr. Kingsley, as Priest and Poet, gloried in interpreting, expanding, applying him. ' I think this will explain a good deal of Maurice,' was the single remark I heard him make when he had completed ' Yeast.' " In later years, as his experience widened, his judgment ripened, his conclusions were more calmly formed. But his genius was essentially of a kind that comes to maturity early, when the imagi- nation is still vivid, the pulses of life beat fastest, and the sym- pathies and affections are most passionately intense. And I venture to think that these comparatively early years were amongst the best of his life, best in all senses. It was at this time, the first half of the year 1850, that he completed 'Alton Locke,' which, containing though it may more faults, sweeping accusations, hasty conclusions, than any of his writings, is nevertheless his noblest and most characteristic book at once his greatest poem and his grandest sermon. " With the great outside world, with the world of politicians and the press, and still more with the religious world, so called, as represented by the religious newspapers, he was in those years at open war. Popular as he afterwards became, it is difficult now to realize how great was the suspicion, how bitter the attacks, especially from the religious newspapers, which his books and sermons drew down upon him. Not that he in general cared much for praise or blame from the newspaper press, so venal and un- principled did he not without reason consider most of it, Whig, Tory, Radical, and religious. At that time he did not take in or read any daily paper: The Spectator, then edited by Mr. Rintoul, and with Mr. Krimley for its chief critic, was almost his only source of news. " It was then about two years after the events of 1848, and for him the one all-important and absorbing question of Politics was the condition, physical and mental, of the working-classes and the poor in town and country. On that question he considered that all the leading parties of the legislature had alike shown themselves indifferent and incapable. This conviction, and a deep sympathy with the suffering poor, had made him a Radical. Nay, on at least one occasion, he publicly and deliberately declared himself a Chartist a name which then meant a great deal, and for a clergy- man to do this was an act the boldness of which it is difficult to appreciate now. " So vividly did he realixe the sufferings of the poor, so keenly 158 Charles Kings ley. did he feel what he deemed the callousness and the incompetence of the Government to alleviate them, and the mass of the upper and middle classes, that at times he seemed to look, with trembling, for the coming of great and terrible social convulsions, of a ' day of the Lord,' such as Isaiah looked for, as the inevitable fate of a world grown evil, yet governed still by a righteous God. In later years this feeling gradually left him already, perhaps, it was beginning to fade. But it was no mere pulpit or poetic gust. It penetrated (I think) occasionally even to the lesser matters of daily life. Late one dark night he called me out to him into the garden to listen to a distant sound, which he told me was a fox's bark, bidding me to remember it, for foxes might soon cease to be in England, and I might never hear one bark again. " This phase of his lite has been described by one who knew it in an earlier stage, and far better than I. I. will only say that, looking back upon his daily life and conversation at that time, I believe he was democratic in his opinions rather than in his instincts, more by force of conviction than by natural inclination. A doc- trinaire, or a lover of change for the sake of change, he never was ; and when he advocated democratic measures, it was more as a means to an end than because he altogether liked the means. From the pulpit, and with his pen, he claimed brotherhood with all men. No man in his daily intercourse respected with more scrupulous cour- tesy the rights, the dignity of the humblest. But he instinctively dis- liked a ' beggar on horseback.' Noblesse oblige, the true principle of feudalism, is a precept which shines out conspicuously in all his books, in all his teaching, at this period of his life, as at all others. " In later years his convictions became more in accord with this natural tendency of his mind, and he gradually modified or aban- doned his democratic opinions, thereby, of course, drawing down upon himself the reproach of inconsistency from those who con- sidered that he had deserted them. To me, looking back at what he was when he wrote ' Yeast,' and ' Alton Locke,' the change seems rather the natural development of his mind and character under more or less altered circumstances, partly because he saw the world about him really improving, partly because by experience he found" society and other existing institutions more full of healthy life, more available as instruments of good, more willing to be taught, than he had formerly thought. " But, at that time, in his books and pamphlets, and often in his daily familiar speech, he was pouring out the whole force of his eager, passionate heart, in wrath and indignation, against starva- tion wages, stifling workshops, reeking alleys, careless landlords, roofless and crowded cottages, hard and canting religion. His 'Poacher's Widow' is a piercing, heart-rending cry to heaven for vengeance against the oppressor. ' There is a righteous God,' is its burthen, ' and such things cannot and shall not, remain to de- The Bristol Riots. 159 face the world which He has made. Laws, constitutions, churches, are none of His if they tolerate such ; they are accursed, and they must perish destroy what they may in their fall. Nay, they will perish in their own corruption.' " One day, as he was reading with me, something led him to tell me of the Bristol Riots of 1832. He was in that year a schoolboy of thirteen, at Bristol, and had slipped away, fascinated by the tumult and the horror, into the midst of it. He described rap- idly pacing up and down the room, and, with glowing, saddened face, as though the sight were still before his eyes, the brave, patient soldiers sitting hour after hour motionless on their horses, the blood streaming from wounds on their heads and faces, wait- ing for the order which the miserable, terrified Mayor had not courage to give ; the savage, brutal, hideous mob of inhuman wretches plundering, destroying, burning ; casks of spirits broken open and set flowing in the streets, the wretched creatures drink- ing it on their knees from the gutter, till the flame from a burning house caught the stream, ran down it with a horrible rushing sound, and, in one dreadful moment, the prostrate drunkards had become a row of blackened corpses. Lastly, he spoke of the shameless- ness and the impunity of the guilty ; the persecution and the suicide of the innocent. "'That sight,' he said, suddenly turning to me, 'made me a Radical.' " 'Whose fault is it,' I ventured to ask, ' that such things can be ? ' " ' Mine,' he said, ' and yours.' " I understood partly then, I have understood better since, what his Radicalism was. " From his home life I scarcely dare, even for a moment, try to lift the veil. I will only say that having had the priceless blessing of admission to it, the daily sight of him in the closets of his home relations has left me a deeper debt of gratitude, and more precious memories, created higher hopes and a higher ideal, than all other manifestations combined of his character and intellect. To his wife so he never shrank from affirming in dee]) and humble thankfulness he owed the whole tenor of his life, all that he had worth living for. It was true. And his every word and look, and gesture of chivalrous devotion for more than thirty years, seemed to show that the sense of boundless gratitude had become part of his nature, was never out of the undercurrent of his thoughts. Little thinking that he was to be taken first, and with a prospect of a long agony of loneliness imminent from hour to hour, the last flash of genius from his breaking heart was to gather into three simple, pregnant words, as a last offering to her, the whole story of his life, of the Faith he preached and lived in, of his marriage, blessed, and yet to be blessed. He was spared that agony. Over his grave first are written his words, ' Amavimus, amamus, amabimus. ' " CHAPTER XL 1852. AGED 33. Strike in the Iron-Trade Correspondence on Social and Metaphysical Ques- tions Mr. Erskine comes to Fir Grove Parson Lot's last Words Birth of his youngest Daughter Letter from Frederika Bremer. THE short holiday of the past year had so far invigorated Charles Kingsley that he worked without a curate for a time. The literary work was hampered by the heavy correspondence, principally with strangers, who little knew what labor each letter cost him. Of one very valuable series of letters with the son of a clergyman, a young man of atheistical opinions, connected with the " Reasoner," ewspaper, and who eventually died a professing Christian, only two letters are preserved, the rest having been by the will of their owner destroyed at his death, as referring to a phase in his life which it would be painful to his family to recall. Another series, to Thomas Cooper, the Chartist, though spread over this and several years, will be given together in a later chapter. His liter- ary work consisted of " Hypatia," now coming out monthly in " Eraser's Magazine ;" "Phaeton," and a reply to an attack on Christian Socialism in " Eraser's Magazine," which was not in- serted. In the summer he amused himself by trying his hand at hexameters, and began the poem of "Andromeda." His parish work prevented his helping personally in the Co-operative Move- ment in London ; but he was consulted from time to time by the Council of Promoters, and in the great lock-out of the Iron Trade in January he wrote to explain his views on the matter. This let- ter " will show," as Mr. Hughes truly says, " how far Kingsley was an encourager of ' violent measures or views.' " TO TOM HUGHES, ESQ. EVERSLEY, January 28, 1852. " You may have been surprised at my having taken no part in this Amalgamated Iron Trades' matter. And I think that I am Masters and Men. 161 bound to say why I have not, and how far I wish my friends to interfere in it. " I do think that we, the Council of Promoters, shall not be wise in interfering between masters and men ; because i. I question whether the points at issue between them can be fairly understood by any person not conversant with the practical de- tails of the trade " 2. Nor do I think they have put their case as well as they might. For instance, if it be true that they themselves have in- vented many, or most, of the improvements in their tools and ma- chinery, they have an argument in favor of keeping out unskilled laborers, which is unanswerable, and yet what they have never used viz. : 'Your masters make hundreds and thousands by these improvements, while we have no remuneration for this inventive talent of ours, but rather lose by it, because it makes the introduc- tion of unskilled labor more easy. Therefore the only way in which we can get anything like a payment for this inventive faculty of which we make you a present over and above our skilled labor, for which you bargained, is to demand that we, who invent the machines, if we cannot have a share in the profits of them, shall at least have the exclusive privilege of using them, instead of their being, as now, turned against us.' That, I think, is a fair argu- ment ; but I have seen nothing of it from any speaker or writer. " 3. I think whatever battle is fought, must be fought by the men themselves. The present dodge of the Manchester school is to cry out against us, as Greg did, ' These Christian Socialists are a set of mediaeval parsons, who want to hinder the independence and self-help of the men, and bring them back to absolute feudal maxims ; and then, with the most absurd inconsistency, when we get up a Co-operative workshop, to let the men work on the very independence and self-help of which they talk so fine, they turn round and raise just the opposite yell, and cry, 'The men can't be independent of capitalists; these associations will fail because the men are helping themselves' showing that what they mean is, that the men shall be independent of every one but themselves independent of legislators, parsons, advisers, gentlemen, noblemen, and every one that tries to help them by moral agents ; but the slaves of the capitalists, bound to them by a servitude increasing instead of lightening with their numbers. Now, the only way in which we can clear the cause of this calumny, is to let the men light their own battle ; to prevent any one saying, ' These men are the tools of dreamers and fanatics,' which would be just as ruin- ously blackening to them in the public eyes, as it would be to let the cry get abroad, ' This is a Socialist movement, destructive of rights of property, Communism, Louis Blanc, and the devil, &c.' You know the infernal stuff which the devil gets up on such occasions having no scruples about calling himself hard names II 1 62 Charles Kingsley. when it suits his purpose, to blind and frighten respectable old women. " Moreover, these men are not poor distressed needle-women or slop-workers. They are the most intelligent and best educated workmen, receiving incomes often higher than a gentleman's son whose education has cost iooo/. ; and if they can't fight their own battles, no men in England can, and the people are not ripe for association, and we must hark back into the competitive rot heap again. All, then, that we can do is, to give advice when asked to see that they have, as far as we can get at them, a clear stage and no favor, but not by public, but by private influence. " But we can help them in another way by showing them the way to associate. That is quite a distinct question from their quar- rel with their masters, and we shall be very foolish if we give the press a handle for mixing up the two. We have a right to say to masters, men, and public, ' We know, and care nothing about the iron strike. Here are a body of men coming to us, wishing to be shown how to do that which is a right thing for them to do well or ill off, strike or no strike, namely, associate ; and we will help and teach them to do that to the very utmost of our power.' " The Iron Workers' co-operative shops will be watched with lynx eyes, calumniated shamelessly. Our business will be to tell the truth about them, and fight manfully with our pens for them. But we shall never be able to get the ears of the respectabilities and the capitalists, if we appear at this stage of the business. What we must say is, ' If you are needy and enslaved, we will fight for you from pity, whether you be associated or competitive. But you are neither needy, nor, unless you choose, enslaved ; and therefore we will only fight for you in proportion as you become associates. Do that, and see if we can't stand hard knocks for your sake.' ' We now come to the more private correspondence of the year. TO , ESQ.* EVERSLEY, WHIT TUESDAY, 1852. "Mr DEAR MR. , " Sad as your letter was, it gave me much pleasure : it is al- ways a pleasure to see life springing out of death health returning after disease, though, as doctors know, the recovery from asphyxia or drowning is always as painful as the temporary death itself was painless Faith is born of doubt. 'It is not life but death where nothing stirs.' I take all these struggles of yours * A young man of nineteen, to whom he was personally a stranger, but who wrote to him laying bare his whole heart, having woke up from a course of sin and unbelief in black despair. Sympathy with Young Men. 163 as simply so many signs that your Father in heaven is treating you as a father, that He has not forsaken you, is not offended with you, but is teaching you in the way best suited to your own idiosyn- crasy, the great lesson of lessons. ' Empty thyself, and God will fill thee.' 1 am not a man of a mystical or romantic turn of mind ; but I do say and know, both from reason and experience, that we must be taught, even though it be by being allowed for awhile to make beasts of ourselves, that we are of ourselves, and in our- selves, nothing better than as you see in the savage a sort of magnified beast of prey, all the more terrible for its wondrous fa- culties ; that neither intellect nor strength of will can save us from degradation ; that they may be just as powerful for evil as for good ; and that what we want to make us true men, over and above that which we bring into the world with us, is some sort of God-given instinct, motive, and new principle of life in us, which shall make us not only see the right, and the true, and the noble, but love it, and give up our wills and hearts to it, and find in the confession of our own weakness a strength, in the subjection of our own will a freedom, in the utter carelessness about self a self- respect, such as we have never known before. " Do not do not fancy that any confession of yours to me can lower you in my eyes. My dear young man, I went through the same devil's sewer, with a thousand times the teaching and advan- tages which you have had. Who am I, of all men, to throw stones at you ? But take your sorrows, not to me. but to your Father in heaven. If that name, Father, mean anything, it must mean that He will not turn away from His wandering child, in a way in which you would be ashamed to turn away from yours. If there be pity, lasting affection, patience in man, they must have come from Him. They, above all things, must be His likeness. Believe that He possesses them a million times more fully than any human being. " St. Paul knew well, at least, the state of mind in which you are. He said that he had found a panacea for it ; and his words, to judge from the way in which they have taken root, and spread, and con- quered, must have some depth and life in them. Why not try them ? Just read the first nine chapters of St. Paul's Epistle to the Romans, and write me your heart about them. But never mind what anybody, Unitarian or Trinitarian,* may say they mean. Read them as you would a Greek play taking for granted that they mean the simplest and most obvious sense which can be put upon them. " Let me hear more I long for another letter. I need not say that I consider your confidence an honor, and shall keep it sacred. " Do not consult ******. I love him well, but he has no * His correspondent had been brought up a Unitarian. 164 Charles Kings ley. evangel for you. I should be glad to see him in the state you are in now. It would be nearer health." In the summer of 1852 the Right Hon. Thomas Erskine, with his family, settled at Fir Grove, Eversley. For the next twelve happy years he was friend and counsellor to the Rector, and to the parish his influence and example was a priceless blessing. The Judge and his family relieved him of a load of expense and conse- quent anxiety in the matter of the parish charities, which had hitherto fallen almost exclusively on the Rector ; regular district visiting began, and at Fir Grove, which was henceforth like a second home to him and his wife, some of the most charming friendships of that period of his life were formed. It was a new era in Eversley, and with fresh help and fresh hope he worked cheerfully, and had the heart once more to turn his thoughts to poetry. The " Chris- tian Socialist" at this time came to an end, and Parson Lot spoke his " last words " in its last number, concluding thus : " Let us say little and work the more. We shall be the more respected, and the more feared too for it. People will begin to believe that we really know what we want, and really do intend to get it, and really believe in its righteousness. And the spectacle of silent working faith is one at once so rare and so noble, that it tells more, even on opponents, than ten thousand platform pyro- technics. In the meantime it will be no bad thing for us if we are beaten sometimes. Success at first is dangerous, and defeat an excellent medicine for testing people's honesty for setting them earnestly to work to see what they want, and what are the best methods of attaining it. Our sound thrashings as a nation in the first French war were the making of our armies ; and it is good for an idea, as well as for a man, to ' bear the yoke in his youth.' The return match will come off, and many, who are now our foes, will then be our friends ; and in the meantime, ' The proper impulse has been given, Wait a little longer.' " PARSON LOT." This was his last signature as Parson Lot. At the same time he writes to the editor : " If you want an Epiceditim, I send one. It is written in a hurry, so if you like, reject it ; but I have tried to get the maximum of terseness and melody. An Epicedium. 165 "So die, thou child of stormy dawn, Thou winter flower, forlorn of nurse ; Chilled early by the bigot's curse, The pedant's frown, the worldling's yawn. Fair death, to fall in teeming June, When every seed which drops to earth Takes root, and wins a second birth From streaming shower and gleaming moon : Fall warm, fall fast, thou mellow rain ; Thou rain of God, make fat the land ; That roots, which parch in burning sand, May bud to flower and fruit again. To grace, perchance, a fairer morn In mighty lands beyond the sea, While honor falls to such as we From hearts of heroes yet unborn. Who in the light of fuller day, Of loving science, holier laws, Bless us, faint heralds of their cause, Dim beacons of their glorious way. Failure? while tide-floods rise, and boil Round cape and isle, in port and cove, Resistless, star-led from above : What though our tiny wave recoil ? "June 9, 1852. " CHARLES KINGSLEY." TO J. M. LUDLOW, ESQ. EVERSLEY RECTORY, yune 6, 1852. " Too tired, confused, and happy to work, I sit down for a chat with you. " i. About the last number of ' Hypatia.' I dare say you are right. I wanted, for artistic purposes, to keep those two chapters cool and calm till just the very end of each ; and it is very difficult to be quiet without also being dull. But this, you know, is only after all rough copy; and such running criticisms are of the very greatest help to me. About the ' Saga : ' I sent it to Max Miiller, who did not- like it at all, he said ; because, though he highly ap- proved of the form (and gave me a good deal of learned advice in re), it was too rational and moral and rounded, he said, and not irrational and vast, and dreamy, and hyperbolic like a true saga. But I told him, that as a parson to the English public, I was ex- 1 66 Charles Kingsley. pected to point a moral ; and so I put Muller's criticism and yours too into the mouth of Agilmund, who complains of its respectable Benjamin Franklin tone. "As for the monks : 'pon honor they are slow fellows but then they ^vere so horribly slow in reality. And I can't see but that Pambo's palaver in my tale is just what I find in Rosweyde's ' Vitse Patrum,' and Athanases' ' Life of Anthony.' Almost every ex- pression of Pambo's is a crib from some one, word for word. And his instances are historic ones. Moreover, you must recollect, that Arsenius was no mere monk, but a finished gentleman and court intriguer taken ill with superstition. ... As for the Sermons,* I am very glad you like any of them. About what you don't like, I will tell you honestly, 1 think that I have not said anything too strong. People must be cured of their horrible notions of God's arbitrary power His ' satisfaction ' in taking ven- geance His inflicting a permanent arbitrary curse as a penalty His being the author of suffering or evil in any way. I have been driven to it by this. It is easy enough in the case of a holy per- son to use the stock phrase of its having ' pleased God to afflict them,' because one sees that the affliction is of use ; but you can't and darn't say that God is pleased, i.e., satisfied, or rejoiced to afflict poor wretched heathens in St. Giles's, to whom, as far as we can see, the affliction is of no use, but the very reverse. The school formula (not a Scripture one at all, mind) works very well in the school, when at his desk or in the pulpit the good pedant is bringing out his system to a select audience of ' Christian friends,' and forgetting, he and they too, that outside the walls lies a whole world who, he confesses himself, have no more to do with his for- mula (at least till they find themselves in hell at last) than sticks or stones. But if I am to preach a gospel, it must have to do with the people outside the tract-and-sermon- world, as well as inside it ; and then the formula, like most others, don't fit " If, however, I found it in Scripture, 1 should believe it : what I want is plain inductive proof from texts. The ' it has pleased the Lord to bruise Him,' is just the very opposite. The pith and marrow of the 53d of Isaiah being, that He of whom it speaks is afflicted, not for the good of His own soul, but for others that He is ennobled by being sacrificed. It seems to me, that the only way to escape the dilemma really is, to believe that God is what He has revealed Himself to be ' A Father.' If a child said, ' I was naughty, and it pleased my father to whip me for it,' should we not feel that the words were hollow and absurd ? And if F. died to-morrow. God forbid that I should say of rny Father in heaven, it pleased Him to take her from me. If the Lord Jesus is the express image of His Father's glory, then His Father cannot be like that. * National Sermons, First Series. Sorrow and its Lessons. 167 For could I dare believe that it would not pain the Blessed Lord infinitely more than it would pain me, if He was compelled by my sins, or by any other necessity of His -government of this rebel- lious world, to inflict on me, not to mention on the poor little chil- dren, that bitter agony ? In the face of such real thoughts, school terms vanish, and one has to rest on realities ; on the belief in a human-hearted, loving, sorrowing Lord, and of A Father whose image He, in some inexplicable way is or one would go mad. And I have always found, in talking to my people in private, that all second-hand talk out of books about the benefits of affliction, was rain against a window pane, blinding the view but never entering. But I can make a poor wretch believe' the Lord Jesus is just as sorry as you that you have compelled Him for a while to deliver you over to Satan for the punishment of the flesh, that your soul may be saved thereby.' Till you can make them believe that God is not pleased, but 196 Charles Kingsley. ' eateth to himself damnation,' with sincere pleasure, as protests in favor of the true and rational meaning of the word, against the modern and narrower meaning. " You may say that Fire and Worms, whether physical or spirit- ual, must in all logical fairness be supposed to do what fire and worms do do, viz., destroy decayed and dead matter, and set free its elements to enter into new organisms; that, as they are beneficent and purifying agents in this life, they must be supposed such in the future life, and that the conception of fire as an engine of torture, is an unnatural use of that agent, and not to be attributed to God without blasphemy, unless you suppose that the suffering (like all which He inflicts) is intended to teach man something which he cannot learn elsewhere. " You may say that the catch, ' All sin deserves infinite punish- ment, because it is against an Infinite Being,' is a worthless amphi- boly, using the word infinite in two utterly different senses, and being a mere play on sound. That it is directly contradicted by Scripture, especially by our Lord's own words, which declare that every man (not merely the wicked) shall receive the due reward of his deeds, that he who, &c., shall be beaten with few stripes, and so forth. That the words ' He shall not go out till he has paid the ut- termost farthing, evidently imply (unless spoken in cruel mockery) that he may go out then, and that it is scandalous for Protestants to derive from thence the opposite doctrine, while they call the Papists rogues for proving the perpetual virginity of the B. V. Mary from exactly the same use of eu>s. * " Finally, you may call on them to rejoice that there is a fire of God the Father whose name is Love, burning for ever unquench- ably, to destroy out of every man's heart and out of the hearts of all nations, and off the physical and moral world, all which offends and makes a lie. That into that fire the Lord will surely cast all shams, lies, hypocrisies, tyrannies, pedantries, false doctrines, yea, and the men who love them too well to give them up, that the smoke of their /3a0-avrp)s (i.e., the torture which makes men con- fess the truth, for that is the real meaning of it ; /3ao-aj'i0yx,os means the to;/w God in fact who intended to move them into endless torture, were quite unable to conceive of the Son as the express image of the Father. How could He be, if the Father intended to damn, and the Son to save ? Thus the Godhead of the Son became to them a necessary part of their scheme of redemption, only because unleos He were God, 198 Charles Kingsley. His 'satisfaction' and His 'merits' would not be 'infinite,' and the Trinity became a mere function of the ' scheme of redemp- tion,' that again being a function of the 'fall.' " This I have seen long, having been brought up among the evangelicals ; but I never knew that their old prophets had stated it so naively. But see what follows what has followed in Geneva and Germany what followed with you when the Tartarus and the doctrine of vicarious satisfaction became incredible, then the Divinity of Christ, becoming unnecessary, fell to the ground like- wise and socinianism, and at last deism, followed as a matter of course. Think this out for yourself. It is historically as well as logically true. " Now with me. As I have told you, my reason demands a co- equal and co-eternal Son, in order that He may be an ideal and absolute Son at all. Adam Clarke's ' eternal generation being eternal nonsense,' is a very rash, foolish, ignorant speech ; but pardonable to a man of Locke's school, and therefore unable to conceive of an ever-present and unceasing eternity, but referring all things to the conditions of time unable to conceive that an eternal generation means an ever-present and unceasing one, by which the Father saith at every and all moments of time, ' Thou art my Son, this day have I begotten thee.' It is this Lockism which infects all our pulpits, which makes even educated men un- able to understand Maurice. " But my heart, Cooper, demands the Trinity, as much as my reason. I want to be sure that God cares for us, that God is our Father, that God has interfered, stooped, sacrificed Himself for us. I do not merely want to love Christ a Christ, some creation or emanation of God : s whose will and character, for aught 1 know, may be different from God's. I want to love and honor the abso- lute, abysmal God Himself, and none other will satisfy me and in the doctrine of Christ being co-equal and co-eternal, sent by, sacri- ficed by, His Father, that he might do His Father's will, 1 find it and no puzzling texts, like those you (mote, shall rob me of that rest for my heart, that Christ is the exact counterpart of Him in whom we live, and move, and have our being. The texts are few, jonly two after all ; on them I wait for light, as I do on many more ; meanwhile, I say boldly, if the doctrine be not in the Bible, it ought to be, for the whole spiritual nature of man cries out for it. Have you read Maurice's essay on the Trinity in his theological essays ? addressed to Unitarians ? If not, you must read it. " About the word Trinity, I feel much as you do. It seems un- fortunate that the name of God should be one which expresses a mere numerical abstraction, and not a moral property. It has, I think, helped to make men forget that God is a Spirit that is, a moral being, and that moral spiritual, and that morality (in the absolute) is God, as St. John saith God is love, and he that dwelleth Letters to Thomas Cooper. 199 in love* dwelleth in God, and God in him words which, were they not happily in the Bible, would be now called rank and rampant Pantheism. But, Cooper, I have that faith in Christ's right govern- ment of the human race, that I have good hope that He is keeping the word Trinity, only because it has not yet done its work ; when it has, He will inspire men with some better one. The following is the last letter which passed between the two friends : EVERSLEY, September 23, 1872. " MY DEAR THOMAS COOPER, ' ; I have been wandering for nearly a fortnight, the only scrap of holiday I have had for two years, and only found your book and letter yesterday. But I have read through your ' Plain Pulpit Talk ' in two evenings, and I am a close and critical reader, and with delight. That a man of your genius and learning should have done the thing well does not surprise me. The delight to me is , the thing which you have done. " I see the thorough right old morality common to puritans, old Anglican Churchmen, apostles, and prophets ; that you hold right to be infinitely right ; and wrong ditto wrong ; that you call a spade a spade, and talk to men about the real plagues of their own heart ; as Carlyle says, you ' do not rave against extinct Satans, while quite unaware of the real man-devouring Satan at your elbow.' My dear friend, go on and do that, and whether you call yourself Baptist or Buddhist, I shall welcome you as one who is doing the work of God, and fighting in the battle of the Lord, who makes war in righteousness. But more. You are no Buddhist, nor even an Unitarian " I happen to be, from reason and science as well as from Scrip- ture and Catholic tradition (I use a word I don't like, but you who have read know that there is no better one as yet), I happen to be, I say, an orthodox theologian, and to value orthodoxy more the more I think, for its own sake. And it was a solid pleasure to me to find you orthodox, and to find you deriving your doctrines con- cerning right and wrong, and the salvation of men, from orthodox theology. Pp. 128, 131, is a speech of which no sound divine, either of the Church of England or of the middle age, ought to be ashamed. . . . But, my dear friend, whatever you do, don't advocate disestablishing us. We are the most liberal religious body in these realms. In our pale men can meet who can meet nowhere else. Would to God you belonged to us, and we had your powers, as we might have without your altering your creed, with us. But if we the one remaining root of union we disestablish and become a sect like the sects, then competition, not Christ will be God, and we shall bite and devour one another, till atheism and M. Comte 2OO Charles Kings ley. are the rulers of modern thought. I am not mad, but speak the words of truth and soberness; and remember (I am sure you will, though orators at public meetings would not) that my plea is quite disinterested. If the Church of England were disestablished and disendowed to-morrow, vested interests would be respected, and I and others living on small incomes till our deaths. I assure you that I have no family livings, or an intention of putting my sons into them. My eldest son a splendid young fellow is roughing, it successfully and honorably as an engineer anywhere between Denver, U. S., and the city of Mexico. My next and only other son may possibly go to join him. I can give no more solid proof that, while Radical cockneys howl at me as an aristocrat and a renegade, I am none ; but a believer in the persons of my own children, that a man's a man for a' that." CHAPTER XIII. 1854. AGED 35. Torquay Seaside Studies Lectures in Edinburgh Deutsche Theologic Letter from Baron Bunsen Crimean War Settles in North Devon Writes " Wonders of the Shore " and " Westward Ho." " TORBAY is a place which should be as much endeared to the naturalist as to the patriot and to the artist. We cannot gaze on its blue ring of water and the great limestone bluffs which bound it to the north and south without a glow passing through our hearts, as we remember the terrible and glorious pageant which passed by it in the bright days of July, 1588, when the Spanish Armada ventured slowly past Berry Head, with Elizabeth's gallant pack of Devon captains (for the London fleet had not yet joined), following past in its wake, and dashing into the midst of the vast line, undis- mayed by size and numbers, while their kin and friends stood watching and praying on the cliffs, spectators of Britain's Salamis. The white line of houses, too, on the other side of the bay, is Brixham, famed as the landing-place of William of Orange ; and the stone on the pier-head, which marks his first footprints on British ground, is sacred in the eyes of all true English Whigs ; and close by stands the castle of the settler of Newfoundland, Sir Humphrey Gilbert, Raleigh's half-brother, most learned of all Elizabeth's admirals in life, most pious and heroic in death. And as for scenery, though it can boast of neither mountain-peak nor dark fiord, and would seem tame enough in the eyes of a Western Scot or Irishman, yet Torbay has a soft beauty of its own, in the rounded hills which slope into the sea, spotted with parks full of stately timber trees, with squares of emerald grass and rich red fallow fields, each parted from the other by the long line of tall elms, just flushing green in the Spring hedges, which run down to the very water's edge, their boughs tin warped by any blast ; and here and there apple orchards, just bursting into flower in the Spring sunshine, and narrow strips of water meadow, where the 202 Charles Kingsley. red cattle are already lounging knee-deep in richest grass, within ten yards of the rocky, pebble beach, which six hours hence will be nurling. columns of rosy foam high into the sunlight, and sprinkling passengers, and cattle, and trim gardens, which hardly know what frost and snow may be, but see the flowers of Autumn meet the flowers of Spring, and the old year linger smilingly to twine a garland for the new." * In these words Mr. Kingsley describes Torquay, where he passed the winter and spring in 1854, during a leave of absence granted him by the Bishop on account of his wife's health, which had suffered severely from the damp rectory at Eversley. At this time, and for some years to come, the clergy of all parties in the Church stood aloof from him as a suspected person. The attacks of the religious press, perhaps happily for him, had so alarmed the clergy of Torquay, High Church and Evangelical, that all pulpit doors were closed against the author of " Alton Locke," " Yeast," and " Hypatia," and he spent quiet peaceful Sundays with his wife and children for the first time for many years. Once only he was asked to preach in the parish church, and once at the chapel of St. John, in a Lenten week-day service, when the congregation, a High Church one, were surprised at his reverent and orthodox views on the Holy Eucharist. It was a resting time, and the temporary cessation from sermon writing and parish work was very grateful to him, " a combination of circumstances having, during the last year," he wrote to a friend, " so utterly exhausted me, physically and intellectually, that I must lie very quiet for a time, and I look forward with some dread even to the research necessary to make my Edinburgh lectures what they ought to be." Once settled at Livermead, the father and children spent happy hours on the shore, bringing home treasures every afternoon from the rocks and sands, and from occasional dredging expeditions in Tor Bay, to be classified and arranged in the vivarium, and to amuse the invalid. A daily journal of natural history was kept, and hampers of sea beasts, live shells, and growing seaweed sent off to Mr. H. P. Gosse, then living in I^ondon. This sea-side life led to a voluminous correspondence, illustrated by his own beautiful sketches, the contents of which were summed * The " Wonders of the Shore," p. 15. New Treasures. 203 up in an article in the " North British Review " on " The Won- ders of the Shore." This article, afterwards developed into ". Glaucus," contained not only sketches of natural history, but some of his deepest thoughts on theology as connected with the Transmutation Theory and " The Vestiges of Creation." At this time, while treading in the footsteps of Colonel George Montagu, whose lynx eyes had espied them nearly in the same spot fifty years before, he found washed ashore, in a cave neai Goodrington, after a succession of south-easterly gales, a number of Montagu's Chirodota (Synapta digitata] which had not been seen in the interval. Of these he made many drawings, while, with delight, he studied their strange contortions ; and he writes : TO H. P. GOSSE. ESQ. LIVERMEAD, January 3, 1854. " I jot down what I see of my pink chirodotas, (?) in case yours die. They are quite distinct from scolanthus ; their power is one of ^//traction, not of retraction : have no retractile longitudinally- lined proboscis, and the tentacula from the mouth are twelve in number, not fourteen, and are compound, not simple. Their form is this : carrying a boss or thumb at the back of the quadri-palmate horns, the smooth palm turned towards the mouth. These arms are continually curving inward to an invisible mouth, generally in alternate pairs, thus : " You will see by my rough sketch what I mean. I can discern no solid matter passing into the mouth from their strokes. They are never spread out in a ring as in Johnstone's figure. " One has parted with his tail, in the form of a globe of half inch diameter, from which hang many white filaments, two inches long. Another (perhaps the same) has two similar filaments protruding from his tail, which under a quarter inch power, are full of white globular granules in a glairy mucus. I can see no more. All these filaments are knotted. The red spots are continued up the back of the arms to the thumb. The body is covered with minute papil- lae (?) and irregular transverse wrinkles, along the salient ridges of which the red spots generally run. The red spots become more irregular toward the head, and delicate longitudinal pale lines ap- pear between them. " I have just been watching the dismemberment of a specimen. It first threw off, without my seeing, a piece about an inch long, with the white filaments protruding at each end ; then recom- menced by a constriction an inch from the end ; the part beyond the constriction rapidly swelled and contracted to half inch, and began a series of violent rotations from right to left, till it had 204 Charles Kingsley. turned itself more than half round on the longitudinal (fig. 2) axis. This circular wrenching continued principally in the part about to separate (which was much more lively than the body- of the animal) till the part nearest it swelled and became transparent, disclosing four muscular (?) bands, as in fig. 3. A second constriction and rotations then took place, and I witnessed the separation, as in fig. 4, but no filaments escaped. The first parted bit remains very lively. The parent animal was feeding busily with all its hands the whole time. "The animal has during the night broken itself into six pieces, the filaments protruding at the point of separation or anterior end in each. The process has hurt the water, making it milky ; of the Holothtiriae, the brown have contracted both tentacula and suck- ers, the white only the suckers, and, taking in a reef in their tenta- cula, have inflated their heads with water, the mouth pouting in the centre, like an auricula. " N.K. I have seen Cyprea Europaea during the last few days suspend itself from the under-side of low-tide rocks by a glutinous thread, an inch and more in length ; and when in captivity float on the surface by means of a similar thread attached to a glutinous bubble. Johnstone does not mention this. " All the specimens of chirodota have since gone the same way, and become dissolving views, plus an evil and sour smell." In the well-stocked vivarium at home he could study the ways of the lovely little Eclis papillosa, the bright lemon-colored Doris, and the Cucumaria Hyndmanii, with their wondrous gills and feathers to common eyes mere sea-slugs, and varieties of Ser- pulas, with their fairy fringes only visible at happy moments to those who have the patience to watch and wait for the sight ; while the more minute forms of the exquisite Campctnularia Syringa and Volubilis, and the Sertularii, and that " pale pink flower of stone," the Caryophyllia Sniithii, with numberless others, were examined under the microscope. Before leaving Torquay he made a rough list of about sixty species of Mollusks, Annelids, Crustacea, and Polypes found on the shore, nearly all new to him, and revealing a new world of wonders to his wife and children. To this period, his distinguished friend Professor Max Miiller, who came to see him at Livermead, refers when he speaks of him "on the Devonshire coast watching the beauty and wisdom of Nature, reading her solemn lessons, and chuckling, too, over her inimitable fun." The "inimitable fun" was enjoyed in watching the movements and manners of the family of the Crustacea, espe- Lecturing in Edinburgh. 205 cially the soldier crab, of which he had always several specimens in the vivarium, which were an inexhaustible source of merriment to him, and which yet led him at the same moment to some of the deep, strange speculations hinted at so reverently in the pages of " Glaucus." But these pursuits, however enchanting, did not engross him to the forgetfulness of the great social questions of the day, and early in the year we find him writing to Sir Arthur Helps, about Sanitary matters, and urging the clergy to turn their minds to the subject. In February he went to Edinburgh to deliver four lectures on the "Schools of Alexandria," at the Philosophical Institute. It was his first visit to Scotland, and he writes to his wife : WARRISTON, Wednesday. "The lecture went off well. I was dreadfully nervous, and actually cried with fear up in my own room beforehand ; but after praying I recovered myself, and got through it very well, being much cheered and clapped All the notabilities came, and were introduced to me ; and I had some pleasant talk with Sir James Maxwell. Mr. Erskine, of Linlathen, is a charming old man. " My second lecture went off better than the first, in spite of the delicate points on which it touched. Nothing can exceed the cor- diality of people." WARRISTON, February 26. " It is at last over, and I start for England to-morrow. The last lecture was more crowded than ever Altogether it has been (if you had but been with me, and alas ! that poisons everything) one of the most pleasant and successful episodes in my life. I have not met with a single disagreeable have been heaped with kindness. I have got my say said without giving offence, and have made friends which I hope will last for life. I have seen the very best society in Scotland, and I cannot be thank- ful enough to God for having sent me here, and carried me through. To-night I dine with Sir * * * * * *, a perfect fine gentleman of the old school, who was twenty-five years in parliament, and ap- proves highly of 'Alton Locke' and 'Yeast;' as also does his wife, who told me I had a glorious career before me, and bade God speed me in it." .... Returning from Scotland he stopped in London to see how Mr. 206 Charles Kings ley. Maurice's affairs were going on, on his way to Eversley, where he had to remain during a change of curates. " I have just seen Archdeacon Hare, who is looking better ; but this business of Maurice's has fretted him horribly. L * * is work- ing, tooth and nail, for Maurice in Lincoln's-inn ; and the working men in London, including many of the old Chartists of 1848, are going to present a grand address to Maurice in St. Martin's Hall, at which, I believe, I am to be a chairman. Kiss the babes for me, and tell them I long to be with them on Tor sands. " Did I ever tell you of my delightful chat with Bunsen ? I have promised him to write a couple of pages preface to Miss Winkworth's translation of the ' Deutsche Theologie.' Oh ! how you will revel in that book !...." The anxieties and expenses of illness were very heavy just now, but he always met them by a brave heart and by cheering words, to one who lamented the labor they entailed on him. EVERSLEY, February. " . . . . And these very money difficulties Has it not been fulfilled in them, ' As thy day so shall thy strength be ? ' Have we ever been in any debt by our own sin ? Have we ever really wanted anything we needed ? Have we not had friends, credit, windfalls in all things, with the temptation, a way to escape? Have they not been God's sending? God's way of preventing the cup of bliss being over sweet (and I thank him heartily it has not been) ; and, consider, have they not been blessed lessons ? But do not think that I am content to endure them any more than the race horse, because he loves running, is content to stop in the middle of the course. To pay them, I have thought, I have written, I have won for us a name which, please God, may last among the names of English writers. Would you give up the books I have written that we might never have been in difficulties? So out of evil God brings good; or rather, out of( necessity He brings strength and, believe me, the highest spirit- / ual training is contained in the most paltry physical accidents;/ and the meanest actual want, may be the means of calling into actual life the possible but sleeping embryo of the very noblest faculties. This is a great mystery ; but we are animals, in time and space ; and by time and space and our animal natures, are we educated. Therefore let us be only patient, patient ; and let God our Father teach His own lesson, His own way. Let us try to learn it well, and learn it quickly ; but do not let us fancy that He will ring the school-bell, and send us to play before our lesson is learnt. Bunsen and the Deutsche Thcologie. 207 "Therefore 'rejoice in your youth, ere the days come when thou shalt say, I have no pleasure in them.' But make to yourself no ghosts. And remember he who says, ' I will be happy some day,' never will be happy at all. If we cannot be happy now with ten times the blessings which nine-tenths of God's cieatures have, we shall never be happy though we lived a thousand years. Let us lay this solemnly to heart, and take no thought for the morrow." February 27. " The Guards march to-morrow ! How it makes one's blood boil ! We send 10,000 picked men to Malta, en route for Con- stantinople, and the French 60,000." EVERSLEY, ASH WEDNESDAY, March, 1854. " . . . . The ' Deutsche Theologie ' is come from Bunsen : i.e., both Miss Wink\vorth's MSS. and Mrs. Malcolm's printed translation. Pray order Mrs. Malcolm's ' Old German Theology,' with a preface by Martin Luther. You never read so noble a book. The Reform Bill is shelved : excellent as it is, it does not much matter at this minute. Two days after our deputation, that bane of London, the Sewers Commission, awoke in the morning, and behold they were all dead men ! Lord Palmerston, having abolished them by one sentence the night before, and I have not heard that any one is gone into mourning. The Board of Health are now triumphant and omnipotent. God grant that they may use their victory well, and not spoil it by pedantry and idealism ! Baines (capital man that he is !) brings in three clauses, which will reform the whole poor-law, and strike at the root of cottage-de- struction. The squires intend to show fight." In reference to the evidence he gave on sanitary matters as one of a deputation to Lord Palmerston, he says : " I had an opportunity of telling Lord Palmerston a great deal which 1 trust may save many lives. Remember, it is now a question of blood-guiltiness that is all. But I am not going to London any more about sanitary matters. The utter inability of the Health of Towns Act to cleanse this or any other neigh- boring parish made me consider what I have done as a parochial duty " The "Deutsche Theologie" was translated by Miss Susanna Winkworth at Chevalier Bunsen's request, and Mr. Kingsley was asked to write a preface. He had objections, and consulted Mr. Maurice, who answered him thus : 208 Charles Kingsley. " I think your objections have great force, but I do not see that they need prevent you from stating your conviction that, as a practical work on Ethics, the book fully deserves to be translated and read ; and that the discovery of the only correct MSS. is a reason for introducing it to the public at this time. The religious people have no right to be scandalized by any thing that Luther and Spenser sanctioned. You can say that you, being more severely orthodox than they were, cannot swallow all the sentences in it, esteeming them to be too mystical and not quite scriptural, but that nevertheless your judgment in the main jumps with the great Evangelical authorities, and that you conceive they were anxious to enlist such a witness against the self-seeking tendencies of the religion of their time, as you and the translator are to claim him for the same purpose in this day " Chevalier Bunsen writes in the same strain : " MY DEAR FRIEND, " My practical proposal Coincides with that of Maurice. Keep to the ethic point, and refer as to the metaphysical terminology to Luther. I may, if required, say a word in the letter to Miss VV. about this point, although it would be much better for the book and its readers if you, a clergymen of the Church of England, did it instead. Now, having said so much, let me add a word on the great subject itself. When I read your Preface to Hypatia (which you know I think does not justice to the book), I thought I per- ceived you had accepted the council-creeds more historically than penetrated them philosophically. Otherwise you could not have praised so much what I must believe to be only a great logical, formal ingenuity, but compared with St. John and the apostolic fathers down to Tertullian and Origen, a perfect and thorough misunderstanding, like that of an anatomist taking the corpse for the living body. The more I study and think, the stronger that conviction grows, for the inward witness goes with the outward. You will see that my whole new volume has its centre in pointing to facts which show that I cannot say less than what I do say ; that our Confessions of Faith, if taken as making law, must be said frankly to be confessions of the blunders of those who drew them up : like the failure in an equation. The X is not made out, and this is confessed. "I have been at this point from 1817, when the Theologia Ger- manica came into my hands at Rome. My Aphorisms* if you read them with reference to this, will tell you more. "The difference of God and Man, of the Logos, Christ and the individual Christian, is that of the Infinite and the Finite, neither Hippolytus," vol. ii., first edition (1852). Before the House of Commons. 209 more nor less. This is nothing to those for whom nothing exists which is not in space and time ; but much, and enough for all who know that the finite world and man has no other key to its un- derstanding except the infinite. No Werden without the Sein ~6 OVTW^ ov = 6 ovrug &v. "Now the Theologia Germanica>says nothing more in the most startling passages. But certainly we have learnt to say it better, and you, the English, ought to help us to say it still better. 'For this reason I have tortured my brains and your language, in laying before you the Aphorisms. " See whether we meet on this divine road. Excuse the hurried and imperfect writing. I hope Mrs. Kingsley is continuing better. A great anxious time of judgment is now hanging over Germany. Deus providebit ! I correct two proof-sheets every day. " Ever yours faithfully, " BUNSEN." These letters decided him, and he wrote to Miss Winkworth : TORQUAY, March 25, 1854. " I am conquered. I have written the preface this day, and will send the MSS. on Monday. Pray translate that Unterschied der Personen (if you can) ' the distinction of the persons : ' and then we shall be at least, on that point, a labri du diablc. I believe Maurice is right. Pray show the preface to him and Bun- sen, and whomsoever you like, that we may get the help of any suggested improvement." After the book had been out some time he writes again to Miss Winkworth : " You will be glad to hear, I am sure, that your Theologia is being valued by every one to whom I have shown it. Sure I am that the book will do very great and lasting good." In the spring he went up to give evidence on two subjects which he had much at heart before the House of Commons on Sanitary Matters and on the insufficient pay of Parish Medical Officers. His experience of eleven years in a parish had convinced him that the pay of the parish doctor was much too low ; and he willingly gave evidence on the subject, dwelling particularly on the fact that under their present salaries no medical men could afford, or be expected, to give two of the most important but most expensive medicines quinine and cod-liver oil. 14 2io Charles Kingsley. TO HIS WIFE. CHELSEA RECTORY, May, 1854. " I am glad to have been up here. I have seen very much life, and learnt very much. It was just what I wanted after that Devon retirement. 1 went to meet Gosse at the Lin- nasan, and met Darwin (the Voyage of the Beagle). Such a noble face" as the average of the Linnseans, I must say, had. * * * * is a quiet, meek man, and was very anxious to know whether I and Maurice really 'denied the Atonement,' on which point, I think, I satisfied him. " We had a regular microscopic evening last night. George with his microscope, and Mr. H with his both magnificent. The things they showed me were enough to strike one dumb. I am enjoying the thought of bringing Gosse' s book down to you. He has a whole chapter at the end on the things I sent him most kindly written. " Tell the dear children I long to see them, and will be home Wednesday, without fail " In the spring, as his wife was not allowed to return to the colder climate of North Hants, he settled with his family at Bideford, where his novel of " Westward Ho ! " was begun, whose opening pages describe his surroundings for the next twelve months. While there, a. lady consulted him about joining a sisterhood, and he replies : BIDEFORD, July 24, 1854. " MADAM, " Though I make a rule of never answering any letter from a lady whom I have not the honor of knowing, yet I dare not refuse to answer yours. First, because you, as it were, challenge me on the ground of my books : and next, because you tell me that if I cannot satisfy you, you will do that, to prevent which, above all things, my books are written, namely, flee from the world, instead of staying in it and trying to mend it. " Be sure that I can sympathize with you most deeply in your dissatisfaction with all things, as they are. That feeling grows on me, as I trust in God (strange to say) it may grow on you, day by day. I, too, have had my dreams of New Societies, brotherhoods, and so forth, which were to regenerate the world. I, too, have had my admirations for Old Societies and brotherhoods like those of Loyola and Wesley, which intended to do the same thing. But I have discovered, Madam, that we can never really see how much evil there is around us, till we see how much good there is around Brotherhoods and Societies. 211 us, just as it is light which makes us, by contrast, most aware of darkness. And 1 have discovered also, that the world is already regenerated by the Lord Jesus Christ, and that all efforts of our own to regenerate it are denials of Him and of the perfect regen- eration which He accomplished when He sat down on the right hand of God, having all power given to him in heaven and in earth, that He might rule the earth in righteousness for ever. And I have discovered also, that all societies and brotherhoods which may form, and which ever have been formed, are denials of the One Catholic Church of faithful and righteous men (whether Pro- testant or Roman Catholic, matters not to me) which He has estab- lished on earth, and said that hell shall not prevail against it. And when I look back upon history, as I have done pretty carefully, I find that all such attempts have been total failures, just because, with the purest and best intentions, they were doing this, and thereby interfering with the Lord Jesus Christ's way of governing the world, and trying to introduce some new nostrum and panacea of their own, narrow and paltry, compared with His great ways in the deep. " Therefore, though Fox (to take your own example) was a most holy man, Quakerism in general, as a means of regenerating the world, has been a disastrous failure. And so (I speak from years of intimate experience) has good John Wesley's Methodist attempt. Both were trying to lay a new foundation for human society, and forgetting that one which was already laid, which is Christ, who surely has not been managing the earth altogether wrongly, Madam, for 1800 years, or even before that ? " So, again, with that truly holy and angelic man, St. Vincent de Paul has he succeeded ? What has become of education, and of the poor, in the very land where he labored ? God forbid that we Eng- lish should be in such a state, bad as we are ! The moment the per- sonal influence of his virtue was withdrawn, down tumbled all that he had done. He (may God bless him all the same) had no pana- cea for the world's ills. He was not a husband or a father how could he teach men to be good husbands and fathers ? You point to what he and his did. 1 know what they did in South America, and beautiful it was : but, alas ! I know, too, that they could give no life to their converts ; they could not regenerate society among the savages of Paraguay ; and the moment the Jesuit's gentle des- potism was withdrawn, down fell the reductions again into savagery, having lost even the one savage virtue of courage. The Jesuits were shut out, by their vows, from political and family life. How could they teach their pupils the virtues which belong to those states ? But all Europe knows what the Jesuits did in a country where they had every chance ; where for a century they were the real rulers, in court and camp, as well as in schools and cloisters, I mean ii; France. They tried their very best (and tried, 1 am bound to be- 212 Charles Kings ley. lieve, earnestly and with good intent) to regenerate France. And they caused the Revolution. Madam, the horrors of 1 793 were the natural fruit of the teaching of the very men who not only would have died sooner than bring about these horrors, but died too many of them, alas ! by them. And how was this ? By trying to set up a system of society and morals of their own, they, without knowing it, uprooted in the P'rench every element of faith in, and reverence for, the daily duties and relations of human life, without knowing it without meaning it. They would call me a slanderer if they saw my words, and would honestly think me so. May God keep you from the same snare, of fancying, as all ' Orders,' Societies, and Sects do, that they invent a better system of society than the old one, wherein God created man in His own image, viz., of father and son, husband and wife, brother and sister, master and servant, king and subject. Madam, these are more divine and godlike words than all the brotherhoods, ' Societies of Friends,' ' Associa- tions of the Sacred Heart,' or whatsoever bonds good and loving men and women have from time to time invented to keep them- selves in that sacred unity from which they felt they were falling. I can well believe that you feel it difficult to keep in it now. God knows that I do : but never will I (and I trust you never will) yield to that temptation which the Devil put before our Lord, ' Cast thyself down from hence, for it is written He shall give His angels charge over Thee, c.' Madam, whenever we leave the station where God has placed us, be it for never so seemingly self- sacrificing and chivalrous and saintly an end, we are tempting the Lord our God, we are yielding most utterly to that very self-will which we are pretending to abjure. As long as you have a parent, a sister, a servant, to whom you can do good in those simple every- day relations and duties of life, which are most divine, because they are most human, so long will the entering a 'cloister be tempting the Lord your God. And so long, Madam, will it be the doing all in your power to counteract every word which I have ever written. My object has been and is, and I trust in God ever will be, to make people see that they need not, as St. Paul says, go up into heaven, or go down to the deep, to find Christ, because He, the Word whom we preach, is very near them, in their hearts and on their lips, if they would but believe it ; and ready, not to set them afloat on new untried oceans of schemes and projects, but ready to inspire them to do their duty humbly and simply where He has put them and, believe me, Madam, the only way to regenerate the world is to do the duty which lies nearest us, and not to hunt after grand, far-fetched ones for ourselves. If each drop of rain chose where it should fall, God's showers would not fall, as they do now, on the evil and on the good alike. I know 1 know from the experience of my own heart how galling this doctrine is how, like Naaman, one goes away in a rage, because the Prophet has u The Crimean War. 213 not bid us do some great thing, but only to go and wash in the nearest brook, and be clean. But, Madam, be sure that he who is not faithful in a little will never be fit to be ruler over much. He who cannot rule his own household will never (as St. Paul says) rule the Church of God ; and he who cannot keep his temper, or be self-sacrificing, cheerful, tender, attentive at home, will never be of any real and permanent use to God's poor abroad. " Wherefore, Madam, if, as you say, you feel what St. Francis de Sales calls ' a dryness of soul ' about good works and charity, con- sider well within yourself," whether the simple reason, and (no shame on you !) be not only because God does not wish you just yet to labor among the poor ; because He has not yet finished educating you for that good work, and therefore will not let you handle tools before you know how to use them. " Begin with small things, Madam you cannot enter the pres- ence of another human being without finding there more to do than you or I, or any soul, will ever learn to do perfectly before we die. Let us be content to do little, if God sets us at little tasks. / It is but pride and self-will which says, ' Give me something huge to fight, and I should enjoy that but why make me sweep the . dust ? ' Finally, Madam, be sure of one thing, that the Lord Jesus Christ is King of this earth, and all therein ; and that if you will do faithfully what He has set you to already, and thereby using the order of a Deaconess well, gain to yourself a good foundation in your soul's training, He will give you more to do in His good time, and of His good kind. " If you are inclined to answer this letter, let me ask you not to answer it for at Itast thrre months to come. It may be good for you to have read it over a second time. " I am, Madam, " Your obedient servant, " C. KlNGSLEY/' TO T. HUGHES, ESQ. BIDEFORD, December 18, 1854. " . . . . As to the War, I am getting more of a Govern- ment man every day. I don't see how they could have done better in any matter, because I don't see but that /should have done a thousand times worse in their place, and that is the only fair standard. " As for a ballad oh ! my dear lad, there is no use fiddling while Rome is burning. I have nothing to sing about those glorious fellows, except ' God save the Queen and them.' I tell you the whole thing stuns me, so I cannot sit down to make fiddle rhyme with diddle about it or blundered vith hundred, like Alfred Tenny- son. He is no Tyrtanis, though he has a glimpse of what Tyrtanis 214 Charles Kingsley. ought to be. But I have not even that ; and am going rabbit- shooting to-morrow instead. But every man has his calling, and my novel is mine, because I am fit for nothing better. The book (' Westward Ho ! ') will be out the middle or end of January, if the printers choose. It is a sanguinary book, but perhaps containing doctrine profitable for these times. My only pain is that I have been forced to sketch poor Paddy as a very worthless fellow then, while just now he is turning out a hero. " I have made the deliberate amende honorable in a note. " I suppose " (referring to some criticism of Mr. H.'s on ' West- ward Ho!') "you are right as to Amyas and his mother ; I will see to it. The letter in Purchas is to me unknown, but your con- ception agrees with a picture my father says he has seen of Cap- tain John (he thinks at Lord Anglesey's, at Beaudesert), as a prim, hard, terrier-faced little fellow with a sharp chin, and a dogged Puritan eye. So perhaps I am wrong : but I don't think that very important, for there must have been sea-dogs of my stamp in plenty too. " Tummas ! Have you read the story of Abou Zennab, his horse, in Stanley's 'Sinai,' p. 67? What a myth! What a poem old Wordsworth would have writ thereon ! If I didn't cry like a baby over it. What a brick of a horse he must have been, and what a brick of an old head-splitter Abou Zennab must have been, to have his commandments keeped unto this day concerning of his horse ; and no one to know who he was, nor when, nor how, nor nothing. I wonder if anybody '11 keep our commandments after we be gone, much less say, ' Eat, eat, oh horse of Abou Kingsley ! ' " CHAPTER XIV. 1855- AGED 36. Bideford Crimean War Death of his friend Charles Blachford Mansfield " Westward Ho " Letters from Mr. Henry Drummond and Rajah Brooke Drawing Class for Mechanics at Bideford Leaves Devonshire Lectures to Ladies in London Correspondence Winter at Farley Court The " Heroes " Written. THE Crimean winter, bitter alike to the brave men before Sebas- topol and to the hearts of all Englishmen and women at home, weighed heavily on Charles Kingsley, to whom the War was like a dreadful nightmare, which haunted him day and night. " I can think of nothing but the war," he said, and on the receipt of a letter from a friend which told him of the numbers of tracts sent out to the soldiers which they never read and looked upon as so much waste paper, and urging him to write something which would touch them, he sat down, wrote off, and despatched the same day to London a tract which is probably known to few in England " Brave Words to Brave Soldiers." Several thousand copies were sent out and distributed in the Crimea, and the stirring words touched many a noble soul. Jt was published anonymously to avoid the prejudice which was attached to the name of its author in all sections of the religious world and press at that period. To his friend Mr. Tom Hughes he writes at this moment : " You may have fancied me a bit of a renegade and a hanger- back of late. " ' Still in our ashes live their wonted fires." And if I have held back from the Socialist Movement, it has been because I have seen that the world was not going to be set right in any such rose-pink way, excellent as it is, and that there are heavy arrears of destruction to be made up, before construction can even begin ; and I wanted to see what those arrears were. And 1 do see a little. At least I see that the old phoenix must burn, before the new one can rise out of its ashes. 216 Charles Kings ley. " Next, as to our army. I quite agree with you about that if it existed to agree about. But the remnant that comes home, like gold tried in the fire, may be the seed of such an army as the world never saw. Perhaps we may help it to germinate. But please don't compare the dear fellows to Cromwell's Ironsides. There is a great deal of ' personal ' religion in the army, no doubt : and personal religion may help men to endure, and complete the bull- dog form of courage: but the soldier wants more. He wants a faith that he is fighting on God's side ; he wants military and cor- porate and national religion, and that is what I fear he has yet to get, and what I tried to give in my tract. That is what Cromwell's Ironsides had, and by it they conquered. This is what the Eliza- bethans had up to the Armada, and by it they conquered." To Miss Marsh he writes on the death of Captain Hedley Vicars, 93rd Regiment, who was shot in a sortie, March 23, 1855 : NORTH DOWN HOUSE, BIDEFORD, May 9, 1855. " . . . . These things are most bitter, and the on-ly comfort which I can see in them is, that they are bringing us all face to face with the realities of human life, as it has been in all ages, and giving us sterner and yet more loving, more human, and more divine thoughts about ourselves, and our business here, and the fate of those who are gone, and awakening us out of the luxurious, frivolous, un- real dream (full nevertheless of harsh judgments, and dealings forth of damnation), in which we have been living so long to trust in a Living Father who is really and practically governing this world and all worlds, and who willeth that none should perish and therefore has not forgotten, or suddenly begun to hate or torment, one single poor soul which is past out of this life into some other, on that accursed Crimean soil. All are in our Father's hands ; and as Uavid says, Though they go down into hell, He is there. Oh ! > blessed thought more blessed to me at this moment (who think more of the many than of the few) than the other thought, that i though they ascend into heaven with your poor lost hero, He is there \ also " During the winter, on the 25th of February, a sorrow came, and God took from him, for a time, one who had been his beloved friend for seventeen years, the ever welcomed guest in his home since his marriage, and dear to his wife and children as to himself. His own words, partly from a slight prefatory sketch,* partly * " Brazil, Buenos Ayres, and Paraguay," by Charles B. Mansfield, Esq., with a Sketch of the Author's Life, by Rev. Charles Kingsley. (Macmillan, 1856.) Charles Mansfield. 217 from some notes found among his private papers, will best describe Charles Blachford Mansfield ; and to those who love to dwell on fair pictures of God's works, this picture of a human being, moulded into His image, may be acceptable and inspiring. Any record of Charles Kingsley would be incomplete unless it included a glimpse of one who was so entwined with his Cambridge days, with the rectory life at Eversley, with the winter in Devonshire, and at times when the presence of any other third person would have been an interruption. " I knew Charles Mansfield first when he was at Clare Hall in 1838-9, sometime in my freshman's winter. He was born in the year 1819, at a Hampshire parsonage, and in due time went to school at Winchester, in the old days of that iron rule among mas- ters, and that brutal tyranny among the boys themselves, which are now fast disappearing before the example of influence of the great Arnold. Crushed at the outset, he gave little evidence of talent beyond his extraordinary fondness for mechanical science. But the regime of Winchester told on his mind in after life for good and for evil ; first, by arousing in him a stern horror of injustice (and in that alone he was stern), which showed itself when he rose to the higher forms, by making him the loving friend and protector of all the lesser boys ; and next, by arousing in him a doubt of all prece- dents, a chafing against all constituted authority, of which he was not cured till after long and sad experience. What first drew me to him was the combination of body and mind. He was so won- derfully graceful, active, and daring. He was more like an ante- lope than a man. He had a gymnastic pole in his room on which he used to do strange feats. There was a seal-skin, too, hanging in his room, a mottled two-year-old skin, about five feet long, of a seal which was shot by him down on the Cornish coast. The seal came up to the boat side and stared at him, and he knocked it over. That thing haunted him much in after life. He deplored it as all but a sin, after he had adopted th *. notion that it was wrong to take away animal life, for which he used to scold me in his sweet charitable way, for my fishing and entomologizing. He has often told me that the ghost of the seal appeared to him in his dreams, and stood by his bed, bleeding, and making him wretched. "He was a good shot, and captain of his boat at Cambridge, I think. His powers of leaping standing, exceeded almost any man's I ever saw. I believe him to have been physically incapable of fear. And since his opinions changed, and during the last war, he has said to me that he wished he was at Sebastopol, handling a rifle, 1 have been tempted to wish that he had been a soldier, so splendid a one do 1 think he would have made. 218 Charles Kings ley. " The next thing which drew me to him was his intellect, not merely that he talked of the highest things, but he did it in such a wonderful way. He cared for nothing but truth. He would argue by the hour, but never for arguing sake. None can forget the brilliance of his conversation, the eloquence with which he could assert, the fancy with which he could illustrate, the earnestness with which he could enforce, the sweetness with which he could differ, the generosity with which he could yield. Perhaps the secret of that fascination, which even at Cambridge, and still more in after life, he quite unconsciously exercised over all who really knew him (and often, too, over those who but saw him for a passing minute, or heard him in a passing sentence, yet went away saying that they had never met his like), was that virtue of earnest- ness. When I first met him at Cambridge he was very full of Combe's works, and of 'Voiney's Ruins of Empires.' He was what would be called a materialist, and used to argue stoutly on it with me, who chose to be something of a dualist or gnostic. I forget my particular form of folly. But I felt all through that his materialism was more spiritual than other men's spiritualism, be- cause he had such an intense sense of the truly spiritual ; of right and wrong. He was just waiting for the kingdom of God. When the truth was shown to him, he leapt up and embraced it. There was the most intense faith in him from the first that Right was right, and wrong wrong ; that Right must conquer ; that there was a kingdom of God Eternal in the heavens, an ideal righteous polity, to which the world ought to be, and some day would be, conformed. That was his central idea ; I don't say he saw it clearly from the first ; 1 don't say that he did not lose sight of it at times, but I know that he saw it, for he was the first human being that taught it to me. Added to this unconquerable faith in good, was an unconquerable faith in truth. He first taught me not to be afraid of truth. 'If a thing is so, you can't be the worse for knowing it is so,' was his motto, and well he carried it out. This was connected, it seems to me, with his intense conscientiousness. Of course that faculty can be diseased, like any other, and men may conscientiously do wrong. But what corrected it in him in after life, and prevented it from becoming mere obstinacy and fanaticism, was his wonderful humility. That grew on him after his conversion. He had it not at starting. At first he was charming, but wilful and proud. Afterwards he was just as charming, but too apt to say to any and to every one, ' Here am I, send me ! ' But of his conscientiousness I could write pages. I will not here though, perhaps never such fantastic forms did it take. All knight-errant honor which I ever heard of, that man might have, perhaps has, actually outdone. From the time of his leaving Cambridge he devoted himself to those sciences which had been all along his darling pursuits. Ornithology, geolo- Charles Mansfield. 219 gy, mesmerism, even old magic, were his pastimes ; chemistry and dynamics his real work. He was a great ornithologist from child- hood ; he knew eggs especially well : one of his plans, because he did not like shooting the birds, was to observe them on the trees with a telescope ; and though not ' musical ' in the common sense, he knew the note of every English bird. I never knew him wrong. The history of his next ten years is fantastic enough, were it written, to form material for any romance. Long periods of voluntary penury, when (though a man of fair worldly fortune) he would subsist on the scantiest fare a few dates and some brown bread, or a few lentils at the cost of a few pence a day, bestowing his savings on the poor ; bitter private sorrows, which were schooling his heart and temper into a tone more purely an- gelic than I have ever seen in man ; magnificent projects, worked out as far as they would go, not wildly and superficially, but on the most deliberate and accurate grounds of science, then thrown away in disappointment, for some fresh noble dream ; an intense interest in the social and political condition of the poor, which sprang up in him, to his great moral benefit, during the last five years of his life. Here were the elements of his schooling as hard a one, both voluntary and involuntary, as ever human soul went through. In all my life I never heard that man give vent to a low or mean word, or evince a low or mean sentiment. Though he had never, I suppose, seen much of the ' grand monde,' he was the most perfectly, well-bred man at all points I ever saw ; and exquisite judges have said the same thing. His secret seemed very simple, if one could attain it ; but he attained it by not trying to attain it, for it was merely never thinking about himself. He was always thinking how to please others in the most trivial matters ; and that, not to make them think well of him (which breeds only affectation), but just to make them comfortable : and that was why he left a trail of light wherever he went. " It was wonderful, utterly wonderful to me in after life, know- ing all that lay on his heart, to see the way he flashed down over the glebe at Eversley, with his knapsack at his back, like a shining star appearing with peace on earth and good-will to men, and bringing an involuntary smile into the faces of every one who met him the compelled reflection of his own smile. And his voice was like the singing of a bird in its wonderful cheerfulness, and tenderness, and gaiety. "At last, when he was six and thirty years of age, his victory in the battle of life seemed complete. His enormous and increas- ing labor seemed rather to have quickened and steadied than tired his brain. The clouds which had beset his path had all but cleared, and left sunshine and hope for the future. His spirit had become purified, not only into doctrinal orthodoxy, but also into a humble, generous, and manful piety, such as I cannot hope often to behold 220 Charles Kingsley. again. He had gathered round him friends, both men and women, who looked on him with a love such as might be inspired by a being from a higher world. He was already recognized as one of the most promising young chemists in England, for whose future renown no hope could be too high-pitched ; and a patent for a chemical discovery which he had obtained, seemed, after years of delay and disappointment, to promise him what he of all men coveted least, renown and wealth. One day he was at work on some experiments connected with his patent. By a mistake of the lad who assisted him, the apparatus got out of order, the naphtha boiled over, and was already on fire. To save the prem- ises from the effect of an explosion, Mr. Mansfield caught up the still in his arms, an attempted to carry it out ; the door was fast ; he tried to hurl it through the window, but too late. The still dropped from his hands, half flayed with liquid fire. He scrambled out, rolled in the snow, and so extinguished the flame. Fearfully burnt and bruised, he had yet to walk a mile to reach a cab, and was taken to Middlesex Hospital, where, after nine days of agony, he died like a Christian man. "Oh, fairest of souls! Happy are those who knew thee in this life ! Happier those who will know thee in the life to come ! C. K." They are together now ! Two true and perfect knights of God, perchance on some fresh noble quest ! Little has been recovered of the correspondence of this year, much of which sprung out of the publication of "Westward Ho ! " That book was dedicated to Rajah Brooke and Bishop Selwyn, and produced the following letter from Mr. Henry Drummond, and at a later period, one from the Rajah himself : ALBEMARLE STREET, May 13, 1855. " DEAR SIR, " I have just seen your noble dedication of ' Westward Ho ! ' to Sir J. Brooke, and have taken the liberty to desire a copy of the shameful trial to which he has been subjected to be sent you, as I am sure it will gratify you. I heard from him last week : he is quite well, and all his work prospering. A remarkable thing is about to take place in Sarawak. The people finding themselves dealt with in a manner so superior to that in which they are dealt with by their own rulers, have considered that the religion of their present governor must be the true religion, and accordingly are about to apply en masse to become members of Brooke's religion. In my opinion the only means which should be used towards Rajah Brooke and "Westward Ho!" 221 heathen is the manifestation of mercy, justice, and truth. The poor bishop's trouble will bt-gin after he has got his converts. "Begging pardon for this intrusion from a stranger, " I am, Sir, " With great admiration of your writings, " Your obedient Servant, " HENRY DRUMMOND." RAJAH SIR JAMES BROOKE TO REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY. DAWLISH, March 24, 1859. " MY DEAR SIR, "I have long delayed to thank you in person for a very wel- come dedication to ' Westward Ho ! ' but business, with many cares, prevented me. "I cannot, however, now that I hear of your kind interest in my cause, and the exertions you are making to advance it, forbear from assuring you of my sense of your good opinion, and the good it does me mentally. My life is pretty well at its dregs, and I shall be glad indeed to pass the few remaining months or years in quiet, and free from the anxieties which must beset the post I have occu- pied, but which of late years have been increased tenfold, owing to the course or rather no course pursued by the Government. " It is a sadbut'true experience, that everything has succeeded with the natives, and everything has failed with the English in Bor- neo. I am anxious, to retire, for Sarawak should not be ruled by a failing man, and I would not cling to power when unable to dis- charge its duties. " In due time I would fain hand over my staff to my successor if permitted ; but if forced to return to Sarawak, to bear its anxieties and share its trials, I shall know it is a duty though a trying one, and shall not begrudge the exertion for the short time I can make it. " Let me thank you, then, for your kindness, and let me have the satisfaction of knowing you before I leave this country. " Whenever I go again to town, I will let you hear from me, in the hope you will invite me to visit you. "Believe me, my dear Sir, " Yours very sincerely, "J. BROOKE." Having no parish work at Bideford, except during an outburst of cholera, when he took a district for house to house visitation, and occasional duty at Northam, Hartland, and Abbotsham, he lectured on the Fine Arts, and got up a drawing-class for young men, of which one of the members, Mr. Plucknett, (now head of a great firm for the design and manufacture of art furniture and 222 Charles Kingsley. decoration in Warwick and Leamington,) feelingly speaks in a let- ter to Mrs. Kingsley : WARWICK, April, 1876. " I was a youth in Bideford at the time Mr. Kingsley came to reside there, when seeing the young men of the town hanging about wasting their leisure hours in worse than wasting, his heart yearned to do them good. He at first endeavored to establish a Government School of Art this, however, failed. He then offered to teach a class drawing gratuitously. A few of us held a meet- ing and hired a room in the house of the Poet Postman, Edward Capern, who, although a married man', much older than the rest of us, was a most hard-working pupil. 1 look back upon those even- ings at Bideford as the pleasanlest part of my life, and, with God's blessing, I attribute my success in life to the valuable instruction 1 received from Mr. Kingsley : his patience, perseverance, and kind- ness won all our hearts, and not one of his class but would have given his life for the master. He used, as no doubt you remem- ber, to bring fresh flowers from his conservatory for us to copy as we became sufficiently advanced to do so ; and still further on he gave us lectures on anatomy, illustrating the subject with chalk drawings on a large black board. His knowledge of geometry, perspective, and free-hand drawing, was wonderful ; and the rapid and beautiful manner in which he drew excited both our admiration and our ambition. I have reason to believe that most of the class received lasting benefit, and have turned out well. Personally, I may say, with truth, 1 have cause to bless the name of Mr. Kings- ley as long as I live ; for I left home with little more than the knowledge of my business, and the knowledge of drawing learned in the class. After many years of hard work I am now at the head of a good business, which I am proud to say is well known for the production of art furniture, &c. I often thought of writing to Mr. Kingsley, but diffidence prevented me. The last time I ever saw him was in front of Lord Elcho's Cottage, at Wimbledon, at the time the Belgians first came to the camp. I was there represent- ing my corp from Bath as a marksman, and just as I was about to speak to Mr. Kingsley, the Prince of Wales came out on the green and entered into conversation with him, and my opportunity was lost for ever. " Though dead, he yet influences for good thousands of hearts and minds ; and he is now reaping the reward of his noble efforts while on earth to add to the sum of human happiness, and thus leave the world better than he found it. I need not speak of the time when the class ceased, and Mr. Kingsley invited us to your house, to bid us farewell, and of our tribute of love and respect to him. ." Facility in Sketching. 223 This tribute of love was a silver card case, which was very pre- cious to him, given at the close of a happy evening, when the class came to supper at North Down House. The mention of the "black board" will remind many of his masterly sketches, in public lectures and at his own school, where he liked always to have a black board, with a piece of chalk, to illustrate his teachings by figures, which spoke sometimes as elo- quently as his words. His sense of form was marvellous, and, when in doors, he was never thoroughly at ease without a pen or pencil in his hand. In conversation with his children or guests his pencil was out in a moment to illustrate every subject, whether it was natural history, geological strata, geography, maps, or the races of mankind. And even when writing his sermons his mind seemed to find relief in sketching on the blotting-paper before him, or on the blank spaces in his sermon-book, characteristic heads, and types of face, among the different schools of thought, from the mediaeval monk to the modern fanatic. At Bristol, when he was President of the Educational Section at the Social Science Con- gress, as he sat listening to the various speakers, pen in hand, for the ostensible purpose of making notes, he covered the paper with sketches suggested by the audience before him or by his own im- agination ; and when the room was cleared, unknown to him, peo- ple would return and beg to carry off every scrap of paper he had used, as mementos. In the end of May he left Devonshire and went up to London, before settling at Eversley. He there gave a lecture to the Work- ing Men's College, and one of a series to ladies interested in the cause of the laboring classes. The subject he took was, The work of ladies in the Country Parish. The lecture, valuable in itself, is doubly so, as the result of the first eleven years of his labor among the poor, and some extracts are given to show the human and humane rules by which he worked his parish. " I keep to my own key-note," he says " I say, Visit whom, when, and where you will ; but let your visits be those of u omen to women. Consider to whom you go to poor souls whose life, com- pared with yours, is one long malaise of body, and soul, and spirit and do as you would be done by ; instead of reproving and fault- finding, encourage. In God's name, encourage. They scramble 224 Charles Kingsley. through life's rocks, bogs, and thorn-brakes, clumsily enough, and have many a fall, poor things ! But why, in the name of a God of love and justice, is the lady, rolling along the smooth turnpike road in her comfortable carriage, to be calling out all day long to the ; poor soul who drags on beside her, over hedge and ditch, moss and / moor, barefooted and weary hearted, with half a dozen children on / her back ' You ought not to have fallen here ; and it was very cowardly to lie down there ; and it was your duty as a mother, to have helped that child through the puddle ; while as for sleeping under that bush, it is most imprudent and inadmissible?' Why not encourage her, praise her, cheer her on her weary way by lov- ing words, and keep your reproofs for yourself even your advice ; for she does get on her way after all, where you could not travel a step forward ; and she knows what she is about perhaps better than you do, and what she has to endure, and what God thinks of her life-journey. The heart knoweth its own bitterness, and a stranger intermeddleth not with its joy. But do not you be a stranger to her. Be a sister to her. I do not ask you to take her up in your carriage. ^ You cannot ; perhaps it is gDod for her that you cannot. . . . All I ask is, do to the poor soul as you would have her do to you in her place. Do not interrupt and vex her (for she is busy enough already) with remedies which she does not understand, for troubles which you do not understand. But speak comfortably to her, and say, ' I cannot feel with you, but I do feel/ (TOIS) ovpavots, and on the very throne of God. Face the seemingly coarse anthropomorphism of the Old Testament, and believe that the New Testament so (far from narrowing it, widens and deepens it. " This is m)' only hope and stay, while I see belief and practice alike rocking and reeling to decay. May God keep it alive in me and in you, recollecting always that to do the simple right thing The Mutiny in India. 275 which lies at our feet, is better than to have ascended into the third heaven, and to have all yvwcris and all mysteries. " You sign yourself by a very noble name. Are you a son of that good and wise man to whose lectures about Chara and Nitella I have listened in Quy-fen eighteen years ago ? 1 shall be happy to hear from you again." He gave many lectures in the diocese this autumn for Mechanics' Institutes, and among others his " Thoughts in a Gravel Pit," and one on " Chaucer," also a long promised one at Bristol on " Great Cities, their Influence for Good and Evil." * He was just now engaged on a volume of poems for publication, and they had been advertised by Messrs. Parker for Christmas. But while preparing them for the press he was asked to write an article on Sanitary reform. This work, and the terrible depression produced on his mind by the Indian mutiny, prevented his being able to get them ready in time. The agony of his mind as the details from India poured in, though he had no relatives or per- sonal friends engaged in the mutiny, was terrible, and he writes to Mr. Bullar: "... Do not talk to me about India, and the future of India, till you can explain the past the past six months. O Bullar, no man knows, or shall know, what thoughts they have cost me. Meanwhile, I feel as if I could dogmatise no more. I dare say you are right and I wrong. I have no heart, at least, to continue any argument, while my brain is filled with images fresh out of hell and the shambles. Show me what security I have that my wife, my children, should not suffer, from some unexpected outbreak of devils, what other wives and children have suffered, and then 1 shall sleep quiet, without longing that they were safe out of a world where such things are possible " You may think me sinful for having such thoughts. My experi- ence is. that when they come, one must face them, do battle with them deliberately, be patient if they worst one for a while. For by all such things men live, in these is the life of the spirit. Only by going down into hell can one rise again the third day. I have been in hell many times in my life ; therefore, perhaps, have I had some small power of influencing human hearts. But I never have looked hell so close in the face as I have been doing of late. Wherefore I hope thereby to get fresh power to rise, and to lift others heaven- ward. But the power has not come yet And * Published iu the " Miscellanies." 276 Charles Kings ley. I can only cry, ' O Lord, in Thee have I trusted, let me never be confounded. Wherefore should the wicked say, where is now his God?' " But while I write now, and while I fret most, there comes to me an inner voice, saying What matter if thou art confounded. God is not. Only believe firmly that God is at least as good as thou, with thy ' finite reason,' canst conceive ; and He will make thee at last able to conceive how good He is, and thou shalt have the one perfect blessing of seeing God. " You will say I am inconsistent. So I am ; and so, if read honestly, are David's Psalms. Yet that very inconsistency is what brings them home to every human heart for ever. The words of a man in real doubt and real darkness, crying for light, and not cry- ing in vain. As I trust I shall not. God bless you." TO GEORGE BRIMLEY, ESQ. EVERSLEY, 1857. " DEAR BRIMLEY, " Your letter has much comforted me ; for your disapproval is really to me a serious thing, from what I know of your critical powers ; while my own hopeless inability to judge of the goodness or badness of anything I write makes me more and more modest about my own ' aesthesis.' That word ' masque ' I will omit here- after. The truth is, that I have drawn, modelled in clay, and pic- ture fancied, so much in past years, that I have got unconsciously into the slang for slang it is and I am faulty therein. " About the melodrama on the Glyder, I quite agree with you that some folks will carp. There was a cantankerous lady (I heard who she was, but forget why not ?) who attacked me fiercely on that score, anent ' Westward Ho ! ' She knew not that the one point which infuriated her most, viz., the masts and sails and people looking red-hot against a black background instead of vice versa, when Amyas is struck blind, was copied from the experience of a near relative who was struck senseless by a flash of lightning, and squinted and had weak eyes for years after. So much for the re- ward which one gets for copying nature ! " In the Glyder scene I have copied nature most carefully, having surveyed every yard of the ground this summer. The vision of Snowdon towering and wet against the background of blue flame, appearing and disappearing every moment, was given me byFroude, who lived there three years, and saw it, and detailed it carefully, begging me to put it in ! But why go on justifying ? I don't think the deerstalkers of Park Lane and Belgravia will sneer, because they see such things in their field-sports, and are delighted when such men as Maxwell or St. John, or perhaps I for they have told me so often can put them into words for them ; but the true Nature s Melodrama. 277 snubbers are the cockneys who write for the press, and who judge of the universe from the experiences of the London suburbs, or a summer's watering-place trip. I have seen as awful sights here at the breaking up of a long drought ; and what I wanted to do was boldly to defy criticism on that very point, calling the chapter 'Nature's Melodrama,' and showing, meanwhile, that the ' melo- dramatic element ' was a false, and morbid, and cowardly one, by bringing in Naylor and VVynd, thinking the very same horrors capi- tal fun. I would not have taken Elsley there if I had not taken them there also, as a wholesome foil to his madness. " Claude and Sabina are altogether imaginary. Ever since 'Yeast,' I'have been playing with them as two dolls, setting them to say and do all the pretty naive things any one else is too re- spectable to be sent about, till I know them as well as I know you. I have half-a-dozen pet people of that kind, whom I make talk and walk with me on the moors, and when I am at my parish work ; and charming company they all are, only they get more and more wilful, being ' spoilt children,' and I cannot answer for any despe- rate aberration of theirs, either in doctrine or practice, from hour to hour. Like all the rest of human life, the best things which I get out of them are too good to be told. So nobody will ever know them, save a little of the outside. Writing novels is a farce and a sham. If any man could write the simple life of a circle of five miles round his own house, as he knew, and could in many cases swear it to be, at that moment, no one would believe it ; and least of all would those believe it who did believe it. Do you ask the meaning of the paradox ? " Those who know best that the facts are true, or might be true, would be those most interested in declaring them impossible. When any man or woman calls anything 'over-drawn,' try them, if you can, by the argument " ' Now, confess. Have you not seen, and perhaps done, stranger things?' And in proportion to their honesty and genial- ity they will answer, ' Yes.' " I have never found this fail, with people who were human, and were capable of having any ' history ' at all." CHAPTER XVIII. AGED 39. Eversley Work Diphtheria Lectures and Sermons at Aldershot Blessing the Colors of the 22nd Regiment Staff College Advanced Thinkers Poems and Santa Maura Letter from Dr. Monsell Letters to Dr. Monsell, Dean Stanley, &c. Letter from Captain Congreve Birth of his Son Grenville Second Visit to Yorkshire. THIS was a year of severe work and anxiety, for he could not afford a curate. Diphtheria, then a new disease in England, ap- peared in the neighborhood, and was very fatal. It created a panic, and to him it was a new enemy to be hated, and fought against, as it was his wont to hate and fight against every form of disease, and especially those which he suspected to come from malaria, and other preventable causes. Its prevalence among children, and cases in his own parish, affected and excited him, and he took counsel with medical men, as to how to meet the earliest symptoms of the new foe. When it reached Eversley, some might have smiled at seeing him, going in and out of the cot- tages with great bottles of gargle under his arm, and teaching the people men, women, and children, to gargle their throats, as a preventive ; but to him it was terrible grim earnest, acting as he did on Thomas Carlyle's principle, "Wheresoever thou findest disorder, there is thy eternal enemy ; attack him swiftly, subdue him, make order of him." His work for the Hants and Wilr.s Education Society, to which he had bound himself to give so many lectures annually, in lieu of subscription, was heavy : he lectured on local geology, on Chau- cer, on Jack of Newbury, and Flodden Field, and on the Days of the Week ; in those days seldom repeating the same lecture. The position of Eversley with regard to Chobham, Aldershor, and Sandhurst, brought him more and more in contact with military men, and widened his sphere of influence. The society of soldiers The Soldier Spirit. 279 as a class was congenial to him. He inherited much of the soldier spirit, as he inherited soldier blood ; and the few of his direct an- cestors' portraits that have survived the wreck of his family, are all of men in uniform, including, with others of earlier date, General Kingsley, Governor of Fort William, colonel of the 2oth Regiment, who fought at the battle of Minden ; and among the family papers there are commissions with the signature of the reigning authori- ties. He had himself, at one time, thought of the army as a pro- fession, and had spent much time as a boy in drawing plans of fortifications ; and after he took holy orders it was a constant occu- pation to him, in all his walks and rides, to be planning fortifications. There is scarcely a hill-side within twenty miles of Eversley, the strong and weak points of which in attack and defence during a possible invasion, he has not gone over with as great an intensity of thought and interest as if the enemy were really at hand ; and no soldier could have read and re-read Hannibal's campaigns, Creasy's Sixteen decisive battles, the records of Sir Charles Na- pier's Indian warfare, or Sir William's magnificent history of the Peninsular War, with keener appreciation, his poet's imagination enabling him to fill up the picture and realize the scene, where his knowledge of mere military detail failed. Hence the honor he esteemed it to be allowed to preach to the troops at Aldershot, and to lecture to military men there and at Woolwich. His eyes would kindle and fill with tears as he recalled the impression made on him on Whit Sunday, 1858, by the sound heard for the first time, and never to be forgotten, of the clank of the officers' swords and spurs, and the regular tramp of the men as they marched into church, stirring him like the sound of a trumpet. He lectured this year, too, to the troops in the camp on Cortez. He was also asked by Mrs. William Napier to bless the new colors which she presented to her father's old regiment, the 22nd, of which Sir Charles Napier himself had spoken when he, as its distinguished colonel, presented colors to the ist battalion some years before : " That brave regiment which won the battle of Meanee won the battle of Hydrabad won Scinde for England ; . . . . the regiment which stood by the King of England at Dettingen, stood by the celebrated Lord Peterborough at Barcelona ; and into the arms of whose grenadiers the immortal Wolfe fell on the 280 Charles Kings ley. heights of Abraham. Well may I exult in the command of such a regiment." (Life of Sir Charles Napier.) After the ceremony, Mrs. Napier went round the ranks, among which were many old veterans who had survived from the great Indian battles, in which her father commanded them in the field, and introduced Mr. Kingsley to them. That too was a red letter in his calendar, as he called it. He camped out a night this sum- mer with the Guards on Cove Common. His sermons in camp brought many officers over to Eversley Church, and led to the formation of friendships which were very dear to him. During the earlier years of the Staff College, Sandhurst, of which his valued friend General William Napier was commandant, he was often invited to mess, and was received with a marked respect, which did as much honor to his hosts as to their guest. That he never shrunk from showing his colors, the following reminiscence from one who was present will testify : " We had among us one or two so-called ' advanced thinkers,' men who were inclined to ridicule religion somewhat. I remem- ber once the conversation at mess took that direction, and Mr. Kingsley stopped it at once and forever in the pleasantest, and at the same time most effectual manner, by pointing out how unmanly and ungenerous it was to endeavor to weaken a faith which was a trusted support to one's friends. He said it was impossible to use arguments of this kind without causing pain to some, and even if a man could hope to produce conviction, it could only be by taking from his convert much of the present joy of his life. Would any brave man desire to do that for the mere sake of a rhetorical triumph ? There was the regular little apology, 'Forgot for a moment that there was a clergyman at the table,' &c. " ' All right, never mind, but you must not apologize on that ground, We are paid to fight those arguments as you soldiers are to do another sort of fighting, and if a clergyman is worth his salt, you will always find him ready to try a fall with you. Besides, it is better for your friends, if they are to have the poison, to have the antidote in the same spoon.' " Early this year his poems were published, and among them "Santa Maura," which had a powerful effect on thoughtful people; the story being so little known. " I am delighted," he says to Mr. Maurice, " that you are satis- fied with ' St. Maura.' Nothing which I ever wrote came so out St. Maura. 281 of the depths of my soul as that, or caused me during writing (it was all clone in a day and a night) a poetic fervor such as I never felt before or since. It seemed to me a sort of inspiration which I could not resist ; and the way to do it came before me clearly and instantly, as nothing else ever has done. To embody the highest spiritual nobleness in the greatest possible simplicity of a young village girl, and exhibit the martyr element, not only free from that celibate element which is so jumbled up with it in the old myths ; but brought out and brightened by marriage love. That story, as it stands in the Acta SS., has always been my experimen- tum crucis of the false connection between martyrdom and celibacy. But enough of this selfish prosing I have no novel in my head just now. I have said my say for the time, and I want to sit down and become a learner, not a teacher, for I am chiefly impressed with my own profound ignorance and hasty assumption on every possible subject." The volume of poems led to his first communication with Dr. Monsell, who writes : GULVAL VICARAGE, PENZANCE, April 14, 1858. " REV. AND DEAR SlR, " I have read with wondrous delight your beautiful book of poetry just come out, and thank you most sincerely for a great deal of it as a source of very pure pleasure, and a great deal of it as very deep and earnest teaching in holy things. One poem especially I thank God for, that entitled ' St. Maura.' I could wish that sent out into the world by itself, as a little tract, to be slipt into the hands of the suffering, or of those who are sometimes in the midst of great blessings disposed to make too much of the little trials they are called on to endure. It would strengthen and brace up to high endeavors and endurings many who now little dream of what real endurance for the love of Christ means. I know it was so with me the other day. I had heard from home of some parish vexations, which pained me far more than any earthly ill should do. I took up that dear book, read that one poem for the first time aloud to my wife and children, and as I laid it down with tears in my eyes, could smile through those tears at any little cross 1 had to bear for my dear Master's sake. What it has done for me I am sure it will do for thousands, and therefore I have ventured to tell you how God has blessed it to me. " May He strengthen and bless you in your noble endeavors to glorify Him and benefit your race is the sincere prayer of one who has been much benefited by your writings. "Yours most faithfully, "JOHN S. B. MONSKI.L. " (Vicar of Kgham.)" 282 Charles Kingsley. The answer is characteristic : EVERSLEY, April 2, 1858. " MY DEAR SIR, " Your letter gave me the most lively pleasure, and all the more lively, because it came from you, whose spiritual poems have been a delight and comfort in a time of anxiety to my dear wife. " Would to God that I could be the persons that 1 can conceive. If you wish to pray against a burden and temptation, pray against that awful gift (for it is a purely involuntary gift) of imagination, which alternately flatters and torments its possessor, flatters him by making him fancy that he possesses the virtues which he can imagine in others ; torments him, because it makes him feel in him- self a capacity for every imaginable form of vice. Yet if it be a gift of God's (and it cannot be a gift of the devil's) it must bring some good, and perhaps the good is the capacity for sympathy with blackguards, ' publicans and sinners,' as we now euphemize them in sermons, trying, as usual, to avoid the tremendous mean- ing of the words by borrowing from an old English translation. To see into the inner life of these ; to know their disease, not from books, but from inward and scientific anatomy, imagination may help a man. If it does that for me 1 shall not regret it ; though it is, selfishly speaking, the most humiliating and tormenting of all talents. " God be with you and yours, " C. KINGSLEY." TO REV. ARTHUR PENRHYN STANLEY. EVERSLEY, April 10, 1858. " MY DEAR STANLEY, " I must write and tell you the perfect pleasure with which I have read your three lectures on Ecclesiastical History, which that excellent fellow, Edward Egerton, lent ine. '' It is a comfort in this dreary world to read anything so rational and fair, so genial and human ; and if those Oxford youths are not the better men for such talk, they deserve the pool of Hela. " What you say about learning ecclesiastical history by biography is most true. I owe all I really know about the history of Christi- anity (ante Tridentine), to thumbing and re-thumbing a copy of ' Surius' Actse Sanctorum.' In that book I found out for the first time in my life ' what they were all about.' But you have, from your greater knowledge, and wider view, a spirit of hope about it all, which sadly fails me at times ; and therefore your lectures have done me good ; and I thank you for them, as for personal and private consolation which I sorely wanted. God bless you and prosper you and your words." Sunday Amusements. 283 Among the many pleasant friendships formed at this time, which sprung out of the Eversley Church services, was that of Captain Congreve, who thus recalls those Sundays : " It was in the spring of 1858 that Capt., now Colonel, Jebb, of the 67th, and I first began to go to Eversley Church. We used to walk over on Sunday mornings after breakfast, and then have some bread and cheese at the little public house in the village after church. ' There we discussed with our host, the parson and the village generally, and 1 remember his amusing us very much once, when referring to some cricket to be played in the afternoon, by saying, ' Kh, Paason, he doan't objec' not ee as loik as not 'e'll coom and look on, and ee do tell 'em as its a deal better to 'ave a bit o' elthy play o' a Sunday evenin' than to be a-larkin' 'ere and a-larkin there hall hover the place a-courtin' and a-drinkin' hale.' "Mr. Kingsley soon observed the two new faces in his church, and spoke to us one Sunday after service. From that time I think we were pretty constant guests at your Sunday luncheon-table. I shall never forget the genial, happy, unreserved intercourse of those Sunday afternoons, and I never strolled home to mess with- out feeling that I had come away wiser and better from the con- tact with that clear and kindly mind. He essentially loved men and manly pursuits, and perhaps liked soldiers, as being a class among whom manly feeling and many virtues were cultivated. " The Staff College was then in its infancy, and had perhaps gathered together a few of the best educated, hardest working, and most ambitious young men in the service. "Mr. Kingsley was very soon a welcome and an honored guest at our mess. He entered into our studies, popularised our geol- ogy, and was an able critic on questions of military history. Not only that, however, head work needs physical relaxation. He told us the best meets of the hounds, the nearest cut to the cover, the best trout streams, and the home of the largest pike. Many an hour have I spent pleasantly and profitably on the College lakes with him. Every fly that lit on the boat-side, every bit of weed that we fished up, every note of wood-bird, was suggestive of some pretty bit of information on the habits, and growth, and breeding of the thousand unnoticed forms of life around. " Yours truly, " W. CONGREVE." His youngest son, Grenville Arthur, for whom, in the course of time, "The Waterbabies " and "Madame How" were written, was born this spring, and named after his godfather, Dean Stanley, 284 Charles Kingslcy. and Sir Richard Grenvil, one of the heroes of " Westward Ho ! " from whom Mrs. Kingsley's family claimed descent. A new novel was now projected on the subject of the Pilgrimage of Grace, which made it necessary for him to go into Yorkshire for a few days to identify places and names. This was his only holi- day for the year, and thanks to the kindness of his friend, Mr. (now the Rt. Hon.) E. Forster, and Mr. Morrison, of Malham, it was a very charming one, combining antiquities, manufactures, scenery, and fishing, with the facts he had to make out. The novel was partly written, but never finished. BURLEY,WHARFSIDE, July, 1858. " At a most delicious place, and enjoying good society and a good library, with some very valuable books Tell the children I have just seen oh ! i don't know what I hav'nt seen the largest water-wheel in England, making light summer over-coats for the Yankees and Germans. I am in a state of bewilderment such machinery as no tongue can describe, about three acres of mills and a whole village of people, looking healthy, rosy, and happy ; such a charming half-time school for the children, library for the men, &c. Tell R. I saw the wool as it came off the sheep's back in Leicestershire, followed it till it was turned into an 'alpaca' coat, and I don't care to see conjuring or magic after that. The country is glorious '' " We had a delighftul day at Bolton yesterday, and saw the Abbey. Tell R. I jumped over the Strid where young Romilly was drowned. Make her learn Wordsworth's ballad on it, ' What is good for a bootless bene ' ? " After his return home a lady of an old Roman Catholic family sent him through a mutual friend some curious facts for his book, but expressed her fears that his strong Protestant sympathies would prevent his doing justice to her co-religionists. He thus acknowl- edges her help in a letter to Mr. C. Kegan Paul : EVERSLEY, October, 1858. " Will you thank Mrs. * * * * most heartily from me for all she has found out for me. The Merlin's prophecy about Aske is invaluable. The M iltons I don't know of, and would gladly know. The York documents about the Pilgrimage of Grace have got, I hear, to Durham, at least there are none to be found in the Chapter Library at York. Justice to the Catholics. 285 " But let her understand if it be any comfort to her that I shall in this book do the northern Catholics ample justice ; that Robert and Christopher Aske, both good Romanists, are my heroes, and Robert the Rebel my special hero. I can't withdraw what I said in ' Westward Ho,' because it is true. Romanism under the Jesuits became a different thing from what it had been before. Of course Mrs. * * * * does not know that, and why should she ? " But I fear she will be as angry as ever, though really she is most merciful and liberal, at my treatment of the monks. I love the old Catholic Laity : I did full justice to their behavior at the Armida juncture; but I know too much of those shavelings, and the worst is, I know, as Wolsey knew, and every one knew, things one dare'nt tell the world, much less a woman. So judgment must go by default, as I cannpt plead, for decency's sake. Still, tell her that had I been born and bred a Yorkshire Catholic, I should probably unless I had been a coward have fought to the last drop at Robert Aske's side. But this philosophy only gives one a habit of feeling for every one, without feeling with them, and I can now love Robert Aske, though I think him as wrong as man can be, who is a good man and true." CHAPTER XIX. 1859. AGED 40. Sanitary Work First Sermon at Buckingham Palace Queen's Chaplaincy First Visit to Windsor Letter to an Atheist Correspondence with Artists Charles Bennett Ladies' Sanitary Association Letter from John Stuart Mill. As years went on he devoted time, thought, and influence more and more to Sanitary science ; the laws of health, and the enfranchise- ment of men's bodies from disease and dirt, and their inevitable consequences of sin, misery, and physical if not spiritual death, became more important in his eyes than any Political reforms. He lectured at the different institutes in the diocese of Winchester on the laws of health, rather than on literary and scientific matters, and attended the first public meeting in Willis's Rooms of the Ladies' National Sanitary Association, where he made a speech that was afterwards published under the title of " The Massacre of the Innocents." This year, 1859, was an altogether important one to him. On Palm Sunday he preached for the first time before the Queen and the Prince Consort at Buckingham Palace, and was shortly after- wards made one of Her Majesty's chaplains in ordinary. He now took his turn as Queen's Chaplain in the services at the Chapel Royal, St. James's, and preached in the autumn before the Court in the private chapel at Windsor Castle. On this occasion he had the honor of being presented to the Queen and the Prince Consort, and to the Crown Prince and Princess of Prussia, then staying at Windsor, and from that hour to his dying day he received marks of Royal kindness and condescension, the memory of which will be an heirloom to his children. To a man of his fine imagination and deep loyalty, who had sounded the depths of society, and whose increasing popularity as an author, and power as a preacher, had given him a large acquaintance with all ranks, this new phase in Marriage of Max Mutter. 287 his life seemed to come just to complete the cycle of his experi- ences. But while its result was, in a certain sense, to establish his position and enlarge his influence, on his own character it had a humbling rather than exalting effect. From this time there was a marked difference in the tone of the public press, religious and otherwise, towards him : and though he still waged war as hereto- fore against bigotry, ignorance, and intolerance, and was himself unchanged, the attacks on him from outside were less frequent and less bitter. The events of this year, uninteresting to the outside world, but each important to himself in giving color to his daily life and leav- ing its own mark on his heart and imagination, are soon told. He sent his eldest son to Wellington College, which had opened in the winter, and where the scheme of education, due much to the wise influence of the Prince Consort, was more consonant to his own views for his son, being of a wider and more modern character than that of the older and more venerable public schools. He was present at the marriage of his friend Max Miiller and a beloved niece,* who spent the first week of their married life at Eversley Rectory; and he preached them their wedding sermon, giving them their first communion in his own church. Dean Stanley (then Canon of Christ Church, Oxford) paid his first visit to Eversley. His acquaintance with Lord Cranworth and with Lord Carnarvon, to whom he became more and more attached as time went on, was made this year. In the autumn, with his wife, he spent a few days with Mr. and Mrs. Tennyson in the Isle of Wight, but having no curate, his holiday was short, and more than once he broke down from overwork ; the excitement too of the Sundays, and his full church, overpowered him. He shrunk from the bustle of London, refused all sermons there, and withdrew from politics. " I have not been to town," he said, " for more than two days in the last nine months. I see no chance of preaching there, I am happy to say, for a long time, save next Sunday, when I preac.li to the Queen. As for politics, I heed them not. The only politician now living is the Lord of all ; and He has principle and principles ; * The G. to whom the lines were written beginning " A hasty jest I once let fall, As jests are wont to he, untrue." To G., " Poems," p. 236. 288 Charles Kingsley. whoever has not. It is a fearful lookout when God has to govern a nation because it cannot govern itself. . . . ." Notwithstanding fair prospects and outward distinction, he clung more and more passionately to his country home the "far off look," and longing for rest and reality, and for the unfolding of the mystery of life grew stronger upon him, and he said more fre- quently to his wife " How blessed it will be when it is all over ! " With his children, however, he was always bright and merry. To his friend, Mr. Tom Hughes, he writes this summer, on the i2th of June : " This is my fortieth birthday. What a long life I have lived ! and silly fellows that review me say that I can never have known ill-health or sorrow. I have known enough to make me feel very old happy as I am now ; and I am very happy " A correspondence with an intelligent artizan, an avowed atheist, and editor of an atheist newspaper in one of the manufacturing towns in the north, is unfortunately lost, with the exception of Mr. Kingsley's last letter, in answer to one telling him that his corre- spondent had in common with his class read " Alton Locke," " Yeast," and " Hypatia," with interest, from " their freshness of thought and honesty, which seemed to place them above the fac- tions of creed, while breathing the same spirit of Christian kind- ness which Fenelon and Dr. Arnold practised." " Such perusal," he added, " makes us better men." EVERSLEY, January 15, 1859. " MY DEAR SIR, " I should have answered so frank and manly a letter before, but my father's sudden and severe illness called me away from home. I hope that you and your friends will not always remain Atheists. . . . It is a barren, heartless, hopeless creed, as a creed though a man may live long in it without being heartless or hopeless himself. Still, he will never be the man he ought to have been ; and therefore it is bad for him and not good. But what I want to say to you is this, and I do want to say it. What- ever doubt or doctrinal Atheism you and your friends may have, don't fall into moral Atheism. Don't forget the Eternal Goodness, whatever name you may call it. I call it God. Or if you even deny an Eternal Goodness, don't forget or neglect such goodness as you find in yourselves not an honest, a manly, a loving, a An Illustrated Pilgrim s Progress. 289 generous, a patient feeling. For your own sakes, if not for God's sake, keep alive in you the sense of what is, and you know to be, good, noble, and beautiful. I don't mean beautiful in ' art,' but beautiful in morals. If you will keep that moral sense that sense of the beauty of goodness, and of man's absolute duty to be good, then all will be as God wills, and all will come right at last. But if you lose that if you begin to say, ' Why should not I be quar- relsome and revengeful ? why should I not be conceited and inso- lent ? why should 1 not be selfish and grasping ? then you will be Atheists indeed, and what to say to you 1 shall not know. But from your letter, and from the very look of your handwriting, I augur better things ; and even hope that you will not think me im- pertinent if I send you a volume of my own Sermons to think over manfully and fairly. It seems to me (but I may flatter myself) that you cannot like, as you say you do, my books, and yet be what I call moral Atheists. " Mind, if there is anything in this letter which offends you, don't take fire, but write and ask me (if you think it worth while) what I mean. In looking it through I see several things which (owing to the perversion of religious phrases in these days) you may mis- understand, and take your friend for your foe. " At all events, I am, yours faithfully, " CHARLES KINGSLEY." Artists now often consulted him, and among them Charles Henry Bennett, a man full of genius, then struggling with poverty and the needs of a large young family, who began by illustrating children's books, then went on the staff of " Punch," and died a few years since, greatly regretted. His letters, followed by a visit to Evers- ley, led to Mr. Kingsley's offering to write him a preface to an Illustrated Pilgrim's Progress, for which he had some difficulty in getting a publisher, but on this offer Messrs. Longman undertook to bring out the work at once. TO CHARLES H. BENNETT, ESQ. EVERSI.EY, January 23, 1859. " . . . I feel as deeply as you our want of a fitting illustra- tion of the great Puritan Epic, and agree in every word which you say about past attempts. Your own plan is certainly the right one, only in trying for imaginative freedom, do not lose sight of beauty of form. I am, in taste, a strong classicist, contrary to the reign- ing school of Ruskin, Pugin, and the pre-Raphaelites, and wait quietly for the world to come round to me again. But it is per- fectly possible to combine Greek health and accuracy of form, with 19 290 Charles Kingsley. German freedom of imagination, even with German grotesqueness. I say Greek and German (i.e., fifteenth and sixteenth century German) because those two are the only two root-schools in the world. I know no such combination of both as in Kaulbach. His illustrations of Reinecke Fuchs are in my eyes the finest designs (save those of three or four great Italians of the sixteenth century), which the world has ever seen. Any man desiring to do an endur- ing work, must study, copy, and surpass them. " Now in Bimyan there is a strong German (Albert Durer) ele- ment which you must express, viz., ist, a tendency to the gro- tesque in imagination ; 2nd, a tendency to spiritual portraiture of the highest kind, in which an ideal character is brought out, not by abstracting all individual traits (the Academy plan), but by throw- ing in strong individual traits drawn from common life. This, in- deed, has been the manner of the highest masters, both in poetry and painting, e.g., Shakespeare and Dante, and the portraits, and even heroic figures of Leonardo, Raphael, Michael Angelo, Sebas- tian del Piombo, Bronzino, the two latter with Titian, the triumvi- rate of portrait-painting. You find the same in Correggio. He never idealises, i.e., abstracts in a portrait, seldom in any place. You would know the glorious ' Venus ' of the National Gallery if you met her in the street. So this element you have a full right to employ. " But there is another, of which Bunyan, as a Puritan tinker, was not conscious, though he had it in his heart, that is, classic grace and purity of form. He had it in his heart, as much as Spenser. His women, his Mr. Greatheart, his Faithful, his shep- herds, can only be truly represented in a lofty and delicate outline, otherwise the ideal beauty which lifts them into a supernatural and eternal world is lost, and they become mere good folks of the seven- teenth century. Some illustrators, feeling this, have tried to me- dievalize them silly fellows. What has Bunyan to do with the Middle Age ? He writes for all ages, he is full of an eternal humanity, and that eternal humanity can only be represented by something of the eternal form which you find in Greek statues. I don't mean that you are to Grecianize their dress, any more than medievalize it. No. And here comes an important question. " Truly to illustrate a poem, you must put the visions on paper as they appeared to the mind of the seer himself. Now we know that Bunyan saw these people in his mind's eye, as dressed in the garb of his own century. It is very graceful, and I should keep to it, not only for historic truth's sake, but because in no other way can you express Bunyan's leading idea, that the same supernatural world which was close to old prophets and martyrs, was close to him ; that the devil who whispered in the ears of Judas, whispered in the ears of a cavalier over his dice, or a Presbyterian minister in his Geneva gown. Take these hints as meant, kindly." Illustrating Pilgrim's Progress. 291 ST. LEONARD'S, April i, 1859. "I saw Longman the other day hunting his hounds, and \ve had a talk about you and the 'Pilgrim's Progress.' I shall be ready for you some time this summer. Do you know the old cuts of the ' Pelerinage de 1'homme,' from which Bunyan took his idea ? They have been lately republished. I will show them to you when you come down to me. " I like your heads well. I really have had no time to write to you before, having been half insane with parish work and confirma- tion classes. I think Mr. Worldly Wiseman excellent, and ; the Lust of the Eye,' ditto. ' Mr. Gripeman ' is too handsome. I think you want a more sharp, comprest, and cruel lip. But the general shape of the face is good. It is very like Alva, who was a cruel man, and a rigid pedant. '' I think you must have more smirk about Smoothman's face ; and should certainly shave him, all but a very neat little imperial. The ' Lust of the Flesh,' is hardly animal enough. I have gene- rally seen with strong animal passion, a tendency to high cheek- bone ; but only in a dark woman. Yours may stand for a blonde type ; but even then I should prefer a lower forehead. I should take the 'Pride of Life' for an older woman, and a much stouter one. Give her very full features and bust. As it is, your ' Pride of Life' has more animal passion than the ' Lust of the Flesh ; ' in- deed, beyond that of vacuity, she has not much. She would be gad-about and vain enough, but not pompous and magnificent. Besides, she is a low type, and you should have the highest you can get. You see I criticise freely. I liked your ' Vanity Fair ' sketches (in words) very much. Embody them in lines, and you will indeed do well. Do you know Walker's 'Analysis of Female Beauty?' It is a valuable book, and has much which would help any man." In July Mr. Kingsley attended the first meeting of the Ladies' Sanitary Association at Willis's Rooms, and made the following re- markable speech : " Let me say one thing to the ladies who are interested in this matter. Have they really seriously considered what they are about to do in carrying out their own plans ? Are they aware that if their Society really succeeds they will produce a very serious, some would think a very dangerous, change in the state of this nation ? Are they aware that they would probably save the lives of some thirty or forty per cent, of the children who are born in England, and that therefore they would cause the subjects of Queen Victoria to increase at a very far more rapid rate than they do now ? And are they aware that some very wise men inform us 292 Charles Kings ley. that England is already over-peopled, and that it is an exceedingly puzzling question where we shall soon be able to find work or food for our masses, so rapidly do they increase already, in spite of the thirty or forty per cent, kind Nature carries off yearly before they are five years old ? Have they considered what they are to do with all those children whom they are going to save alive ? That has to be thought of ; and if they really do believe, with political economists now, that over-population is a possibility to a country which has the greatest colonial empire that the world has ever seen, then I think they had better stop in their course and let the children die, as they have been dying. " But if, on the other hand, it seems to them, as I confess it does to me, that the most precious thing in the world is a human being, that the lowest, and poorest, and most degraded of human beings is better than all the dumb animals in the world ; that there is an infinite, priceless capability in that creature, degraded as it may be a capability of virtue, and of social and industrial use, which, if it is taken in time, may be developed up to a pitch, of which at first sight the child gives no hint whatsoever ; if they believe again, that of all races upon earth now, probably the English race is the finest, and that it gives not the slightest sign whatever of exhaustion ; that it seems to be on the whole a young race, and to have very great capabilities in it which have not yet been developed, and above all, the most marvellous capability of adapting itself to every sort of climate, and every form of life that any nation, except the old Roman, ever had in the world : if they consider with me that it is worth the while of political economists and social philos- ophers to look at the map, and see that about four-fifths of the globe cannot be said as yet to be in anywise inhabitated or culti- vated, or in the state in which men could make it by any fair sup- ply of population and industry and human intellect : then, perhaps, they may think with me that it is a duty, one of the noblest of duties, to help the increase of the English race as much as possible, and to see that every child that is born into this great nation of England be developed to the highest pitch to which we can develop him, in physical strength and in beauty, as well as in intellect and in virtue. And then, in that light, it does seem to me, that this Association small now, but 1 do hope some day to become great, and to become the mother Association of many and valuable children is one of the noblest, most right-minded, straight-forward, and practical conceptions that I have come across for some years. " We all know the difficulties of Sanitary Legislation. One looks at them at times almost with despair. I have my own rea- sons, with which I will not trouble this meeting, for looking on them with more despair than ever ; not on account of the govern- ment of the time, or any possible government that could come to Women and Sanitary Reform. 293 England, but on account of the peculiar class of persons in whom the ownership of the small houses has become more and more vested, and who are becoming more and more, I had almost said, the arbiters of the popular opinion, and of every election of parlia- ment. However, that is no business of mine here ; that must be settled somewhere else : and a fearfully long time, it seems to me, it will be before it is settled. But, in the mean time, what legisla- tion cannot do, I believe private help, and, above all, woman's help, can do even better. It can do this ; it can not only improve the condition of the working-man ; I am not speaking of working- men just at this time, I am speaking of the middle classes, of the man who owns the house in which the working-man lives. I am speaking, too, of the wealthy tradesman ; I am speaking, it is a sad thing to have to say, of our own class as well as of others. Sani- tary Reform, as it is called, or, in plain English, the art of health, is so very recent a discovery, as all true physical science is, that we ourselves and our own class know very little about it, and prac- tice it veiy ill. And this Society, I do hope, will bear in mind that it is not simply to affect the working-man, not only to go into the foul alley ; but it is to go to the door of the farmer, to the door of the shopkeeper, aye, to the door of ladies and gentlemen of the same rank as ourselves. Women can do in that work what men cannot do. Private correspondence, private conversation, private example, may do what no legislation can do. I am struck more and more with the amount of disease and death I see around me in all classes, which no sanitary legislation whatsoever could touch, unless you had a complete house-to-house visitation of a govern- ment officer, with powers to enter every house, to drain and venti- late it, and not only that, but to regulate the clothes and the diet of every inhabitant, and that among all ranks. I can conceive of nothing short of that, which would be absurd and impossible and most harmful, which would stop the present amount of disease and death which I see around me, without some such private exertion on the part of women, above all of mothers, as 1 do hope will spring from this Institution more and more. " I see this, that three persons out of four are utterly unaware of the general causes of their own ill health, and of the ill health of their children. They talk of their ' afflictions,' and their ' mis- fortunes ; ' and, if they be pious people, they talk of ' the will of Clod,' and of ' the visitation of Clod.' I do not like to trench upon those matters, but when I read in my Book and in your Book that ' it is not the will of our Father in heaven that one of these little ones should perish,' it has come to my mind sometimes with very great strength, that that may have a physical application as well as a spiritual one, and that the Father in heaven who does not wish the child's soul to die may possibly have created that child's body for the purpose of its not dying except in a good old age. Not 294 Charles Kingsley. only in the lower class, but in the middle class, when one sees an unhealthy family, then in three cases out of four, if one takes time, trouble, and care enough, one can, with the help of the doctor who has been attending them, run the evil home to a very different cause than the will of God ; and that is, to a stupid neglect, a stupid ignorance, or what is just as bad, a stupid indulgence. " Now, I do believe that if those tracts which you are publish- ing, which 1 have read, and of which I cannot speak too highly, are spread over the length and breadth of the land, and if women, clergymen's wives, the wives of manufacturers and of great em- ployers, district visitors and school mistresses, have these books put into their hands, and are persuaded to spread them, and to enforce them, by their own example and by their own counsel, then in the course of a few years, this system being thoroughly carried out, you would see a sensible and large increase in the rate of population. " When you have saved your children alive, then you must settle what to do with them. But a living dog is better than a dead lion ; I would rather have the living child, and let it take its chance, than let it return to God wasted. Oh ! it is a distressing thing to see children die. God gives the most beautiful and precious thing that earth can have, and we just take it and cast it away ; we cast our pearls upon the dunghill, and leave them. A dying child is to me one of the most dreadful sights in the world. A dying man, a man dying on the field of battle, that is a small sight; he has taken his chance ; he has had his excitement, he has had his glory, if that will be any consolation to him ; if he is a wise man, he has the feeling that he is doing his duty by his coun- try, or by his King, or by his Queen. It does not horrify or shock me to see a man dying in a good old age, even though it be pain- ful at the last, as it too often is. But it does shock me, it does make me feel that the world is indeed out of joint, to see a child die. I believe it to be a priceless boon to the child to have lived for a week, or a day ; but oh, what has God given to this thank- less earth, and what has the earth thrown away, in nine cases out of -ten, from its own neglect and carelessness? What that boy might have been, what he might have done as an Englishman, if he could have lived and grown up healthy and strong ! I entreat you to bear this in mind, that it is not as if our lower classes or our middle classes were not worth saving ; bear in mind that the physi- cal beauty and strength and intellectual power of the middle classes, the shopkeeping class, the farming class, the working class whenever you give them a fair chance, whenever you give them fair food and air, and physical education of any kind, prove them to be the finest race in Europe. Not merely the aristocracy, splendid race as they are : but down and down and down to the lowest laboring man, to the navigator ; why there is not such a Wasted Lives. 295 body of men in Europe as our navigators, and no body of men perhaps have had a worse chance of growing to be what they are ; and yet see what they have done. See the magnificent men they become in spite of all that is against them, all that is drawing them back, all that is tending to give them rickets and consumption, and all the miserable diseases which children contract ; see what men they are, and then conceive what they might be. " It has been said, again, that there are no more beautiful races of women in Europe than the wives and daughters of our London shopkeepers, and yet there are few races of people who lead a life more in opposition to all rules of hygiene. But in spite of all that, so wonderful is the vitality of the English race, that they are what they are ; and therefore we have the finest material to work upon that people ever had. And therefore, again, we have the less excuse if we do allow English people to grow up puny, stunted, and diseased. " Let me refer again to that word that I used : death the amount of death. I really believe there are hundreds of good and kind people who would take up this subject with their whole heart and soul if they were aware of the magnitude of the evil. Lord Shaftesbury told you just now that there were one hundred thou- sand preventable deaths in England every year. So it is. We talk of the loss of human life in war. We are the fools of smoke and noise ; because there are cannon-balls and gunpowder, and red coats, and because it costs a great deal of money, and makes a great deal of noise in the papers, we think, What so terrible as war ? I will tell you what is ten times, and ten thousand times, more terrible than war, and that is outraged nature. War, we are discovering now, is the clumsiest and most expensive of all games ; we are finding that if you wish to commit an act of cruelty or folly, the most expensive act that you can commit is to contrive to shoot your fellow-men in war. So it seems ; but Na- ture, insidious, inexpensive, silent, sends no roar of cannon, no glitter of arms to do her work ; she gives no warning note of preparation ; she has no protocol, nor any diplomatic advances, whereby she warns her enemy that war is coming. Silently, I say, and insidiously she goes forth ; no she does not even go forth, she does not step out of her path, but quietly, by the very same laws by which she makes alive, she puts to death. By the very same laws by which every blade of grass grows, and every insect springs to life in the sunbeam, she kills, and kills, and kills, and is never tired of killing, till she has taught man the terrible lesson he is so slow to learn, that nature is only conquered by obeying her. "And bear in mind one thing more. Alan has his courtesies of war, and his chivalries of war : he does not strike the unarmed man ; he spares the woman and the child. But Nature is fierce when she is offended, as she is bounteous and kind when she is 296 Charles Kingsley. obeyed. She spares neither woman nor child. She has no pity : for some awful, but most good reason, she is not allowed to have any pity. Silently she strikes the sleeping child, with as little remorse as she would strike the strong man, with the musket or the pickaxe in his hand. Ah, would to God that some man had the pictorial eloquence to put before the mothers of England the mass of preventable suffering, the mass of preventable agony of mind and body, which exists in England year after year ! And would that some man had the logical eloquence to make them understand that it is in their power, in the power of the mothers and wives of the higher class, I will not say to stop it all, God only knows that, but to stop, as I believe, three- fourths of it. " It is in the power, I believe, of any woman in this room to save three or four lives, human lives, during the next six months. It is in your power, ladies, and it is so easy. You might save several lives apiece, if you choose, without, I believe, interfering with your daily business, or with your daily pleasure, or, if you choose, with your daily frivolities, in any way whatsoever. Let me ask, then, those who are here, and who have not yet laid these things to heart : Will you let this meeting to-day be a mere pass- ing matter of two or three hours' interest, which you shall go away and forget for the next book or the next amusement ? Or will you be in earnest ? Will you learn I say it openly from the noble chairman*, how easy it is to be earnest in life ; how every one of you, amid all the artificial complications of English society in the nineteenth century, can find a work to do, and a noble work to do, chivalrous work to do, just as chivalrous as if you lived in any old fairy land, such as Spenser talked of in his ' Faery Queen ; ' how you can be as true a knight-errant, or lady-errant in the present century, as if you had lived far away in the dark ages of violence and rapine ? Will you, I ask, learn this ? Will you learn to be in earnest, and use the position, and the station, and the talent that God has given you, to save alive those who should live ? And will you remember that it is not the will of your Father that is in heaven that one little one that plays in the kennel outside should perish, either in body or in soul ? " Mr. Kingsley's work was incessant, and the letters now printed give a most inadequate idea of the labor of his life, of the calls on his sympathy, and of the different attitudes in which he had to put his mind according to the variety of subjects on which he was asked for counsel, or called upon to do battle ; but as Bishop Forbes * The Earl of Shaftesbury. Letter from John Stuart Mill. 297 beautifully says of Professor James D. Forbes in words which truly picture Mr. Kingsley, especially in the concluding sentence, " I never saw in any man such fearlessness in the path of duty. The one question with him was 'Is it right?' No dread of con- sequences, and consequences often bitterly felt by him, and wound- ing his sensitive nature, ever prevented him from doing that to which conscience prompted. His sense of right amounted to chivalry." But he seldom returned from speech or lecture without showing that so much life had actually gone out of him not only from the strain of brain and heart, but from the painful sense of antagonism which his startling mode of stating things called out in his hearers, and of which he was keenly conscious at the time. The following letter from Mr. Mill was in answer to one from Mr. Kingsley thanking him for the gift of his " Dissertations and Discussions," and also for the work on " Liberty," which he says, " affected me in making me a clearer-headed, braver-minded man on the spot." MR. JOHN STUART MILL TO REV. CHARLES KINGSLEY. SAINT VEREN, NEAR AVIGNON, Aug. 6, 1859. " Your letter of July 5 reached me long after its date, while wandering in search of health in the Pyrenees. Allow me, while expressing the great pleasure it gave me, to say that its humility, as it respects yourself, seems to me as much beyond the mark as the deference expressed towards me exceeds anything I have the smallest title to. " Laudari a laudato, or by any other viro, has never been very much of an object with me. But to be told by a man who is him- self one of the good influences of the age, and whose sincerity I cannot doubt, that anything i have written makes him feel able to be a still better influence, is both an encouragement and a reward the greatest I can look for, now that a still greater has been taken from me by death. " Far from having read none of your books, I have read them nearly all, and hope to read all of them. I have found in them an earnest endeavor towards many of the objects I myself have at heart ; and even when I differed from you it has never been with- out great interest and sympathy. There are few men between whom and myself any nearer approximation in opinion could be more agreeable to me, and that you should look forward to it gives ^me a pleasure I could' not forbear to express." 298 Charles Kings ley. TO FREDERIC SHIELDS, ESQ. EVERSLEY, Nov. 2$, 1859. " Your letter is sensible and pertinent to the matter in hand, and I tell you at once what I can. I think that you much over- rate the disuse of armor in Bunyan's day. When the 'Pilgrim's Progress' was written it was much gone out, but in Bunyan's boyhood he must have seen everywhere old armor hanging up in every gentleman or burgher's house (he would to his dying day), which had been worn and used by the generation before him. Al- lowing, as we must, in every human being for the reverence for early impressions, I think his mind would have pictured to him simply the Elizabethan and James I.'s armor, which he saw hang- ing in all noble houses, and in which he may have, as a boy, seen gentlemen joust, for tilting was not extinct in his boyhood. As for this co-existing with slop breeches (what we now call knicker- bockers are nothing else), I think you will find, as now, that country fashions changed slowlier than town. The puffed trunk- hose of 1580-1600 co-existed with the finest cap-a-pied armor of proof. They gradually in the country, where they were ill made, became slops, i. e., knickerbockers. By that time almost loose and short cavalier breeks had superseded them in the court but what matter? The change is far less than that during 1815-1855. The anachronism of putting complete armor by the side of one drest as Christian is in the frontispiece of the original edition of the ' Pilgrim's Progress' is far less than putting you by the side of a Life-Guard's officer in 1855 ; far less, again, than putting a clod of my parish, drest as he would have been in A. D. noo, in smock frock and leather gaiters, by the side of you or me. Therefore use without fear the beautiful armor of the later years of P^lizabeth and the beginning of James I., and all will be right, and shock nobody. As for shields, I should use the same time. Shields were common among serving men in James I. There are several in the Tower, fitted with a pistol to be fired from the inside, and a long spike. All are round. I believe that ' sword and buckler play' was a common thing among the country folk in Bunyan's time. Give your man, therefore, a circular shield, such as he would have seen in his boyhood, or even later, among the retainers of noble houses. As for the cruelties practised on Faithful, for the sake of humanity don't talk of that. The Puritans were very cruel in the North American colonies ; horribly cruel, though no- where else. But in Bunyan's time the pages of Morland, and others, show us that in Piedmont, not to mention the Thirty Years' War in Germany, horrors were being transacted which no pen can describe nor pencil draw. Dear old Oliver Cromwell stopped them in Piedmont, when he told the Pope that unless they were stopped English cannon should be heard at the gates of the Revivals and Revivalists. 299 Vatican. But no cruelty to man or woman that you dare draw can equal what was going on on the Continent from Papist to Protestant during Runyan's lifetime. " I have now told you all I can. I am very unwell, and forbid to work. Therefore I cannot tell you more, but what I send I send with all good wishes to any man who will be true to art and to his author." TO LORD ROBERT MONTAGU. EVERSLEY, y/K 7, 1859. " As to revivals I don't wonder at revivalists taking to drink. Calvinism has become so unreal -so afraid of itself so apolo- getic about its own peculiar doctrines, on which alone it stands, that revivals now must be windy flarings up in the socket of the dying candle. All revivals of religion which I ever read of, which produced a permanent effect, owed their strength to the introduc- tion of some new element, derived from the actual modern con- sciousness, and explaining some fresh facts in or round man ; e.g., the revivals of the Franciscans and Dominicans those of the Reformation and of Wesley. " We may see such things ere we die. At present revivals are mere threshings of the old chaff, to see if a grain of corn be still there." TO , ESQ. EVERSLEY, March 16, 1859. " I wish you would give me the chapter and page in which Swe- denborg handles your text (Matt. xxii. 24-28). There are many noble and beautiful things in that text-book of his, and I should like to see what he makes of so puzzling a passage. It seems to me that we must look at it from the stand-point of the Sadducees, and therefore of our Lord as condescending to them. It is a hideous case in itself. .... I conceive the Jews had no higher notion than this of the relation of the sexes. Perhaps no eastern people ever had. The conception of a love-match belongs to our Teutonic race, and was our heritage (so Tacitus says with awe and astonishment) when we were heathens in the German forests. You will find nothing of it in Scripture, after the first chapter of Genesis, save a glimpse thereof (but only a glimpse) in St. Paul's Epistle to the Ephesians. To me, who believe the Gospel of St. John, and believe therefore that Jesus Christ, the Word of God, was the light and life of my German forefathers, as well as of the Jews, there is nothing strange in this. I only say, Christ has taught us something about wedlock, which He did not teach the Jews ; that He taught it is proved by its fruits, for 300 Charles Kings ley. what has produced more of nobleness, more of practical good, in the human race, than the chivalrous idea of wedlock, which our Teutonic race holds, and which the Romance or Popish races of Europe have never to this day grasped with any firm hold ? Therefore all I can say about the text is ... (about mar- riage in the world to come) that it has nought to do with me and my wife. I know that if immortality is to include in my case identity of person, I shall feel to her for ever what I feel now. That feeling may be developed in ways which I do not expect ; it may have provided for it forms of expression very different from any which are among the holiest sacraments of life ; of that I take no care. The union I believe to be as eternal as my own soul. I have no rule to say in what other pairs of lovers it may or may not be eternal. I leave all in the hands of a good God ; and can so far trust His Son Jesus Christ our Lord, as to be sure that He knew the best method of protesting against the old Jewish error (which Popish casuists still formally assert) that the first end of marriage is the procreation of children, and thereby laid the true foundation for the emancipation of woman. " Let neither Swedenborg, nor any other man, argue you out of the scientific canon, that to understand the spirit of Scripture, or any other words, you must first understand the letter. If the spirit is to be found anywhere, it is to be found by putting yourself in the place of the listeners, and seeing what the words would have meant to them. Then take that meaning as an instance (possibly a lower one) of an universal spiritual law, true for all men, and may God give you wisdom for the process of induction by which that law is to be discovered." The next letter, on the Eternity of Marriage, written some years before, may fitly come in here with scattered extracts on the same subject. " . . . In heaven they neither marry nor are given in mar- riage, but are as the angels of God ! And how are the angels of God in heaven ? Is there no love among them ? If the law winch makes two beings unite themselves, and crave to unite themselves", in body, soul, and spirit, be the law of earth of pure humanity if, so far from being established by the Fall, this law has been the one from which the Fall has made mankind deflect most in every possible way ; if the restoration of purity and the restoration of this law are synonymous; if love be of the Spirit the vastest and simplest exercise of will of which we can conceive then why should not this law hold in the spiritual world as well as in the natural ? In heaven they neither marry nor are given in marriage ; but is not marriage the mere approximation to a unity which shall Eternity of Marriage. 301 be perfect in heaven ? Read what Milton says of angels' love in Books VI. and VII. and take comfort. f What if many have been alone on earth ? may they not find their kindred spirit in heaven, and be united to it by a tie still deeper than marriage ? And shall we not be re-united in heaven by that still deeper tie ?j Surely on earth God has loved, Christ the Lord has loved some more than others why should we not do the same in heaven, and yet love all? Here the natural body can but strive to express its love its desire of union. Will not one of the properties of the spiritual body be, that it will be able to express that which the natural body only tries to express ? Is this a sensual view of heaven ? then are the two last chapters of the Revelation most sensual. They tell, not only of the perfection of humanity, with all its joys and wishes and properties, but of matter ! They tell of trees, and fruit, and rivers of gold and gems, and all beautiful and glorious material things. Isaiah tells of beasts and birds and little children in that new earth. Who shall say that the number of living beings is filled up ? Why is heaven to be one vast lazy retrospect ? Why is not eternity to have action and change, yet both, like God's, compati- ble with rest and immutability ? This earth is but one minor planet of a minor system : are there no more worlds ? Will there not be incident and action springing from these when the fate of this world is decided? Has the Evil Spirit touched this alone? Is it not self-conceit which makes us think the redemption of this earth the one event of eternity? The same feeling (sensuality, which is self- love) prompted men of old to fancy that this globe was the centre of the universe. "These are matters too high for us, therefore we will leave them alone ; but is flatly denying their existence and possibility leaving them alone ? No ! it is intruding into them more conceitedly, insolently, and sensually than speculating on them by the carnal understanding like the Mystics, Platonists. and Gnostics. Calvin was a more conceited mystic than Henry More. It is more humble, more rational, to believe the possibility of all things than to doubt the possibility of one thing. Reason is the deadly fire, not only of mysticism and credulity, but ot unbelief and bigotry ! " And what if earthly love seems so delicious that all change in it would seem a change for the worse ? Shall we repine ? What does reason (and faith, which is reason exercised on the invisible) require of us, but to conclude that, if there is change, there will be something better there? Here are t\vo truths " i st. Body is that which expresses the spirit to which it is joined ; therefore, the more perfectly spiritual the body, the better it will express the spirit joined to it. " 2nd. The expression of love produces happiness : therefore, the more perfect the expression the greater the happiness ! And, therefore, bliss greater than any we can know here awaits us in 302 Charles Kings ley. heaven. And does not the course of nature point to this? What else is the meaning of the gradual increase of love on earth ? What else is the meaning of old age ? when the bodily powers die, while the love increases. What does that point to, but to a restoration of the body when mortality is swallowed up of life ? Is not that mortality of the body sent us mercifully by God, to teach us that our love is spiritual, and therefore will be able to express itself in any state of existence ? to wean our hearts that we may learn to look for more perfect bliss in the perfect body ? . . Do not these thoughts take away from all earthly bliss the poisoning thought, ' all this must end ? ' Ay, end ! but only end so gradually that we shall not miss it, and the less perfect union on earth shall be replaced in heaven by perfect and spiritual bliss and union, in- conceivable because perfect ! '' Do I undervalue earthly bliss ? No ! I enhance it when I make it the sacrament of a higher union ! Will not these thoughts give more exquisite delight, will it not tear off the thorn from every rose and sweeten every nectar cup to perfect security of blessed- ness, in this life, to feel that there is more in store for us that all expressions of love here are but dim shadows of a union which shall be perfect, if we will but work here, so as to work out our salva- tion ! i " My views of second marriage are peculiar. I consider that it is allowed for the hardness of men's hearts, but from the beginning it was not so, and will not be so, some day, when the might of love becomes generally appreciated ! perhaps that will never be, till the earth is renewed." ) CHAPTER XX. 1860. AGED 41. Professorship of Modern History Death of his Father and of Mrs. Anthony Froude Planting the Churchyard Visit to Ireland First Salmon killed Wet Summer Sermon on Weather Letter from Sir Charles Lyell Corre- spondence Residence in Cambridge Inaugural Lecture in the Senate House Visits to Barton Hall Letter from Sir Charles Bunbury. THE Regius professorship of Modern History at Cambridge had not been filled up since the resignation of Sir James Stephen, and some of Mr. Kingsley's friends wished to see him in the vacant chair. It was mentioned to Lord Palmerston, then Prime Minister. On the Qth of May he received a letter from Lord Palmerston ask- ing him if he was willing to undertake the duties of the post ; he accepted with extreme diffidence, and went up to the University in the spring to take his M.A. degree, which he had not been able to afford as yet. Dr. Whewell, who was then Master of Trinity, re- ceived him most kindly. Having been one of those who had dis- approved most emphatically of "Alton Locke" when it was first published, his generosity on this occasion, and his steady friendship from that time up to the date of his own death in 1866, laid the new Professor under a deep debt of gratitude. The feelings with which he re-visited Cambridge are told in a letter to his wife from Trinity Lodge. TRINITY, CAMBRIDGE, May 22, 1860. ". . . It is like a dream. Most beautiful and London buildings having been the only ones I have seen for years, I am struck with the sharpness and richness of the stone work, and the exquisite clearness of the atmosphere. My windows look into Trinity Walks the finest green walks in England, now full of flags and tents for a tulip show. I had a pleasant party of men to meet me last night. After breakfast I go to Magdalene, then to the Senate House ; after luncheon to this Mower show, then to dinner in hall at Magdalene ; and back as early as I can All 304 Charles Kingsley. this is so very awful and humbling to me. I cannot bear to think of my own unworthiness " His experience of life this year was new, varied, and often very sad. His father, to whom he had ever been the most dutiful and devoted son, died early in the winter, and from that hour till her death in 1873, the care of his widowed mother was one of his first and most nobly fulfilled duties. He writes to his old college friend, the Rev. James Montagu, from Chelsea rectory in February : " . . . Forgive me for my silence, for I and my brothers are now wearily watching my father's death-bed long and lingering. Miserable to see life prolonged when all that makes it worth having (physically) is gone, and never to know from day to day whether the end is to come in six hours or six weeks. But he is all right and safe, and death for him would be a pure and simple blessing. " James Montagu, never pray for a long life. Better die in the flower of one's age, than go through what I have seen him go through in the last few days. I shall come to you at Shoeburyness ; but when, God knows." The epitaph he wrote over his father's grave in Brompton Cemetery speaks his appreciation of that father. " Here lies All that was mortal of CHARLES KINGSLEY, Formerly of Battramsley House, in the New Forest, Hants, And lately of St. Luke's Rectory, Chelsea. Endowed by God with many noble gifts of mind and body, He preserved through all vicissitudes of fortune A loving heart and stainless honour ; And having won in all his various Cures The respect and affection of his people, And ruled the Parish of Chelsea well and wisely For more than twenty years, He died peacefully in the fear of God and in the faith of Christ On the agth of February, 1 860, Aged 78 years, With many friends, and not an enemy on earth ; Leaving to his children as a precious heritage The example of a Gentleman and a Christian." To Mr. Maurice he writes The Eversley Churchyard. 305 CHELSEA, March, 1860. " I have been so hunted backwards and forwards to Eversley and hither, upon trying business at both places, that I have not had time to thank you for your kind and comforting letter. My poor dear mother broke down frightfully for a day or two after the fune- ral ; but the necessity of exertion is keeping her up now. - is here, as a ministering angel, doing everything for her, and we hope in a week or two to get her down to her quiet little cottage at Eversley, to end her days with us. Ah, Mr. Maurice, such times as these bring conviction of sin with them. How every wrong word and deed toward that good old man, and every sorrow I caused him, rise up in judgment against one, and how one feels that right doing does not atone for wrong doing. I have this com- fort, that he died loving me, and satisfied with me and my small suc- cess, and happy in his children, as he said again and again. But if death at least the death of a rational human being be not an ugly damnable solecism, even in a good old age, then I know not what is. I shall see and hear you, please God, Sunday afternoon. Remember me." He was called away from Chelsea to be present at the enlarge- ment and consecration of his churchyard at Eversley, and to meet his bishop (Dr. Sumner), whose coming, as he had never been in Eversley before, was a great event. The new ground gave the Rector the opportunity of planting the whole with evergreens, for it had long been his wish to make his churchyard an arboretum, and gradually to gather together rare shrubs and trees, so that it should be truly a Gottesacker in a double sense. He writes to his wife, then at Chelsea : EVERSLEY, March 10. ". . . I can understand your being unhappy leaving us and this delicious place again. It does look too blessed for a man to spend his life in. I have been making it blessed-er in the last thirty hours, with a good will ; for I and B. (his churchwarden) have been work- ing with our own hands, as hard as the four men we have got on. We have planted all the shrubs in the churchyard. \Ve have grav- elled the new path with fine gravel, and edged it with turf; we have levelled, delved, planned, and plotted ; and pressed into the service that most cockney of good fellows , making him work like a horse, in carrying water. M. is trimming up unsightly graves, and we shall be all right and ready for the Bishop by Monday " Altogether I am delighted at the result and feel better, thanks to two days' hard work with pick and spade, than 1 have done for 2O 306 Charles Kings ley. a fortnight. So never mind about me. . . . But I cannot bear working and planning at improvements without you ; it seems but half a life ; and I am leaving everything I can (considering the bishop on Monday) to be done after you come back. Oh ! when shall we settle down here in peace and see the spring come on ? Patience, though. It wants three weeks to spring, and we may, by God's blessing, get back here in time to see the spring unfold around us, and all mend and thrive. After all, how few troubles we have ! for God gives with one hand, if He takes away with the other I found a new competitor for the corner of the new ground, just under our great fir tree, which I had always marked out for you and me, in dear old Bannister (his churchwar- den, a farmer), who had been telling M. that he wanted to be buried close to me. So I have kept a corner for ourselves ; and then he comes at our feet, and by our side insists on lying. Be it so. If we could see the children grown up, and the History * written, what do I need, or you either below ? " The vacant space by the side of his own proposed grave was soon to have a tenant he little dreamt of, for in the spring an- other heavy sorrow came and one to whom he had been more than a brother in some of the most important circumstances of her life for the last sixteen years, his wife's sister, Charlotte, wife of Anthony Froude, was laid there under the shade of the fir trees she loved so well. Her grave was to him during the remainder of his own life a sacred spot, where he would go almost daily to commune in spirit with the dead, where flowers were always kept blooming, and where on the Sunday morning he would himself su- perintend the decorations the cross and wreaths of choice flowers placed by loving hands upon it. Death was very busy that year among those he loved, and before twelve months were over three of those who stood around that grave, a brother, a nephew, and a friend, John Ashley Warre, Charles Grenfell, and Mr. John Parker, were all called away into the un- seen world. The latter, publisher, of West Strand, London, who had been fellow student with Charles Kingsley, at King's College, London, and with whom he had renewed his old intimacy at the publication of the " Saint's Tragedy," was a constant visitor at the Rectory. * Before his appointment at Cambridge he had begun a " School History of England," of which only the three first chapters were written. The Future. 307 At Mr. Parker's house in London he had met the very best liter- ary society whenever he had an evening to spare away from home, and his death made a great gap in the knot of remarkable men who had gathered round him. In a letter to one of these, Mr. Skel- ton, Mr. Kingsley thus speaks of him : " I trust if you come to London you will take courage to come forty miles further to Eversley. You will meet there, not only for your own sake but for John Parker's, a most cordial welcome. Before our window lies the grave of one whom he adored, my wife's favorite sister. He was at her funeral. The next funeral which her widowed husband and I attended was his : Froude nursed him like a brother till the moment of death. His was a great soul in a pigmy body ; and those who know how I loved him, know what a calumny it is to say that I preach ' muscular Christianity.' " TO JOHN BULLAR, ESQ. EVERSLEY, 1860. " I am getting all right now, by dint of much riding with my boy, who is home for Easter. Riding has a specific effect on me, both on body and mind, and I hardly know how I should keep well without it. I hope you have not suffered, like me, with this gale. Two of the prettiest trees on my lawn (and I have some very pretty ones) came down with a crash this morning, and I have had the melancholy pleasure and exercise of dismembering ancient friends. When spring is coming, I cannot guess. My hope is that this gale will 'blow the weather out,' as sailors say; and that we shall have a sudden turn to thunder, heat, and rain. I have seen this happen several times, just at this season. " 1 am utterly astonished at your courage in letting your wife go to Egypt. I have just let mine go to Devonshire without me, to nurse a sick sister, and I feel like a cat without its skin." After he had taken his M.A. degree he writes from the north to his wife " I have been thinking and praying a good deal over my future life. A new era has opened for me : I feel much older, anxious, and full of responsibility ; but more cheerful and settled than I have done for a long time. All that book writing and struggling is over, and a settled position and work is before me. Would that it were done, the children settled in life, and kindly death near to set one off again with a new start somewhere else. 1 should like the only epitaph on our tomb to be Thekla's : " ' We have lived and loved, We live and love.' " 308 Charles Kingsley. No book was written this year, his spare time being given to the preparation of his Inaugural Lecture at Cambridge, and the course of Lectures which was to follow it. By command of the Prince Consort, he preached the annual sermon for the Trinity House, of which H.R. H. was then Master. He preached also at Whitehall, Windsor Castle, and St. James's. He was made chaplain to the Civil Service Volunteers ; he lectured at Warminster and Bury St. Edmund's. A few weeks' rest in Ireland with Mr. Froude, helped him greatly in preparing for his career in Cambridge, and at Mark- ree Castle he killed his first salmon, a new and long coveted experience in life. MARKREE CASTLE, SLIGO, July 4, 1860. " .... I have done the deed at last killed a real actual live salmon, over five pounds weight, and lost a whopper from light hooking. Here they are by hundreds, and just as easy to catch as trout ; and if the wind would get out of the north, I could catch fifty pounds of them in a day. This place is full of glory very lovely, and well kept up. " But I am haunted by the human chimpanzees I saw along that hundred miles of horrible country. I don't believe they are our fault. I believe there are not only many more of them than of old, but that they are happier, better, more comfortably fed and lodged under our rule than they ever were. But to see white chimpanzees is dreadful ; if they were black, one would not feel it so much, but their skins, except where tanned by exposure, are as white as ours. Tell Rose I will get her plants. 1 have got the great Butterwort already; very fine. . . ." 5- " I had magnificent sport this morning five salmon killed (big- gest, seven pounds), and another huge fellow ran right away to sea, carrying me after him waist deep in water, and was lost, after running 200 yards, by fouling a ship's hawser ! There is nothing like it. The excitement is maddening, and the exertion very severe. I am going to sleep for two hours, having been up at four ..... " The summer of 1860 was a very wet one. Rain fell almost in- cessantly for three months. The farmers were frightened, and the clergy all over the country began to use the prayer against rain. The cholera had long been threatening England, and Mr. Kings- ley's knowledge of physical and sanitary science had told him how beneficial this heavy rain was a gift from God at that particular Sir Charles Lyell and the Rain Question. 309 moment to ward off the enemy which was at hand, by cleansing drains and sweeping away refuse, and giving the poor an abundance of sweet clean water. It was a notable fact that while ignorant people were crying out against the rain, the chemists complained that there was so little illness they had nothing to do, and the medical men pronounced it to be a very healthy season. The parishioners of Eversley, however, remonstrated with him for not using the prayer for fine weather, and he answered them by preach- ing a sermon on Matth. vii. 9-11, which provoked much discussion, and was published under the title of " Why should we pray for fair weather ? " On this subject Sir Charles Lyell writes to Mr. Kingsley : LONDON, September 23,- 1860. " On my return from the Continent, I find here your excellent sermon on the prayer for rain, sent to me, I presume, by your di- rection, and for which 1 return you many thanks. Two weeks ago, I happened to remark to a stranger, who was sitting next me at a table (f hdte at Rudoldstadt in Thuringia, that I feared the rains must have been doing a great deal of mischief. He turned out to be a scientific man from Berlin, and replied, ' 1 should think they were much needed to replenish the springs, after three years of drought.' " I immediately felt that I had made an idle and thoughtless speech. Some thirty years ago 1 was told at Bonn of two proces- sions of peasants, who had climbed to the top of the Peter's Berg, one composed of vine-dressers, who were intending to return thanks for sunshine, and pray for its continuance : the others from a corn district, wanting the drought to cease and the rain to fall. Each were eager to get possession of the shrine of St. Peter's Chapel before the other, to secure the saint's good offices, so they came to blows with fists and sticks, much to the amusement of the Protestant heretics at Bonn, who, I hope, did not by such prayers as you allude to, commit the same solecism, occasionally, only less coarsely carried out into action." In the following winter Mr. Kingsley writes from Eversley to Sir Charles Bunbury on the same topic. " The frost here is intense and continuous. The result, the per- fect health of everybody. Of course, sufficient food and firing are required. But much that I have seen of late years (and this frost inter alia) proves to me that the most ' genial ' weather is not the healthiest. 3 TO Charles Kings ley. " I have been called names, as though I had been a really selfish and cruel man, for a foolish ' Ode to the North-East Wind.' If my cockney critics had been country parsons, they would have been more merciful, when they saw me, as I have been more than once, utterly ill from attending increasing sick cases during a soft south- west November of rain and roses ; and then, released by a hard frost, my visits stopped in a few days by the joyful answer, ' Thank God, we are getting all well now, in this beautiful seasonable weather.' ' Seasonable weather ' that expression has taught me much. In the heart of the English laborer and fanner, unsophisti- cated by any belief that the Virgin Mary or the saints can coax the Higher Powers into sending them a shower or a sunbeam, if they be sufficiently coaxed and flattered themselves into their hearts and minds has sunk a deep belief that God is just and wise, and orders all things well, according to a 'law which cannot be broken.' A certain sermon of mine about the rains, which shocked the clergy of all denominations, pleased deeply, thank God, my own laborers and farmers. They first thanked me heartily for it, and begged for copies of it. I then began to see (what I ought to have seen long before) that the belief in a good and just God is the foundation, if not of a scientific habit of mind, still of a habit of mind into which science can fall, and seed, and bring forth fruit in good ground. I learnt from that to solve a puzzle which had long disturbed me why the French philosophers of the last century, denying and scoffing at much which I hold true and dear, had still been not only men of science, but men who did good work in their time. They believed, even Voltaire, in a good God at least they said, ' If God is at all, He is good, just, and wise.' That thought enabled them at once to face scientific fact, and to testify against cruelty, oppres- sion, ignorance, and all the works of darkness wherever they found them. And so I learnt to thank God for men who seemed not to believe in Him, and to value more and more the moral instincts of men, as a deeper and more practical theology than their dogmas about God. Excuse this tirade. But you are one of the few per- sons to whom I can speak my whole heart. . " Meanwhile, you would exceedingly oblige me by telling me where the geology of Palestine is described. I cannot get trust- worthy information about it. Lynch and the man who went some years ago to look for coal, tell me very little ; and though Lord Lindsay has some hints about the volcanic appearances north of the Lake Tiberias, he tells one nothing about the age and super- position of the beds. It seems strange that so little should be known about one of the most remarkable volcanic districts of the world. The age of the normal limestones ; of the bitumen beds of the Dead Sea ; of the Edomite mountains ; and of the recent (?) volcanic rocks of the north, all ought to be known by some one or other. But most who have gone have wasted their time in looking Inaugural Lecture at Cambridge. 3 1 1 for the ' Cities of the Plain, 1 instead of collecting sound physical facts. Some have been afraid, it seemed to me, of looking at the physical facts too closely, for fear of coming to some ' rationalist ' conclusion." in the autumn the new Professor went up to Cambridge. " It is with a feeling of awe, almost of fear, that I find myself in such a place on such an errand," he said when he delivered his Inaugural Lecture * in the crowded Senate House on the i2th of November. He had an enthusiastic welcome from the undergraduates, and the lecture, which was published under the title of "The Limits of Exact Science applied to History," was listened to with profound attention, and most kindly received by all ranks in the university. He now settled in Cambridge with his family till Christinas, and began his first course of lectures, eventually published as "The Roman and the Teuton," to a class of upwards of one hundred undergraduates, and during the nine years of his professorship his class was one of the best attended in the university. His residence in Cambridge enabled him to cultivate one of the most valuable friendships of his life, that of Sir Charles Fox Bunbury, of Barton Hall, Suffolk, at whose house, rich in itself with works of art, and with a museum and arboretum, in which he delighted, he had the rare pleasure of meeting, year by year, men distinguished in science, in literature, and in society. There he first met Sir Charles Lyell, Sir Edmund Head, Dr. Joseph Hooker, and Sir Louis Mallet, and renewed his friendship with Lord Arthur Harvey (now Bishop of Bath and Wells), and his happy days at Barton, which became a second home to himself and his family, were a constant refresh- ment to his spirit. " I cannot understand," he says, with characteristic modesty, in a letter to Sir Charles, after one of his first visits to him, "the kind words which you use about my visit to you. That you should speak so kindly of a poor stammering superficial person like me, shows me only that there are more good and kind and tolerant people in the world than I looked for, and I knew there were many . . . ." The friendship he so dearly prized was mutual. But Sir Charles's * The Inaugural Lecture is now incorporated with the new edition of the "Roman and the Teuton," with a preface by Max Miiller. (Macmillan.) 312 Charles Kingsley. generous appreciation must be told in his own words in a letter to Mrs. Kingsley. BARTON, October 18, 1875. " I have lost in him," he says, "an invaluable friend ; one whom for many years past I have truly loved and revered, and who has left a blank, that, for me, can never be filled up. I scarcely ever was in his company without learning something from him. Much as I like and admire his writings to many of which I return again and again with fresh pleasure his conversation was much more delightful than his books. I have very seldom, if ever, known a man whose talk was so charming, so rich in matter, so various, so easy and unassuming, so instructive and so free from dogmatism. Sensibility, humor, wisdom, were most happily blended in it. Many a long conversation I have enjoyed with him, and the remembrance of them will always be precious to me ; but I continually regret that my memory could not retain more of what I heard from him. Our talk often turned upon subjects of natural science, in which he delighted, and of which his knowledge was extensive and sound. He more than once said to me that, if circumstances had allowed him leisure, botany, and natural history in general, would have been his favorite studies. We passed many hours (delightful to me) in examining together my botanical collections, and discussing the questions which they suggested. His remarks were always instructive and valuable. He had not, indeed, had leisure to prosecute those elaborate researches, or to acquire that vast knowl- edge of details, which belong to the great masters of science ; but his knowledge was by no means superficial. He had mastered the leading principles and great outlines of scientific natural his- tory, in its principal branches ; and the large generalizations in which he delighted, were based on a well-directed study of facts, both in books and in nature. " He had the true naturalist's eye for quick and acute observa- tion ; the philosopher's love of large views and general principles; the poet's faculty of throwing a glow of light upon the objects which he wished to illustrate. This combination of powers gave a peculiar charm to his descriptions of natural objects, as is well exemplified in his West Indian book and in many parts of his essays, especially in 'From Ocean to Sea,' 'My Winter Garden,' and ' Chalk Stream Studies.' 1 think it a great loss to science that he was not able to carry out a plan which, as he told me, he had formed ; that of writing the Natural History of his own district, the district of the Bagshot sands. He would have made of it a work of remarkable interest. "Another quality of Mr. Kingsley, by which I was particularly struck in the course of our discussions on these subjects, was his Mr. K ings ley s Modesty. 313 remarkable modesty, indeed humility. He never dogmatized ; never put himself forward as an authority ; was always ready to welcome any suggestion from a fellow-laborer ; and indeed always seemed more anxious to learn than to teach. I have been tempted to dwell, perhaps too long, on one aspect only of his character and genius : but I believe you wish to have my impression of him in this point of view. His higher qualities are indeed more generally known, through his writings, and I will not attempt to expatiate on a theme, to which more justice may be done by others. I can safely say that he was one of the best men I have known ; his conversation was not only agreeable, but had a constant tendency to make one wiser and better ; and when it was directed to spe- cially religious topics, his tone of feeling and thought appeared to me both elevating and comforting. I shall ever feel grateful for having been allowed to enjoy the friendship of such a man. "Believe me, " My Dear Mrs. Kingsley, " Ever yours affectionately, "CHARLES J. F. BUNBURY." CHAPTER XXI. 18611862. AGED 42-43. Cambridge Lectures to the Prince of Wales Essays and Reviews Letters to Dr. Stanley Bishop of Winchester Tracts for Priests and People Death of the Prince Consort Letter to Sir C. Bunbury The Water-babies Installa- tion Ode at Cambridge Visit to Scotland British Association Lord Dun- dreary. " THE longer I live, ihe more certain I am," said Sir T. Fovvell Buxton, " that the great difference between men, the feeble and the powerful, the great and the insignificant, is energy and invin- cible determination a purpose once fixed, and then death or vic- tory. That quality will do anything that can be done in this world ; and no talents, no circumstances, no opportunities, will make a two-legged creature a man without it." It was this very invincible determination and energy which car- ried Charles Kingsley through work, and sometimes a distracting confusion of different works, and which preserved his often weary body and exhausted brain from breaking down entirely : but more than this, it was his child-like faith in God which kept him not only free from the irritability so common to all highly-strung natures, but cheerful and brave under every circumstance. The weight of responsibility that pressed heavily on him during this year was added to by the duty and honor of giving private lec- tures to H.R.H. the Prince of Wales, who had just left Oxford, and kept the^usual terms at Cambridge during 1861. On the 2nd of January, Mr. Kingsley received through the Prince's tutor, Mr. Herbert Fisher, a message from the Prince Consort on the subject of his son's studies, informing him how they had been conducted at Oxford how a special class had been formed there for instruction in Modern History, which instruction had been carried up to the reign of William III. what book had been used, &c., and request- ing the Cambridge Professor to consult Dr. Whewell, then Master of Trinity, as to the undergraduates who should attend with the Prince. To this Mr. Kingsley replied : Lectures to the Prince of Wales. 315 EvERSLEY RECTORY, January 2, 1871. " Do me the kindness to inform the Prince Consort that h:s wishes are, of course, commands to me. " I shall have great pleasure in following out the excellent method sketched for me in your letter, and in putting myself into Dr. VVhewell's hands as to the formation of a special class for His Royal Highness. " Any information which you can give me I shall most thank- fully accept and use. I put myself entirely into your hands, both as the expounder of the Prince Consort's wishes, and as the Prince of Wales' s tutor The responsibility is too solemn and too sudden for me to act in any way upon my own private judgment in the matter. "The first question which I have to ask is up to what year in the i8th century I ought to extend my lectures?" The class was accordingly formed, and the names selected by the Rev. W. Mathison, senior Tutor of Trinity, subject to Dr. Whewell's approval, were sent in to the Professor.* Early in February the Prince of Wales settled at Madingley, and rode in three times a week to Mr. Kingsley's house, for lectures, twice with the class, and every Saturday to go through a resume of the week's work alone. During the course of the academical year the Professor carried the class up to the reign of George IV. ; and at the end of each term he set questions for the Prince, which were always most satis- factorily answered. Throughout this year the sense of responsi- bility which would otherwise have been overpowering, was relieved not only by the intense interest of the work, in which he was allowed perfect freedom of speech, but by the attention, courtesy, and intelligence of his Royal pupil, whose kindness to him then and in after-life, made him not only H.R.H.'s loyal, but his most attached servant. But the year ended sadly, and his intercourse with the Prince of Wales was brought to an abrupt termination by the death of the * Mr. Lee Warner, of St. John's College, lately head of Rugby School. Mr. Stuart, Rugby, of St. John's. Mr. Main, of St. John's, the best mathematL-i a of his year, in his third year. Mr. Cay, of Cains College, a freshman, who \\\\ just obtained an open scholarship. Lord John Ilervey, Trinity. Hon. C. Lyttleton, Trinity. Mr. Hamilton, Trinity. Mr. C. Wood, son of Right Hon. Sir Charles Wood. Hon. Henry Strut t, Trinity. Mr. A. W. Klliott, freshman of Trinity. And later in the vear, Mr. (ioorge Howard, of Trinity. 316 Charles Kings ley. Prince Consort, which threw a gloom all over England, and was felt as a deep personal grief, as well as a national loss, by every one who had had the privilege of coming in personal contact with His Royal Highness. Mr. Kingsley's professional duties with the Prince of Wales obliged him to keep all the terms at Cambridge, only returning to Eversley for the long vacation ; and as his curate was in deacon's orders, his friend, the Rev. Septimus Hansard (now Rector of Bethnal Green), kindly consented to live at the Rectory during his absence, to take the lead in the Sunday services, and superintend the parish work. His able assistance relieved the Rector's anxiety, while it strengthened their mutual friendship. About this period " Essays and Reviews " came out, and the following letter shows Mr. Kingsley's impression of the attitude of Cambridge at the publication : TO REV. ARTHUR PENRHYN STANLEY. CAMBRIDGE, February 19, 1861. " Cambridge lies in magnificent repose, and shaking lazy ears stares at her more nervous elder sister and asks what it is all about. "She will not persecute the authors of the Essays ; and what is more, any scraps of the Simeonite party, now moribund here, who try to get up a persecution, will be let alone and left to persecute on their own hook. That is the Cambridge danger. Cool indif- ferentism : not to the doctrines, but to the means of fighting for them. " The atmosphere is the most liberal (save ' Bohemia') which I ever lived in. And it is a liberality (not like that of Bohemia, of want of principle or creed), but of real scholarly largeness and lovingness between men who disagree. We ' live and let live ' here, 1 find, to my delight. But with that will come the feeling in which, I confess, 1 share what the plague had these men to do$ starting a guerilla raid into the enemy's country, on their own responsibility ? We are no more answerable for them, than for Garibaldi. If they fail, they must pay the penalty. They did not ask us they called no synod of the Broad Church consulted no mass of scholars, as to what could or could not be done just now. They go and levy war on their own account, and each man on his own account. Each one of us might make himself responsible for one essay. But being published together, one does become responsible for all or none ; and that I won't be, nor any man in Cambridge. I would not even be responsible for * * * 's Article, much as 1 trust and Cambridge and the Essays. 317 respect him. The world, mind, does take one as all, and all as one. The ' Essays and Reviews ' are one book in the mind of the world, and it" they were not meant to be, they should not have been pub- lished in one volume. This is what Cambridge (and I) feel, as far as I can ascertain. " Next. There is little or nothing, says Cambridge, in that book which we have not all of us been through already. Doubts, denials, destructions we have faced them till we are tired of them. But we have faced them in silence, hoping to find a positive solution. Here comes a book which states- all the old doubts and difficulties, and gives us nothing instead. Here are men still pulling down, with far weaker hands than the Germans, from whom they borrow, and building up nothing instead. So we will preserve a stoic calm. We wish them all well. We will see fair play for them, according to the forms of English law and public opinion. But they must fight their own battle. We cannot be responsible for other men's campaigns. "This,"! think, is the feeling of Cambridge. I do not expect, from what I hear, that you will have any manifesto against Essays and Reviews. * * * of * * * and * * * may get up something, and cowards and trimmers may sign it, for fear of committing them- selves ; but I think they will win little but wind by their movement, and that ' they may bottle if it will help them.' TO THE LORD BISHOP OF WINCHESTER, (DR. SUMNER.) EVERSLEY, 1 86 1. " MY LORD, " I have received a circular from the venerable the arch- deacon, asking me to sign an address to your lordship in reference to the ' Essays and Reviews,' of miserable notoriety. That address J declined to sign upon a question of archidiaconal jurisdiction. T begged that the letter might be sent to the archdeacon. I hope that your lordship will do me tiie honor of perusing it, if it be sent on to you. But in justice to your lordship, and to myself, I must tell you what 1 thought myself bound not to tell the arch- deacon in his official capacity. I should be sorry that von should think that I agreed with a book whose publication I have deeply deplored, and have more reason to deplore every day. '* I deplore it first, for itself: second, for the storm which I saw it would raise. For itself. With the exception of Dr. Temple's essay, in which I can see nothing heterodox, be his theory right or wrong, all the essays deny but do not affirm. " The doubts and puzzles which they raise afresh have passed through the mind of every thinking man in the last twenty-five years, 318 Charles Kings ley. and it pained me much to see them re-stated in one or two cases very offensively without any help to a practical solution. I con- fess to having thrust the book away in disgust, as saying once again, very weakly, what 1 had long put out of sight and mind, in the practical realities of parish work. If I may intrude my own doings on your lordship, when my new curate came back to me after ordi- nation, having heard your lordship's allusion to these 'Essays and Reviews,' and asked me whether he should read them, I told him ' By no means. They will disturb your mind with questions which you are too young to solve. Stick to the old truths and the old paths, and learn their divineness by sick-beds and in every-day work, and do not darken your mind with intellectual puzzles, which may breed disbelief, but can never breed vital religion, or practical usefulness.' As for my own opinions, my lord, they are sufficiently known. The volumes of sermons which I have published are, I am sure, a sufficient guarantee to you as they are to the public, that 1 keep to the orthodox faith, and the orthodox formulae, without tormenting my soul, or my hearers, with fruitless argument on things which we shall never know, save by taking our Bible in hand like little children, and obeying it. Next, I deplore the publication of these Essays from the storm which I saw they would raise. As a fact, they are being sold now by hundreds, where one copy would have been sold ; and therefore thousands of brains are being put into an unwholesome ferment, instead of one here and there. The effect at the Universities will be very bad ; for young men are only too glad to fly off on intellectual disquisitions, from the plain requirements of Christian faith and duty, and therefore I could have wished that the book had been passed by in silence, as what it is, a very weak and inconsiderable book. But it is too late. That my curates, and my parish, shall be kept clear, if i can do it, of all fruitless and unwholesome speculations, and taught to believe in the plain doctrines of the Prayer-book and Articles, and act up to them, I promise you with all my heart." In the spring a set of "Tracts for Priests, and People " were brought out under the superintendence of Mr. Maurice. Mr. Kingsley was asked to write, but his time was absorbed with parish work and Cambridge lectures. The American war, which was occupying general attention, decided the Professor to take the History of America as the sub- ject of his lectures for 1862. The correspondence of the year, of which little has been recov- ered, closes with a letter to Sir Charles Bunbury, written on his return to Eversley, in that time of general mourning in which all England shared. The American Question. 319 EVERSLEY, December 31, 1861. "... As for the American question, on which you do me the honor to ask my opinion, I have thought of nothing else for some time ; for I cannot see how I can be a Professor of past Modern History without the most careful study of the history which is enacting itself around me. But 1 can come to no conclusion, save that to which all England seems to have come that the war will be a gain to us. So strongly do I feel the importance of this crisis, that I mean to give as my public lectures, next October term, the History of the American States ; and most thankful to you should I be, if you could recommend me any books throwing light on it, particularly on the little known period (strange to say), from 1815 to the present time. " As for the death of the Prince Consort, I can say nothing. Words fail me utterly. What little I could say, I put into a sermon for my own parishioners, which I will send you if you will allow me I need not say ho\v we regretted not being able to accept your kind invitation. But the heavy work of last term, and the frightful catastrophe [Prince Consort's death] with which it ended, sent us all home to rest, if rest is possible, when, on coming home, one finds fresh arrears of work waiting for one, which ought to have been finished off months since. The feel- ing of being always behind hand, do what one will, is second only in torment to that of debt. " I long to find myself once again talking over with you ' the stones which tell no lies.' " The opening of 1862 found him once more settled at Eversley, and enjoying the return to parish work after the heavy duties and responsibilities of such a year at Cambridge as coirld never come again. His mind was particularly vigorous this year, and the refresh- ment of visits with his wife to the Grange in the winter, and to Scotland in the summer, giving him change of thought and scene, prepared him for returning to his professorial work in the autumn, and to his controversy on the Cotton Famine with Lan- cashire mill-owners and millionaires. TO CAPTAIN ALSTON, R.N. EVERSLEY, March 20, 1862. "As for the Workmen's Club, Mrs. Kingsley has sent you a list of books which she recommends. The best periodical for them is certainly Norman McLeod's ' Good Words,' which is quite admira- ble, and has now a very large circulation 70,000, 1 believe. I 320 Charles Kingsley. do not think that I would give them Carlyle yet. If I did, it would be ' Past and Present.' And yet, things have so mended since it was written that that would be unfair. The ' French Revolution ' is the book, if they would only understand it. " I am not the man to give you any practical suggestions as to the working of such a club. But if when you come to London, you choose call on my dear friend Tom Hughes (Tom Brown), he would give you many admirable hints learnt from experience. "I am truly thankful to hear that I have helped to make a churchman of you. The longer I live, the more I find the Church of England the most rational, liberal, and practical form which Christianity has yet assumed ; and dread as much seeing it assimi- lated to dissent, as to Popery. Strange to say, Thomas Carlyle now says that the Church of England is the most rational thing he sees now going, and that it is the duty of every wise man to support it to the uttermost." Sitting at breakfast at the rectory one spring morning this year, the father was reminded of an old promise, " Rose, Maurice, and Mary have got their book, and baby must have his." He made no answer, but got up at once and went into his study, locking the door. In half an hour he returned with the story of little Tom. This was the first chapter of " The Water-babies," written off without a correction. The rest of the book, which appeared monthly in "Macmillan's Magazine," was composed with the same quickness and ease as the first chapter if indeed what was so purely an inspi- ration could be called composing, for the whole thing seemed to flow naturally out of his brain and heart, lightening both of a burden -without exhausting either; and the copy went up to the printer's with scarcely a flaw. He was quite unprepared for the sensation it would make. Nothing helped the books and sermons more than the silence and solitude of a few days' fishing. The Water-babies, especially, have the freshness and fragrance of the sea breeze and the river- side in almost every page. In the summer the Duke of Devonshire was installed at Cam- bridge as Chancellor of the University, of which he had been so distinguished a member, taking the place of the lamented Prince Consort; and the Professor of Modern History, as in duty bound, wrote an installation ode, which, being set to music by Sir William Sterndale Bennett, gave him the acquaintance and friendship of one of the first English musicians. Catching Salmon. 321 In August, with his wife and his eldest boy Maurice, he went to Scotland for a month's holiday, whence he writes TO HIS MOTHER. MURTHLEY CASTLE, August, 1862. " Here we are in this delicious place, full of beautiful walks and plantations with Birnam Wood opposite my window as I write only all the wood having gone to Dunsinane in Macbeth's time, the hill alone is left We had reels last night, Lord John Manners and Sir Hugh Cairns both dancing All that is said of the grandeur of the Tay I quite agree in. I never saw such a river, though there are very few salmon up. I got into one huge fish yesterday ; but he shook his head and shook out the hook very soon. Maurice caught a good sea trout of 2f Ibs., which delighted him. Monday we start for inveraray, via Balloch, Loch Lomond, and Tarbet." INVERARAY CASTLE, August 21. "The loveliest spot I ever saw large lawns and enormous tim- ber on the shores of a salt-water loch, with moor and mountain before and behind. I gat myself up this morning at four for sal- mon, yesterday i could kill none ; water too low. To-day the first cast I hooked a ten pounder, and the hook broke ! The river is swarming ; they are flopping and smacking about the water every- where ; but rh. dear ! why did Heaven make midges ? " The visit to Inveraray was one of the bright memories and green spots of his life, always looked back upon by himself and those who were with him with gratitude, combining as it did not only beauti- ful scenery, but intellectual, scientific, and spiritual communings on the highest, holiest themes. Such holidays were few and far be- tween in his life of labor, and when they came he could give him- self up to them, " thanks," as he would say, "to my blessed habit of intensity, which has been my greatest help in life. 1 go at what I am about as it there was nothing else in the world for the time being. That's the secret of all hard-working men : but most of them can't carry it into their amusements. Luckily for me, I can stop from all work, at short notice, and turn head over heels in the sight of all creation for a spell." The British Association met at Cambridge on the ist October. It was the first he had ever attended. The Zoological and Geo- logical sections were those which naturally attracted him, and the 21 322 Charles Kings ley. acquaintances he made, the distinguished men he now met, (among them, the lamented Beete Jukes, and Lucas Barrett, who was drowned in the survey of the Jamaica coral reefs the next year,) made this an era in his life, and gave a fresh impetus to his scien- tific studies. While attending Section D, he was present at the famous tournament between Professor Owen and Professor Hux- ley on the Hippocampus question, which led to his writing a little squib for circulation among his friends. As it will be new to many it is given at length. SPEECH OF LORD DUNDREARY IN SECTION D, ON FRIDAY LAST, ON THE GREAT HIPPOCAMPUS QUESTION. CAMBRIDGE, October, 1861. "Mr. President and Gentlemen, I mean ladies and Mr. Presi- dent, I am sure that all ladies and gentlemen will see the matter just as I do ; and I am sure we're all very much obliged to these scientific gentlemen for quarrelling no I don't mean that, that wouldn't be charitable, and it's a sin to steal a pin : but I mean for letting us hear them quarrel, and so eloquently, too ; though, of course, we don't understand what is the matter, and which is in the right ; but of course we were very much delighted; and, I may say, quite interested, to find that we had all hippopotamuses in our brains. Of course they're right, you know, because seeing' s believing. " Certainly, I never felt one in mine ; but perhaps it's dead, and so didn't stir, and then of course, it don't count, you know. A dead dog is as good as a live lion. Stop no. A live lion is as good as a dead dog no, that won't do again. There's a mistake some- where. What was I saying ? Oh, hippopotamuses. Well, I say, perhaps mine's dead. They say hippopotamuses feed on water. No, 1 don't think that, because teetotallers feed on water, and they are always lean ; and the hippo's fat, at least in the Zoo. Live in water, it must be ; and there's none in my brain. Tnere was when 1 was a baby, my aunt says ; but they tapped me ; so I suppose t the hippopotamus died of drought. No stop. It wasn't a hip- popotamus after all, it was hip hip not hip. hip, hurrah, you know, that comes after dinner, and the section hasn't dined, at least since last night, and the Cambridge wine is very good, I will say that. No. 1 recollect now. Hippocampus it was. Hippo- campus, a sea-horse ; 1 learnt that at Eton ; hippos, sea, and cam- pus, a horse no campus a sea, and hippos, a horse, that's ri^ht. Only campus ain't a sea, it's a field, I know that ; Campus Martins I was swished for. that at Eton ought to be again, 1 believe, if every dog had his day. But at least it's a sea-horse, 1 know that, Lord Dundreary. 323 because I saw one alive at Malta with the regiment, and it rang a bell. No ; it was a canary that rang a bell ; but this had a tail like a monkey, and made a noise like a bell. I dare say you won't believe me; but 'pon honor I'm speaking truth noblesse oblige, you know ; and it hadn't been taught at all, and perhaps if it had it wouldn't have learnt : but it did, and it was in a monkey's tail. No, stop, it must have been in its head, because it was in its brain ; and everyone has brains in his head, unless he's a skeleton ; and it curled its tail round things like a monkey, that I know, for I saw it with my own eyes. That was Professor Rolleston's theory, you know. It was Professor Huxley said it was in his tail not Mr. Huxley's, of course, but the ape's: only apes have no tails, so I don't quite see that. And then the other gentleman who gut up last, Mr. Flower, you know, he said that it was all over the ape, everywhere. All over hippocampuses, from head to foot, poor beast, like a dog all over ticks ! I wonder why they don't rub blue- stone into the back of its neck, as one does to a pointer. Well, then. Where was I? Oh! and Professor Owen said it wasn't in apes at all : but only in the order bimana, that's you and me. Well, he knows best. And they all know best too, for they are monstrous clever fellows. So one must be right, and all the rest wrong, or else one of them wrong, and all the rest right you see that ? I wonder why they don't toss up about it. If they took a half-crown now, or a shilling, or even a fourpenny-piece would do, if they magnified it, and tost heads and tails, or Newmarket, if they wanted to be quite sure, why then there couldn't be any dispute among gentlemen after that, of course. Well, then, about men being apes, I say, why shouldn't it be the other way, and the apes be men? do you see? Because then they might have as many hippocampuses in their brains as they liked, or hippopotamuses either, indeed. 1 should be glad indeed if it was so. if it was only for my aunt's sake ; for she says that her clergyman says, that if anybody ever finds a hippopotamus in a monkey's head, nothing will save her great, great, great I can't say how great, you see it's awful to think of quite enormous grandfather from having been a monkey too ; and then what is to become of her precious soul ? So, for my aunt's sake, I should be very glad if it could be settled that way, really ; and I am sure the scientific gentlemen will take it into consideration, because they are gentlemen, as every one knows, and would not hurt a lady's feelings. The man who would strike a woman, you know everybody knows that, it's in Shake- speare. And besides, the niggers say that monkeys are men, only they won't work for fear of being made to talk ; no, won't talk for fear of being made to work ; that's it (right for once, as I live !) and put their hands over their eyes at night for fear of seeing the old gentleman and I'm sure that's just like a reasonable creature, 1 used to when I was a little boy ; and you see the 324 Charles Kings ley. lived among them for thousands of years, and are monstrous like them, too, d'ye see, and so they must know best ; and then it would be all right. " Well, then, about a gulf. Professor Huxley says there's a gulf between a man and an ape. I'm sure I'm glad of it, especially if the ape bit; and Professor Owen says there ain't. What? am I wrong, eh ? Of course. Yes beg a thousand pardons, really now. Of course Professor Owen says there is, and Professor Huxley says there ain't. Well, a fellow can't recollect everything. But I say, if there's a gulf, the ape might get over it and bite one after all. I know Quintus Curtius jumped over a gulf at Eton that is, certainly, he jumped in : but that was his fault, you see : if he'd put in more powder he might have cleared it, and then there would have been no gulf between him and an ape. But that don't matter so much, because Professor Huxley said the gulf was bridged over by a structure. Now I am sure I don't wish to be personal, espe- cially after the very handsome way in which Professor Huxley has drunk all our healths. Stop no. It's we that ought to drink his health, I'm sure, Highland honors and all ; but at the same time I should have been obliged to him if he'd told us a little more about this structure, especially considering what nasty mischievous things apes are. Tore one of my coat tails off at the Zoological the other day. He ought no, I don't say that, because it would seem like dictation, I don't like that; never could do it at school wrote it down all wrong got swished hate dictation : but I might humbly express that Professor Huxley might have fold us a little, you see, about that structure. Was it wood ? Was it iron ? Was it silver and gold, like London Bridge when Lady Lee danced over it, be- fore it was washed away by a man with a pipe in his mouth? No, stop, I say That can't be. A man with a pipe in his mouth wash away a bridge? Why a fellow can't work hard with a pipe in his mouth everybody knows that much less wash away a whole bridge. No, it's quite absurd quite. Only I say, I should like to know something about this structure, if it was only to quiet my aunt. And then, if Professor Huxley can see the structure, why can't Professor Owen ? It can't be invisible, you know, unless it was painted invisible green, like Ben Hall's new bridge at Chelsea: only you can see that of course, for you have to pay now when you go over, so I suppose the green ain't the right color. But that's another reason why I want them to toss up toss up, you see, whether they saw it or not, or which of them should see it, or something of that kind, I'm sure that's the only way to settle ; and oh, by-the-bye, as 1 said before only I didn't, but I ought to have if either of the gentlemen havn't half-a-crown about them, why a two-shilling-piece might do ; though I never carry them my- self, for fear of giving one to a keeper; and then he sets you down for a screw, you know. Because, you see, I see, I don't quite see, A New Volume of Sermons. 325 and no offence to honorable members learned and eloquent gentlemen, 1 mean; and though I don't wish to dictate, I don't quite think ladies and gentlemen quite see either. You see that? " (The noble lord, who had expressed so acurately the general sense of the meeting, sat down amid loud applause.) The cotton famine in the North, which occurred now, roused many thoughts and feelings in his mind and heart, and led to a correspondence in the " Times " and elsewhere. A new volume of sermons, " Town and Country Sermons," had recently been published. They were dedicated to his "most kind and faithful friend," the Dean of Windsor,* and contained several preached at Windsor and at Whitehall, with some of the deepest and most characteristic of his Eversley sermons particularly "The Rock of Ages," " The Wrath of Love," " Pardon and Peace," and one most important one on the Athanasian Creed, called " The Knowledge of God." * The Hon. and Very Rev. Gerald Wellesley. CHAPTER XXII. 1863. AGED 44. Fellow of the Geological Society Work at Cambridge Prince of Wales's Wed- ding Wellington College Chapel and Museum Letter from Dr. Benson Lecture at Wellington Letters to Sir Charles Lyell, Prof. Huxley, Charles Darwin, James A. Froude, &c. Whitchurch Still-life Toads in Holes D.C.L. Degree at Oxford Bishop Colenso Sermons on the Pentateuch . The Water-babies Failing Health. PROFESSOR KINGSLEY had this year the honor of adding three letters to his name by being made a Fellow of the Geological Society. He was proposed by his kind friend Sir Charles Bun- bury, and seconded by Sir Charles Lyell. "To belong to the Geological Society," he says in a letter to the former, "has long been an ambition of mine, but I feel how little I know, and how unworthy I am to mix with the really great men who belong to it. So strongly do I feel this, that if you told me plainly that 1 had no right to expect such an honor, I should placidly acquiesce in what I already feel to be true." The F.G.S. came as a counter- balance to his rejection at Oxford for the distinction of D.C.L., which his friends there proposed to confer on him. The year was spent almost entirely at Eversley, for he found the salary of his Professorship did not admit of his keeping two houses and of moving his family backwards and forwards to Cambridge. He was therefore forced to part with his Cambridge house, and to go up twice a year merely, for the time required for his lectures (twelve to sixteen in number), and again at the exami- nation of his class for degrees. He deeply regretted this necessity, as it prevented his knowing the men in his class personally, which he had made a point of doing during the first two years of his resi- dence, when they came to his house, and many charming evenings were spent in easy intercourse between the Professor and his pupils, who met them on equal terms. From the first he made it one of his most important duties to do what he could to bridge over a The Royal Wedding. 327 gulf which in his own day had been a very wide one between Dons and Students. That he had succeeded in doing this was proved by members of his class, writing to consult him after they left Cambridge on their studies, their professions, and their religious difficulties, in a way that showed their perfect confidence in his sympathy ; and had circumstances allowed of his residing at Cam- bridge, his personal influence would have been still greater. We now return to his correspondence. TO REV. E. PITCAIRN CAMPBELL. EVERSLEY, March 12, 1863. "We are just from the Royal Wedding at least so I believe. We had (so 1 seem to remember) excellent places. Mrs. Kingsley in the temporary gallery in the choir. I in the household gallery, both within 15 yards of what, I am inclined to think, was really the Prince and Princess. But I can't swear to it. I am not at all sure that 1 did not fall asleep in the dear old chapel, with the banners and stalls fresh in my mind, and dream and dream of Fxlward the Fourth's time. At least, I saw live Knights of the Garter (myths to me till then). I saw real Princesses with diamond crowns, and trains, and fairies holding them up. 1 saw what did I not see ? And only began to believe my eyes, when 1 met at the dejeuner certain of the knights whom I knew, clothed and in their right mind, like other folk ; and of the damsels and fairies many, who, I believe, were also flesh and blood, for they talked and ate with me, and vanished not away. " But seriously, one real thing I did see, and felt too the serious grace and reverent dignity of my dear young Master, whose manner was perfect. And one other real thing the Queen's sad face. I cannot tell you how auspicious I consider this event, or how happy it has made the little knot of us, the Prince's household,* who love him because we know him. I hear nothing but golden reports of the Princess from those who have known her long. I look forward to some opportunity of judging for myself." His time this year was divided between his parish work and the study of science, and in corresponding with scientific men. Mr. Darwin's "Origin of Species " and his book on the "Fertilization of Orchids," had opened a new world to him, and made all that he saw around him, if possible, even more full of divine significance than before. Wellington College was a continual interest to him. o o He lectured to the boys, and helped them to start a Museum. He * Mr. Kingsley had recently been made one of the Prince's chaplains. 328 Charles Kings ley. felt bound to do all he could for Wellington College, not only be- cause his own son was there, and from his warm friendship with Dr. Benson, then head-master ; but because he looked upon the place as a memorial of the great Prince under whose fostering care it had risen into importance, as well as of the great Duke whose name it bore. The boys were continually at the Rectory, and Mr. Kingsley was always present at their great days, whether for the speeches or their athletic sports. Mr. Kingsley's Lecture on Natural History may well be prefaced by a letter from Dr. Benson, characteristic alike of the writer and his subject. THE CHANCERY, LINCOLN, SUNDAY, July u, 1875. "My DEAR MRS. KINGSLEY, " . . . . There was a bold sketch of Mr. Kingsley in the Spectator in his squire-like aspect, and I think it was true. But I know that an equally true sketch might be made of him as a parish priest, who would have delighted George Herbert. The gentle, warm frankness with which he talked on a summer Sunday among the grassy and flowery graves. The happy peace in which he walked, chatting, over to Bramshill chapel-school, and, after reading the evening service, preached in his surplice with a chair-back for his pulpit, on the deeps of the Athanasian Creed ; and, after thank- ing God for words that brought such truths so near, bade the villagers mark that the very Creed which laid such stress on faith, told them that ' they who did good would go into everlasting life.' His strid- ing across the ploughed field to ask a young ploughman in the dis- tance why he had not been at church on Sunday, and ending his talk with ' Now, you know, John, your wife don't want you lounging in bed half a Sunday morning. You get up and come to church, and let her get your Sunday dinner and make the house tidy, and then you mind your child in the afternoon while she comes to church.' These, and many other scenes, are brightly before me. His never remitted visits to sick and helpless, his knowledge of their every malady, and every change of their hopes and fears ; the sternness and the gentleness which he alternated so easily with foolish people ; the great respectfulness of his tone to old folks, made the rectory and church at Eversley the centre of the life of the men as well as their children and wives. Gipsies on Hartford- bridge flats have told me they considered Eversley their parish church wherever they went, and for his own parishioners, 'every man jack of them,' as he said, was a steady church-goer. But it was no wonder, for I never heard sermons with which more pains had been taken than those which he made for his poor people. There was so much, such deep teaching, conveyed in words that Lectures to Boys. 329 were so plain. One on the conversion of St. Paul, and one on the Church, I shall never forget. The awe and reverence of his manner of celebrating the service was striking to any one who knew only his novels. Strangers several times asked me, who saw him at service in our own school-chapel, who it was who was so rapt in manner, who bowed so low at the Gloria and the name of Jesus Christ ; and so I too was surprised when he asked me, before preaching in his church, to use only the Invocation of the Trinity ; and when I observed that he celebrated the communion in the east- ward position. This he loyally gave up on the Purchas judgment, ' because I mind the law,' but told me with what regret he discon- tinued what from his ordination he had always done, believing it the simple direction of the Prayer Book. " An amusing incident happened once, which, I daresay, he never heard of. A sub-editor, of a famous religious paper, once attended a chapel service at Wellington, when Mr. Kingsley preached, and then withdrew his son's name from our list, and pre- pared a leading article upon a supposed head-master, whose doc- trine and manner were so ' high.' " What always struck me in him was the care and pains which he took with all that he undertook. Nothing was hurried, or slurred, or dashing. 'I can tell you, I've spared no trouble upon it,' he said, when we thanked him for the beautiful sermon on ' Wisdom and her seven pillars,' which he made for one of our days.* " In the readiest and yet most modest way he helped us wonder- fully. His presence looking on, helped our games into shape when we began with fifty raw little boys, and our football exploits, twelve years after, were as dear to him as to his son; 'the Kingsley' steeple-chase was the event of the year. But in far higher ways lie helped us. He wrote an admirable paper for us, which was widely circulated, on School Museums; he prevailed on the Royal College of Surgeons, on Lady Franklin, and other friends, to present the beys with many exquisite natural history specimens, and started all our collections. " His lectures (of which I trust some of his notes exist) on natural history, and two on geology, were some of the most bril- liant things 1 ever heard. Facts and theories, and speculations, and imaginations of what had been and might be, simply riveted the attention of 200 or 300 boys for an hour and a half or two hours, and many good' proverbs of life sparkled among these. Their great effect was that they roused so much interest. At the same time his classification of facts such as the radiation of plants (Heather for instance) from geographical centres, gave substantial grounds for the work which he encouraged. 'Let us make a be- * Published in " Discipline and other Sermons." 330 Charles Kingsley. ginning by knowing one little thing well, and getting roused as to what else, is to be known.' " Nothing was more delightful too, to our boys, than the way in which he would come and make a little speech at the end of other occasional winter lectures, Mr. Lowne's or Mr. Henslow's, or about balloons, or, above all, when, at the close of a lecture of Mr. Barnes's, he harangued us in pure Dorset dialect, to the sur- prise and delight of the Dorsetshire poet. " In our many happy talks we scarcely ever agreed in our esti- mate of mediaeval character or literature, but I learnt much from him. When even St. Bernard was not appreciated by him, it is not surprising that much of the life of those centuries was repul- sive, and its religious practice ' pure Buddhism,' as he used to say. At the same time, I never shall forget how he turned over on a person who was declaiming against ' idolatry.' ' Let me tell you, sir,' (he said with that forcible stammer), ' that if you had had a chance you would have done the same, and worse. The first idols were black stones, meteoric stones. And if you'd been a poor naked fellow, scratching up the ground with your nails, when a great lump of pyrites had suddenly half buried itself in the ground within three yards of you, with a horrid noise and smell, don't you think you'd have gone down on your knees to it, and begged it not to do it again, and smoothed it and oiled it, and anything else ? ' " Greek life and feeling was dear to him in itself, and usually he was penetrated with thankfulness that it formed so large a part of education. " ' From that and from the Bible, -boys learn what must be learnt among the grandest moral and spiritual reproofs of what is base. Nothing so fearful as to leave curiosity unslaked to help itself.' At other times he doubted. Still, if I measure rightly, he doubted only when he was so possessed with the forest ardor, that he said, ' All politics, all discussions, all philosophies of Europe, are so in- finitely little in comparison with those trees out there in the West Indies. Don't you think the brain is a fungoid growth? O ! if I could only find an artist to 'paint a tree as I see it ! ' In mention- ing last this keen enjoyment of his in the earth as it is, I seem to have inverted the due order : but I see it as a solid, truthful back- ground in his soul of all the tenderness and lovingness, and spiritual strength in which he walked about ' convinced,' as a friend once said to me of him, ' that, as a man and as a priest, he had got the devil under, and that it was his bounden duty to keep him there.' " LKCTURE AT WELLINGTON COLLEGE. Jime 25, 1863. " YOUNG GENTLEMEN, " Your head-master, Dr. Benson, has done me the honor of asking me to say a little to you to-night about the Museum which The Art of Learning. 331 is in contemplation, connected with this College, and how far you yourselves can help it. " I assure you I do so gladly. Anything which brings .me in contact with the boys of Wellington College, much more of help- ing forward their improvement in the slightest degree, I shall always look upon as a very great pleasure, and a very serious duty. ' Let me tell you, then, what I think you may do for the Museum, and how you may improve yourselves by doing it, with- out interfering with your regular work. Of course, that must never be interfered with. You are sent here to work. All of you here, I suppose, depend for your success in life on your own exer- tions. None of you are born (luckily for you) with a silver spoon in your mouths, to eat flapdoodle at other people's expense, and live in luxury and idleness. Work you must, and I don't doubt that work you will, and let nothing interfere with your work. " The first thing for a boy to learn, after obedience and moral- ity, is a habit of observation. A habit of using your eyes. It matters little what you use them on, provided you do use them. " They say knowledge is power, and so it is. But only the knowledge which you get by observation. Many a man is very learned in books, and has read for years and years, and yet he is useless. He knows about all sorts of things but he can't do them. When you set him to do work, he makes a mess of it. He is what is called a pedant : because he has not used his eyes and ears. He has lived in books. He knows nothing of the world about him, or of men and their ways, and therefore he is left behind in the race of life by many a shrewd fellow who is not half as book- learned as he: but who is a shrewd fellow who keeps his eyes open who is always picking up new facts, and turning them to some particular use. " Now, I don't mean to undervalue book-learning. No man less. All ought to have some of it, and the time which you spend here on it is not a whit too long ; but the great use of a public- school education to you, is, not so much to teach you things as to teach you how to learn. To give you the noble art of learning, which you can use for yourselves in after-life on any matter to which you choose to turn your mind. And what does the art of learning consist in? First and foremost, in the nrt of observing. That is, the boy who uses his eyes best on his book, and obserres the words and letters of his lesson most accurately and carefully, that is the boy who learns his lesson best, I presume. "You know, as well as I, how one fellow will sit staring at his book for an hour without knowing a word about it, while another will learn the tiling in a quarter of an hour, and why ? Because one has actually not seen the words. He has been thinking of something else, looking out of the window, repeating the words to himself like a parrot. The other fellow has simply, as we say, 33 2 Charles Kings ley. ' looked sharp.' He has looked at the lesson with his whole mind, seen it, and seen into it. and therefore knows all about it. " Therefore, I say, that everything which helps a boy's powers of observation helps his power of learning ; and I know from ex- perience that nothing helps that so much as the study of the world about you, and especially of natural history. To be accus- tomed to watch for curious objects, to know in a moment when you have come on anything new which is observation. To be quick at seeing when things are like, and when unlike which is classification. All that must, and I well know does, help to make a boy shrewd, earnest, accurate, ready for whatever may happen. When we were little and good, a long time ago, we used to have a jolly old book called ' Evenings at Home,' in which was a great story called Eyes and No Eyes, and that story was of more use to me than any dozen other stories I ever read. "A regular old-fashioned formal story it is, but a right good one, and thus it begins : " ' Well, Robert, where have you been walking this afternoon ? ' said Mr. Andrews, to one of his pupils, at the close of a holiday. Oh, Robert had been to Broom Heath, and round to Campmount, and home through the meadows. But it was very dull, he hardly saw a single person. He had rather by half have gone by the turnpike road. " But where is William ? " Oh, William started with him, but he was so tedious, always stopping to look at this thing and that, that he would rather walk alone, and so went on. " Presently in comes Master William, dressed no doubt as we wretched boys used to be forty years ago, frill collar, and tight skeleton monkey jacket, and tight trousers buttoned over it, and not down to his ankles a pair of low shoes- which always came off if stept into heavy ground and terribly dirty and wet he is, but he never had such a pleasant walk in his life, and has brought home a handkerchief full of curiosities. " He has got a piece of mistletoe, and wants to know what it is, and seen a woodpecker and a wheat-ear, and got strange flowers off the heath, and hunted a peewit because he thought its wing was broken, till of course it led him into a bog and wet he got; but he did not mind, for in the bog he fell in with an old man cutting turf, who told him all about turf cutting, and gave him an adder ; and then he went up a hill, and saw a grand prospect, and wanted to go again and make out the geography of the county by Carey's old county map which was our only map in those days ; and be- cause the place was called Campmounr, he looked for a Roman camp and found one ; and then he went to the ruin, and saw twenty things more, and so on. and so on, till he had brought home curiosities enough and thoughts enough to last him a week. Eyes and No Eyes. 333 "Whereon Mr. Andrews, who seems a sensible old gentleman enough, tells him all about his curiosities; and then it turns out that Master William has been over exactly the same ground as Master Robert, who saw nothing at all. " Whereon says Mr. Andrews, wisely enough in his solemn, old- fashioned way, ' So it is. One man walks through the world with his eyes open, and another with them shut ; and upon this difference depends all the superiority of knowledge which one acquires over the other. I have known sailors who have been in all the quarters of the world, and could tell you nothing but the signs of the tippling houses, and the price and quality of the liquor. On the other hand, Franklin could not cross the Channel without making observations useful to mankind. While many a vacant thoughtless person is whirled through Europe without gaining a single idea worth cross- ing the street for, the observing eye and inquiring mind find matter of improvement and delight in every ramble. Do you then, William, continue to make use of your eyes ; and you, Robert, learn that eyes were given you to use.' "And when I read that story as a little boy, I said to myself, I will be Mr. Eyes ; I will not be Mr. No Eyes, and Mr. Eyes I have tried to be ever since ; and Mr. Eyes, I advise you, every one of you, to be, if you wish to be happy and successful. " Ah, my dear boys, if you knew the idle, vacant, useless life which too many young men lead when their day's work is done, and done spiritlessly, and therefore done ill, having nothing to fall back on but the theatre, or billiards, or the gossip at their club, or if they be out in a hot country, everlasting pale ale ; and con- tinually tempted to sin, and shame, and ruin by their own idleness, while they miss opportunities of making valuable discoveries, of distinguishing themselves, and helping themselves forward in life ; then you would make it a duty to get a habit of observing, no matter what you observe, and of having at least some healthy and rational pursuit with which to fill up your leisure hours. "The study of natural history, of antiquities, of geography, of chemistry, any study which will occupy your minds, may be the means, whether out on some foreign station, or home here at work in London, of keeping you out of temptation and misery, of which, thank God, you as yet know nothing. . " I am happy to hear that there are many of you who don't need this advice, some who are working well at chemistry, some who have already begun to use your eyes, and to make collections of plants, insects, and birds' eggs. " That is good as far as it goes. As for bird-nesting, I think it a manly and excellent pursuit;* no one has worked harder at it * He never allowed his own boys to take nests, or more than one, or at most two eggs out of a nest where there were several, so that the mother bird might not miss them. 334 Charles Kings ley. than I, when I was young, or should like better to go bird-nesting now, if I was not getting rather too stiff and heavy to bark up to a hawk's nest. " But see. Because every boy collects for himself, there is a great deal of unnecessary destruction of eggs, especially of the small soft- billed birds, which are easiest got, and are the very ones which ought to be spared, on account of their .great usefulness to the farmer in destroying insects ; and next Pray, where will nine-tenths of those eggs be seen a few days hence? smashed, and in the dust- hole, and so of the insects and plants. "Now it seems to me, that if fellows were collecting for a Col- lege Museum, instead of every one for himself, it would save a great deal of waste, and save the things themselves likewise. " As for a fellow liking to say, ' I have got this, and I will keep it to myself, I like to have a better collection than any one else,' that is natural enough ; but like a great many natural things, rather a low feeling, if you will excuse my saying so. Which is better, to keep a thing to yourselves, locked up in your own drawers, or to put them into the common stock, for the pleasure of every one? and which is really more honor to you, to be able to say to two or three of your friends, ' I have got an egg which you have not,' or to have the egg, or whatever else it may be, in a public collection, to be seen by every one, by boys, years hence, after you are grown up ? For myself, I can't think of a better way of keeping up a corporate feeling in the college, and binding the different generations, as they succeed each other, together in one, than a museum of this kind, in which boys should see the names of those who have gone before them, as having presented this or that curious object. " So strongly do I feel it, that I have asked Dr. Benson's leave to give two prizes every year. One for the most rare and curious thing of any kind whether in natural history, geology, antiquities, or anything else fit for a museum, which has been bona fide found by the boy himself; and a second prize for the most curious thing contributed by a boy, never mind how he has got it, provided only that he has not bought it, for against that there are objections. That would give the boys with plenty of money a chance which the others had not. " But there are so many of you who have relations abroad, or in the country, that you will be able to obtain from them rare and curious objects which you could not collect yourselves, and I advise you to turn sturdy beggars, and get hold (by all fair means) of anything and everything worth putting in the Museum, and out of which you can coax or beg anybody whatsoever, old or young. ' And, mind, you will have help. I myself am ready to give as many curious things as I can, out of my own collection ; and if this Museum had been started ten or twenty years ago, I could have given you a great deal more, but my collections have been Holidays and how to Employ Them. 335 too much and often spoilt and broken, and at last the remnant given away in despair, just because I had no museum to put them in. If there had been one where I was at school, I could have saved for it hundreds of different things which are now in dust- holes in half-a-dozen counties, and also should have had the heart to collect many things which I have let pass me, simply because I did not care to keep them, having nowhere to put them, and so it will be with you. " I only mention myself as an example of what I have been saying. But it is not to me merely that you must look for help. I am happy to say that you will be helped by many (I believe) real men of science, who will send the Museum such things as are wanted to start it well. To start it well with ' Typical Forms,' by which you can arrange and classify what you find. They will as it were stake out the ground for you, and you must fill up the gaps, and I don't doubt you will do it, and well. " I am sure you can, if you will see now here is an opportunity of making a beginning during the next vacation. " Dr. Benson has said that he will be ready to receive contribu- tions from scientific men after the holidays. But he has guaranteed for you in return, that some of you, at least, will begin collecting for the museum during the holidays. " What can you do better ? I am sure your holidays would be much happier for it. I don't think boys' holidays are in general so very happy. Mine used to be : but why ? Because the moment I got home, I went on with the same work in which I employed every half-holiday : natural history and geology. But many boys seem to me in the holidays very much like Jack when he is paid off at Portsmouth. He is suddenly free from the discipline of ship- board. He has plenty of money in his pocket, and he sets to, to have a lark, and makes a fool of himself till his money is spent ; and then he is very poor, and sick, and seedy, and cross, and disgusted with himself, and longs to get a fresh ship and go to work again as a great many fellows, I suspect, long for the holidays to be over. They suddenly change the regular discipline of work for complete idleness, and after the first burst is over, they get very often tired, and stupid, and cross, because they have nothing to do, except eating fruit and tormenting their sisters. " How much better for them to have something to do like this. Something which will not tire their minds, because it is quite differ- ent from their school work, and therefore a true amusement, which lets them cut the muses for awhile ; and something, too, which they can take a pride in, because it is done of their own free will, and they can look forward to putting their gains in the Museum when they come back, and saying, ' This is my holiday work, this is what I have won for the College since I have been away.' " Take this hint for your holidays, and take it too for after-life. 336 Charles Kings ley. For I am sure if you get up an interest for this Museum here, you will not lose it when you go away. " Many of you will go abroad, perhaps spend much of your lives abroad, and I am sure you will use the opportunities you will then have to enrich the Museum of the College, and be its benefactors each according to your powers throughout your lives. "But there is one interest, young gentlemen, which I have more at heart even than the interest of Wellington College, much as I love it, for its own sake and for the sake of that great Prince be- neath whose fostering shadow it grew up, and to whom this College, like me myself, owes more than we shall either of us ever repay ; yet there is an interest which I have still more at heart, and that is the interest of Science herself. " Ah, that I could make you understand what an interest that is. The interest of the health, the wealth, the wisdom of generations yet unborn. Ah, that I could make you understand what a noble thing it is to be men of science ; rich with a sound learning which man can neither give nor take away ; useful to thousands whom you have never seen, but who may be blessing your name hundreds of years after you are mouldering in the grave, the equals and the companions of the noblest and the most powerful. Taking a rank higher than even Queen Victoria herself can give, by right of that knowledge which is power. " But I must not expect you to see that yet. All I can do is to hope that my fancy may be fulfilled hereafter, that this Museum may be the starting point of a school of scientific men, few it may be in number, but strong, because bound together by common affection for their College, and their Museum, and each other. Scat- tered perhaps over the world, but communicating their discoveries to each other without jealousy or dispute, and sending home their prizes to enrich the stores of their old Museum, and to teach the generations of lads who will be learning here, while they are grown men, doing the work of men over the world. " Ah, that it might so happen. Ah, that even one great man of science might be bred up in these halls, one man who should discover a great truth, or do a great deed for the benefit of his fellow men. " If this College and Museum could produce but one master of natural knowledge, like Murchison or Lyell, Owen or Huxley, Faraday or Grove, or even one great discoverer, like Ross, or Sturt, or Speke, who has just solved the mystery of ages, the mystery after which Lucan makes Julius Caesar long, as the highest summit of his ambition : to leave others to conquer nations, while he himself sought for the hidden sources of the Nile. Or, if it ever should produce one man able and learned enough to do such a deed as that of my friend Clements Markham, who penetrated, in the face of danger and death, the trackless forests of the Andes, to Darwin Conquering. 337 bring home thence the plants of Peruvian bark, which, transplanted into Hindostan, will save the lives of tens of thousands English and Hindoos then, young gentlemen, all the trouble, all the care, which shall have been spent on this Museum I had almost said, upon this whole College, will have been well repaid." TO SIR CHARLES LYELL, F.G.S., ETC., ETC. EVERSLEY, April 28, 1863. " MY DEAR SIR CHARLES, " I have at last got through your big book* big in all senses, for it is as full as an egg, and as pregnant. But I have read specially the chapter on the Analogy of Language and Natural History, and am delighted. I had no suspicion that so complete a case could be made out. And it does not seem to me a mere ' illustration ' of the deceptive kind used in Scotch sermons, whereby * * * * used to make anything prove anything else ; but a real analogue, of the same inductive method applied to a set of facts homologous, though distinct. " I am very anxious to see a Museum established at the Welling- ton College, for training the boys in the knowledge of nature, and in the pursuits of natural science. As most of the boys go abroad in after-life, it seems to open a great door for your scheme, of hav- ing educated gentlemen-naturalists spread abroad, and in commu- nication with each other and with the societies at home, and I shall soon go shamelessly a-begging for typical forms of every kind, the intermediate gaps to be filled up by the boys themselves." TO REV. F. D. MAURICE. " I am very busy working out points of Natural Theology, by the strange light of Huxley, Darwin, and Lyell. I think I shall come to something worth having before 1 have done. But I am not go- ing to reach into fruit this seven years, for this reason : The state of the scientific mind is most curious ; Darwin is conquering every- where, and rushing in like a flood, by the mere force of truth and fact. The one or two who hold out are forced to try all sorts of subter- fuges as to fact, or else by evoking the odium theologicutn " But they find that now they have got rid of an interfering God a master-magician, as I call it they have to choose between the absolute empire of accident, and a living, immanent, ever-working God. " Grove's truly great mind has seized the latter alternative al- ready, on the side of chemistry. Ansted, in his Rede Lecture, is feeling for it in geology ; and so is Lyell ; and I, in my small * " Antiquity of Man." 22 338 Charles Kings ley. way of zoology, am urging it on Huxley, Rolleston, and Bates, who has just discovered facts about certain butterflies in the valley of the Amazon, which have filled me, and, I trust, others, with utter astonishment and awe. Verily, God is great, or else there is no God at all. " That mystery of generation has been felt in all ages to be the crux, the meeting point of heaven and earth, of God or no God ; and it is being felt so now more intensely than ever. All turns on it So does human thought come round again in cycles to the same point ; but, thank God, each time with more and sounder knowledge. All will be well, if we will but remember what is written : ' He that believeth will not make haste.' " But I ought to say, that by far the best forward step in Natural Theology has been made by an American, Dr. Asa Gray,* who has said better than I can all that I want to say. I send you his pamphlet, entreating you to read it, especially pp. 28-49, which are in my eyes unanswerable. "A passage between me and * * * * (we are most intimate and confidential, though more utterly opposed in thought than he is to the general religious or other public), may amuse you. He says somewhere, ' the ape's brain is almost exactly like the man's, and so is his throat. See, then, what enormously different results may be produced by the slightest difference in structure ! ' I tell him. 'not a bit ; you are putting the cart before the horse, like the rest of the world. If you won't believe my great new doctrine (which, by the bye, is as old as the Greeks), that souls secrete their bodies, as snails do shells, you will remain in outer darkness I know an ape's brain and throat are almost exactly like a man's and what does that prove ? That the ape is a fool and a muff, who has tools very nearly as good as a man's, and yet can't use them, while the man can do the most wonderful thing with tools very little better than an ape's. " 'If men had had ape's bodies they would have got on very tolerably with them, because they had men's souls to work the bodies with. While an ape's soul in a man's body would be only a rather more filthy nuisance than he is now. You fancy that the axe uses the workman, I say that the workman uses the axe, and that though he can work rather better with a good tool than a bad one, the great point is, what sort of workman is he an ape-soul or a human soul ? ' * When in America, in 1874, Mr. Kingsley had the happiness of making ac- quaintance with Professor Asa Gray, who among many other botanical works had lately published his admirable little book for the young on "Climbing Plants." In an important work just published in Boston (1876) on Darwinism, the Professor has made quotations from Mr. Kingsley's " Westminster Ser- mons." Letters to Huxley and Darwin. 339 " Whereby you may perceive that I am not going astray into materialism as yet." TO PROFESSOR HUXLEY. EvERSLEY, June 28, 1863. " Don't take the trouble to answer this. In re great toes of apes and men. Have you ever remarked the variableness of the hallux in our race ? " The old Greek is remarkable for a small hallux and large second toe, reaching beyond it, and that is held (and rightly) as the most perfect form of the human foot. But in all modern Indo-Gothic races is it the same ? In all children which I have seen (and I have watched carefully) the hallux is far larger and longer in propor- tion to the other toes than in the Greek statues. This is not caused (as commonly supposed) by wearing shoes, for it holds in the Irish children who have never worn them. " Now surely such a variation in the size of the hallux gives probability at least to your deductions from its great variability in the apes. " Science owes you the honor of having demonstrated that the hind hand of the apes is not a hand, but a true foot. Think over what I have said." TO CHARLES DARWIN, ESQ., F.R.S., &C. EVERSLEY, June 14, 1863. " I have been reading with delight and instruction your paper on climbing plants. "Your explanation of an old puzzle of mine Lathyrus Nissolia is a master-piece. Nothing can be more conclusive. That of the filament at the petiole-end of the bean is equally satisfactory. " Ah, that I could begin to study nature anew, now that you have made it to me a live thing, not a dead collection of names. But my work lies elsewhere now. Your work, nevertheless, helps mine at every turn. It is better that the division of labor should be complete, and that each man should do only one thing, while he looks on, as he finds time, at what others are doing, and so gets laws from other sciences which he can apply, as I do, to my own." TO H. BATES, ESQ., F.R.S. EVERSLEY, 1863. "There is no physical cause discovered by the microscope why ova should develope each according to its kind. To a philosopher, a hen bringing forth a crocodile would not be so wonderful, as the hundred thousands of hens never bringing forth any thing but hens. 34 Charles Kings ley. 11 To talk of its being done by laws impressed on matter, is to use mere words. How can a law be impressed on matter? Is it in the matter? Is it impressed thereon as a seal on wax? Or even as a polar arrangement of parts on a solid ? If so. it is discoverable by the microscope. But if ' it ' were found, that would not be a Law, but only a present and temporary phenomenon an arrange- ment or formation of particles for the time being not the Law or formative cause thereof; and we should be just as far from the 'causa causativa' of the development as ever. I hope I am not boring you by all this. You will see whither it is tending ; and it is the result of long and painful thought, in which I have been try- ing to bring my little logic and metaphysic to bear not on physical science herself, for she stands on her own ground, microscope in hand, and will allow no intruder, however venerable ; but on the nomenclature of physical science, which is to me painfully confused, from a want in our scientific men of that logical training by which things are rightly named, though they cannot be discovered thereby. And this common metaphor of ' a Law imprest on matter ' is one which must be regarded merely as a metaphor, and an approxima- tive symbol, useless for accurate science, or we shall get into hor- rible confusions of speech and thought about material causes and their limits, especially now when Darwin, &c., on one hand, and Lyell, &c., on another, have shown us what an enormous amount of the world's work is done by causes strictly material. " For myself, I agree with Dr. Asa Gray, in his admirable pam- phlet on Darwin, that the tendency of physical science is ' not towards the omnipotence of Matter, but to the omnipotence of Spirit. And I am inclined to regard the development of an ovum according to kind as the result of a strictly immaterial and spiritual agency." .... We now turn from science to fishing, and venture to insert, for those who never met him in his genial merry moods, a letter or two written in the joy of his heart when for a short moment all care was cast away, and he became a boy again. TO J. A. FROUDE, ESQ. WHITE HART, WHITCHURCH, May 27, 1863. " And is this the way you expect to get fishing when you want, it, axing for it with fierce importunity, and then running away and leaving your disconsolate partner to terrify himself into fiddlestrings with fancying what was the matter? .... Well .... but you have lost a lovely day's fishing. The first was not much, owing to the furious rain ; but yesterday I went up the side stream in the Park, and after the rain it was charming. They took first a Toads in a Hole. 341 little black gnat, and then settled to a red palmer and the conquer- ing turkey-brown, with which we killed so many here before. My beloved black alder they did not care for for why ? She was not out. The stream was not as good as when we fished it last, owing to extreme drought. But I kept seven brace of good fish, and threw in twelve. None over i^- Ib. though. After two came a ferocious storm, and chop of wind to VV., and after that I did noth- ing. Oh ! I wish you had been with me ; but if you will be good you shall come down week after next, and Mrs. Alder will be out then, and perhaps a few drakes on the lower shallow, and oh, won't we pitch into the fish ? Lord P. is gone to Bath, and Lady P. to High Clere So I am going home by mid-day train." TO REV. E. PITCAIRN CAMPBELL. EVE RS LEY, May 29, 1863. " By the strangest coincidence, Sir Charles Bunbury, a great geologist and botanist, and I were talking over this very evening Sir Alex. Gordon Cumming's toads in a hole. I promised him to write to Sir A. on the strength of his kind messages to me, for further information ; and behold, on coming home from a dinner- party at General Napier's, your letter anent them ! Verily, great things are in these toads' insides, or so strange a coincidence would not have happened. " Now, I say to you what I said to him. Toads are rum brutes. Like all batrachians, they breathe through their skins, as well as through their lungs. The instinct (as I have often proved) of the little beggars an inch long, fresh from water and tadpoledom, is to creep foolishly into the dirtiest hole they can find, in old walls, etc., where 99 out of a 100 are eaten by rats and beetles, as I hold or else the world would have been toadied to utter disgust and horror long ago. Some of these may get down into cracks in rocks, and never get back. The holes may be silted up by mud and sand. The toad may exist and grow in that hole for Heaven knows how long, I dare say for centuries, for I don't think he would want food to grow ; oxygen and water he must have, but a very little would do. " Accordingly, all the cases of toads in a hole which I have in- vestigated have been either in old walls or limestone rocks, which are porous as a sponge, absorb water and air, and give them out slowly, but enough to keep a cold-blooded batrachian alive. " Now, Sir Alex. Gordon Cumming's toads have puzzled me. I have read all that he has written, and thought over it, comparing it with all 1 know, and I think I know almost every case on record, and I am confounded. Will you ask him for me what is the nature of this conglomerate in which the toads are ? " I said to-night I would not believe in toads anywhere but in limestone or chalk, i.e., in strongly hydraulic strata. Sir Charles 342 Charles Kingsley. Bunbury corrected me, by saying that certain volcanic rocks, amygdaloid basalts, were as full of holes as limestone, and as strongly hydraulic, and so toads might live in them. "If Sir A. G. C. would send us a piece of the rock in which the toads lie, we could tell him more. But that the toads are contem- poraneous with the rock, or have got there any way save through cracks now filled up, and so overlooked in the blasting and cutting, is, I believe, impossible, and cannot be though God alone knows what cannot be and so I wait for further information. " Oh, that I could accept Sir Alexander's most kind invitation, and come and see the toads myself, let alone killing the salmon ! But I cannot. "We must send up one of our F.G.S.'s to see into the mat- ter ''Your flies are to me wonderful. I will try them on Itchen next week. But I have been killing well in burning sun, and water as clear as air, on flies which are to them as bumble bees." In the summer of this year the Prince and Princess of Wales honored the Oxford Commemoration with their presence, and ac- cording to custom His Royal Highness sent in previously the names of those on whom he wished the University to bestow the honorary degree of D.C.L. Among those names was that of Charles Kingsley, who was one of the Prince's private chaplains. He had several warm friends in the University, among others Dean Stanley (then Canon of Christ Church), Max Miiller, &c., who would have gladly seen this honor conferred on him ; but among the extreme High Church party there were dissentient voices ; and the Professor of Hebrew took the lead in opposing the degree on the ground of Mr. Kingsley' s published works, especially "Hypatia," which he considered " an immoral book," and one calculated to encourage young men in profligacy and false doctrine the very charge, in fact, that twelve years before had been brought against " Yeast " by an Oxford graduate of the same party. If the vote in Convocation had been carried in Mr. Kings- ley's favor, it would have been anything but unanimous, and a threat being made of a " non placet " in the theatre at the time of conferring the degree, his friends considerately advised him to re- tire ; and he, in order to avoid disturbing the peace of the Univer- sity on such an auspicious occasion, as considerately followed their advice. The following year some of his Oxford friends chival- rously offered to propose his name again for a distinction which he Colenso and the Pentateuch. 343 would have valued as much as any man living ; but he declined, saying that "it was an honor that must be given, not fought for," and that till the imputation of immorality was withdrawn from his book " Hypatia," he could not even in prospect accept the offer. In 1866 Bishop Wilberforce, then Bishop of Oxford, wrote to ask him to preach one of a course of sermons in the University in Lent, but he declined that honor too on the same grounds as the degree. " I do not deny," he says in a letter to Dean Stanley, "a great hankering for years past, after an Oxford D.C.L But all these things are right, and come with a reason, and a purpose, and a meaning ; and he who grumbles at them or at worse, be- lieveth not (for the time being at least) in the Living God." Again, to one who would have liked to see honor upon honor showered upon him " Pray, pray take what God does not send as not good for us, and trust Him to send us what is good " And so, when a disappointment was over, he would root out the memory of it before it had time to rankle in his mind and sow any seed of envy or malice. He lived on a high level, and to keep there he knew that he must crush down the unforgiving spirit which springs from egotism in the hearts of less noble men. Coupled with this, too, was not only his intense faith in the govern- ment of God, as shown in the smallest as well as the most impor- tant events of life, and in His education of His creatures, by each and every one of these events, but a deep sense of his own unwor- thiness, which made him content (a word he loved) with what he had already as all too good for him. Bishop Colenso' s work on the Pentateuch had lately appeared and was the topic of general discussion, which led to his preaching a series of sermons * on the subject to his own people at Eversley. In a letter to Mr. Maurice, he said, in reference to the one on the Credibility of the Plagues of Egypt and of miracles in general : vt All this talk about the Pentateuch is making me feel its unique value and divineness so much more than ever I did, that I burn to fay something worth hearing about it, and I cannot help hoping that what I say may be listened to by some of those who know that I shrink from no lengths in physical science I * " Sermons on the Pentateuch." Macmillan. 344 Charles Kingsley. arn sure that science and the creeds will shake hands at last, if only people will leave both alone, and I pray that by God's grace per- chance I may help them to do so. '* My only fear is that people will fancy me a verbal inspiration- monger, which, as you know, I am not ; and that I shall, in due time, suffer the fate of most who see both sides, and be considered by both a hypocrite and a traitor." .... TO REV. F. D. MAURICE. September 18, 1863. " I am very anxious to know what you think of Stanley's ' Lectures on the Jewish Church.' I have read them with the greatest pleasure and comfort, and look on the book as the best antidote to Colenso which I have yet seen, because it fights him on his own ground, and yet ignores him and his negative form of thought. " I think the book will give comfort to thousands, and make them take up their Bibles once more with heart and hope. I do trust that you feel as I do about it I have been so ' run about ' with parish work and confirmation work, that I have neglected to tell you how deeply I feel your approval of my ser- mons. I do hope and trust that they may do a little good. I find that the Aldershot and Sandhurst mustachios come to hear these discourses of mine every Sunday and my heart goes out to them in great yearnings. Dear fellows when I see them in the pews, and the smock frocks in the open seats, I feel as if I was not quite useless in the. world, and that I was beginning to fulfil the one idea of my life, to tell Esau that he has a birthright as well as Jacob. I do feel very deeply the truth which John Mill has set forth in a one- sided way in his new book on Liberty pp. 88-90, I think, about the past morality of Christendom having taken a somewhat abject tone, and requiring, as a complement, the old Pagan virtues, which our forefathers learnt from Plutarch's Lives, and of which the memory still lingers in our classical education. I do not believe, of course, that the want really exists ; but that it has been created, principally by the celibate misanthropy of the patristic and mediae- val church. But I have to preach the divineness of the whole manhood, and am content to be called a Muscular Christian, or any other impertinent name, by men who little dream of the weak- ness of character, sickness of. body, and misery of mind, by which I have bought what little I know of the. human heart. However, there is no good in talking about oneself. " I am so obliged to you for your kindness to our Maurice. I hope you were satisfied with your godson. He is a very good boy, and makes us very happy." The Waterbabies. 345 The " Waterbabies " came out this year, dedicated " To my youngest son, Grenville Arthur, and to all other good little boys : " " Come read me my riddle, each good little man, If you cannot read it, no grown up folk can." The " 1'envoi," in the first edition, was suppressed in the second, lest it should be misunderstood and give needless offence : " Hence unbelieving Sadducees, And less believing Pharisees, With dull conventionalities ; And leave a country muse at ease To play at leap-frog, if she please, With children and realities." Perhaps it was the last book, except his West Indian one, " At Last," that he wrote with any real ease, and which was purely a labor of love, for his brain was getting fatigued, his health fluc- tuated, and the work of the Professorship, which was a constant weight on his mind, wore him sadly. CHAPTER XXIII. 1864-5. AGED 45, 46. Illness Controversy with Dr. Newman Apologia Journey to the South of France Biarritz Pau An Earthquake Narbonne Sermons in London and at Windsor Enclosure of Eversley Common University Sermons at Cambridge Mr. John Stuart Mill's London Committee Letter on the Trinity Letter on Subscription Luther and Demonology Visit of Queen Emma of the Sandwich Islands to Eversley Rectory and Wellington College The Mammoth on Ivory Death of King Leopold Lines written at Windsor Castle. THE severe illness and great physical depression with which this year began were a bad preparation for the storm of controversy which burst upon Mr. Kingsley, and which eventually produced Dr. Newman's famous " Apologia pro vita sua." That controversy is befort the world, and no allusion would be made to it in these pages, bait from the fear that silence might be misconstrued into a tacit acknowledgment of defeat on the main question. This fact, however, may be mentioned, that information conveyed to Mr. Kingsley that Dr. Newman was in bad health, depressed, and averse from polemical discussion, coupled with Dr. Newman's own words in the early part of the correspondence, in which he seemed to deprecate controversy, appealed irresistibly to Mr. Kingsley's consideration, and put him to a great disadvantage in the issue. Still throughout there were many who held with him among them some personal friends in the Roman Catholic Church. Many private letters, too, of generous 'sympathy from strangers came to cheer him on some from laymen some from clergymen some even from workingmen, who having come in contact with the teach- ing of Roman Catholic priests, knew the truth of Mr. Kingsley's statements. Last but not least, a pamphlet was published by the Rev. Frederick Meyrick, entitled, " But is not Kingsley right after all ?" This pamphlet was never answered. For the right understanding of this controversy, it cannot be too Going to Spain with Mr. Froude. 347 strongly insisted upon, that it was for truth and truth only that Mr. Kingsley craved and had fought. The main point at issue was not the personal integrity of Dr. Newman, but the question whether the Roman Catholic priesthood are encouraged or discouraged to pursue "Truth for its own sake." While no one more fully ac- knowledged the genius and power of his opponent than Mr. Kings- ley himself, or was more ready to confess that he had " crossed swords with one who was too strong for him," yet he always felt that the general position which he had taken up against the policy of the Roman Catholic Church, remained unshaken. "It was his righteous indignation," says Dean Stanley, "against what seemed to him the glorification of a tortuous and ambiguous policy, which betrayed him into the only personal controversy in which he was ever entangled, and in which, matched in unequal conflict with the most subtle and dexterous controversialist of modern times, it is not surprising that for the moment he was apparently worsted, whatever we may think of the ultimate issues that were raised in the struggle, and whatever may be the total results of our experiences, before and after, on the main question over which the combat was fought on the relation of the human conscience to truth or to authority." For more than a year past Mr. Kingsley had been suffering from chronic illness increased by overwork of brain, and a thorough rest and change of air had long been seriously urged upon him by his kind friend, Sir James Clarke. At this moment, Mr. Froude, who was going to Spain to look over MSS. in connection with his Historical work, invited him to go with him, to which he answers : " This is too delightful. I had meant to offer myself to you, but my courage failed ; but when you propose what can I do but ac- cept ? . . . I am ready, for my part, not only to go to Mad- rid, but on by mail to Alicant, and then by steamer to Gibraltar, via Carthagena and Malaga, coming home by sea. I have always felt that one good sea voyage would add ten years to my life. All my friends say, go, but I must not be the least burden to you. Remember that I can amuse myself in any hedge, with plants and insects and a cigar, and that you may leave me anywhere, any long, certain that I shall be busy and happy. I cannot say how the thought of going has put fresh life into me." On the 23rd of March he started with Mr. Froude for Spain, but being ill at Biarritz he did not go over the border. It was his first 348 Charles Kingsley. visit to France, of which his impressions are given in his letters to his wife and children. PARIS, Sunday, March 25, 3 P.M. " We went this morning to the Madeleine, where a grand cere- mony was going on, consisting of a high priest brushing people with a handkerchief, as far as I could see. Next, to Notre Dame, where old women were adoring the Sacrament in a ' tombeau ' dressed up with cloth and darkness, two argand burners throwing light on it above, and over it a fold of white drapery exactly in the form of the sacrificial vitta on the Greek vases, from which it is probably unconsciously derived. For the rest, they are all as busy and gay to-day as on any other. We met John Lubbock in the street going off to examine the new bone-caves in Dordogne. . . ." BIARRITZ, April, 1864. " The Basques speak a lingo utterly different from all European languages, which has no analogue, and must have come from a dif- ferent stock from our ancestors. The women are very pretty brown, aquiline, with low foreheads, and have a quaint fashion of doing up their back hair in a gaudy silk handkerchief, which is cunningly twisted till one great triangular tail stands out stiff behind the left ear. This is a great art. The old ones tie their whole heads up in the handkerchief and look very pretty, but browner than apes from wearing no bonnets. " 1 am quite in love with these Frenchmen. They are so charm- ingly civil and agreeable. You can talk to any and all classes as equals. But, alas ! I have fallen among English at the table d'hote. . . . " . . . After breakfast we generally lounge the rocks till one. 1 have found some gigantic skate purses, which must belong to a ray twenty feet broad ; then luncheon ; then lounge again, sitting about on benches and rocks, watching the grey lizards ( I haven't seen any green ones yet), and smoking penny Government cigars, which are very good ; then table d'hote at six Yester- day we hired a carriage and went to the bar of the Adour, and saw the place where Hope carried the Guards across and made a bridge of boats in the face of 15,000 French. When one sees such things and I shall see more who dare sneer at ' old Peninsular offi- cers?' To-day I was looking through the glass at the Rhune mountain, which Soult entrenched from top to bottom, and Well- ington stormed, yard by yard, with 20,000 men, before he could cross the Bidassoa ; and to have taken that mountain seemed a deed of old giants. Behind it were peaks of everlasting snow, gleaming white in the glorious suji, and beneath it the shore of St. Sebastian and Fontarabia, and then the Spanish hills, fading away to the right into infinite space along the Biscayan shore, i shall To his Youngest Boy. 349 go and sit there the whole afternoon. We drove through Landes yesterday, too, and saw the pine trees hacked for turpentine, and a little pot hung to each, with clear turpentine running in, and in the tops of the young trees great social nests of the pitzocampo moth-caterpillar, of which I have got some silk, but dared not open the nest, for their hairs are deadly poison, as the old Romans knew. TO HIS YOUNGEST BOY. PAU. " MY DEAR LITTLE MAN, " I was quite delighted to get a letter from you so nicely written. Yesterday I went by the railway to a most beautiful place, where I am staying now. A town with an old castle, hun- dreds of years old, where the great King Henry IV. of France was born, and his cradle is there still, made of a huge tortoiseshell. Underneath the castle are beautiful walks and woods all green, as if it was summer, and roses and flowers, and birds, singing but different from our English birds. But it is quite summer here be- cause it is so far south. Under the castle, by the river, are frogs that make a noise like a rattle, and frogs that bark like toy-dogs, and frogs that climb up trees, and even up the window-panes they have suckers on their feet, and are quite green like a leaf. Far away, before the castle, are the great mountains, ten thousand feet high, covered with snow, and the clouds crawling about their tops. 1 am going to see them to-morrow, and when 1 come back I will tell you. But I have been out to-night, and all the frogs are croaking still, and making a horrid noise. Mind and be a good boy and give Baba my love. Tell George I am coming back with a great beard and shall frighten him out of his wits. There is a vulture here in the inn, but he is a little Egyptian vulture, not like the great vulture I saw at Bayonne. Ask mother to show you his picture in the beginning of the bird book. He is called Neophra Egyptiacus, and is an ugly fellow, who eats dead horses and sheep. There is his picture. " Your own Daddy, " C. KlNGSLEY." " I have taken quite a new turn, and my nerve and strength have come back, from three days in the Pyrenees. What I have seen I cannot tell you. Things unspeakable and full of glory. Mountains whose herbage is box, for miles and thousands of feet, then enormous silver firs and beech, up to the eternal snow. We went up to Eaux-Chaudes a gigantic Lynmouth, with rivers break- ing out of limestone caverns hundreds of feet over our heads. There we were told that we must take horses and guides up to the Plateau of Bioux Artigues, to see the Pic du Midi, which we had been seeing for twenty-eight miles. We wouldn't, and drove up to 350 Charles Kings ley. Gabas to lounge. Cane and I found the mountain air so jolly that we lounged on for an hour luckily up the right valley, and behold, after rochers moutonnes, and moraines, showing the enor- mous glaciers which are extinct, we came to a down, which we knew by inspiration was the Plateau. We had had a good deal of snow going up, but a good road cut through it for timber carts. We climbed three hundred feet of easy down, and there it was right in front, nine thousand feet high, with the winter snow at the base the eternal snow holding on by claws and teeth where it could above. I could have looked for hours. I could not speak. I cannot understand it yet. Right and left were other eternal snow-peaks ; but very horrible. Great white sheets with black points mingling with the clouds, of a dreariness to haunt one's dreams. ' I don't like snow mountains. " The Pic above is jolly, and sunlit and honest. The flowers were not all out only in every meadow below gentiana verna, of the most heavenly azure, and huge oxslips : but I have got some beautiful things a primrose, or auricula, among others. To-day we saw Eaux-Bonnes the rival place, which the Empress is bedizening with roads and fancy trees and streets at an enormous cost : two great eternal snow-peaks there, but not so striking. Butterflies glorious, even now. The common one, the great Camberwell beauty (almost extinct in England), a huge black butterfly with white edge ; we couldn't catch one. The day before yesterday, at Eaux- Chaudes, two bears were fired at, and a wolf seen. With every flock of sheep and girls are one or two enormous mastiffs, which could eat one, and do bark nastily. But when the children call them and introduce them to you formally, they stand to be patted, and eat out of your hand ; they are great darlings, and necessary against bear and wolf. So we did everything without the least mishap nay, with glory for the folk were astonished at our get- ting to the Plateau on our own hook. The Mossoos can't walk, you see, and think it an awful thing. A Wellington College boy would trot there in three-quarters of an hour. Last night, pour comble, we (or rather I) did something extra a dear little sucking earthquake, went off crash bang, just under my bed. I thought something had fallen in the room below, though I wondered why it hove my bed right up. Got out of bed, hearing a woman scream, and hearing no more, guessed it, and went to bed. It shook the whole house and village ; but no one minded. They said they had lots of young earthquakes there, but they went off before they had time to grow. Lucky for the place. It was a very queer sensation, and made a most awful noise." NARBONNE. "We were yesterday at Carcassonne, a fortified place, where walls were built by Roman, Visigoth, Mussulman, Romane (i.e. Carcassonne and Nismes. 351 Albigense) and then by French kings. Such a remnant of the old times as I have dreamed of now being all restored by M. Viollet- le-Duc, at the expense of Government with its wonderful church of St. Nazaire, where Roman Corinthian capitals are used by the romance people 9-10 century. We went down into real dun- geons of the Inquisition, and saw real chains and torture rings, and breathed more freely when we came up into the air, and the guide pointed to the Pyrenees and said ' // n'y a point de demons id: 11 1 shall never forget that place. Narbonne is very curious, once the old Roman capital, then the Albigense. Towers, Ca- thedral, Archbishop's palace all wonderful. Whole quarries of Roman remains. The walls, built by Francis I., who demolished the old Roman and Gothic walls, are a museum of antiquities in themselves. If you want to have a souvenir of Narbonne, read in my lectures Sidonius's account of Theodoric the Visigoth (not Dietrich the Amal) and his court here. His palace is long gone. It probably stood where the Archbishop's palace does now oppo- site my window . . . ." NISMES. " . . . . But what a country they have made of it, these brave French ! For one hundred miles yesterday, what had been poor limestone plain was a garden. A scrap or two I saw of the original vegetation a donkey would have starved on. But they have cleared it all off for ages, ever since the Roman times, and it is one sea of vines, with olive, fig, and mulberry planted among them. Where there is a hill it is exactly like the photographs of the Holy Land and Nazareth limestone walls with nothing but vineyards and grey olives planted in them, and raised stone paths about them. The only green thing for the soil is red, and the vines are only sprouting is here and there a field of the Roman plant, lucerne, as high as one's knee already. I came by Beziers, where the Inquisitor cried. ' Kill them all, God will know his own,' and they shut them into the Madelaine and killed them all Catholics as well as Albigenses, till there was not a soul alive in Beziers, and the bones are there to this day. " But this land is beautiful as they say, ' Si Dieu venait encore stir la terrc, il vicndrait dcmeurcr a Beziers, 1 and, indeed it is just like, as I have said, the Holy Land. Then we came to immense flats still in vine and olive, and then tw sand hills, and then upon the tideless shore broke the blue Mediterranean, with the long lateen sails, as in pictures. It was a wonderful feeling to a scholar to see the 'schoolboy's sea' for the first time, and so perfectly, in a glory of sunshine and blue ripple. We ran literally through it for miles between Agde and Cette tall asphodel growing on the sand hills, and great white iris and vines " 352 Charles Kings ley. " My first impression of the Pont du Gard was one of simple fear. ' It was so high that it was dreadful,' as Ezekiel says. Then I said, again and again, ' A great people and a strong. There hath been none like before them, nor shall be again, for many generations.' As, after fifteen miles of the sea of mulberry, olive, and vine, dreary from its very artificial perfection, we turned the corner of the limestone glen, and over the deep blue rock- pool, saw that thing, hanging between earth and heaven, the blue sky and green woods showing through its bright yellow arches, and all to carry a cubic yard of water to Nismes, twenty miles off, for public baths and sham sea-fights (' nau-maeJicas') in the amphi- theatre, which even Charlemagne, when he burnt the Moors out of it, could not destroy. Then I felt the brute greatness of that Ro- man people ; and an awe fell upon me as it may have fallen on poor Croc, the Rook, king of the Alemans but that is a long story, when he came down and tried to destroy this city of the seven hills, and ended in being shown about in an iron cage as The Rook. But I doubt not when he and his wild Alemans came down to the Pont du Gard they said it was the work of dwarfs of the devil ? We walked up to the top, through groves of Ilex, Smilax, and Coronella (the first time I have seen it growing), and then we walked across on the top. A false step, and one was a hundred feet down, but that is not my line. Still, if any one is giddy, he had better not try it. The masonry is wonderful, and instead of employing the mountain limestone of the hills, they have brought the most splen- did Bath oolite from the hills opposite. There are the marks cut by the old fellows horse-hoofs, hatchets, initials, &c., as fresh as paint. The Emperor has had it all repaired from the same quarries, stone for stone. Now, after 1600 years, they are going to bring the same water into Nismes by it " "I stopped at Nismes, and begin again at Avignon. We saw- to-day the most wonderful Roman remains. I have brought back a little book of photographs. But the remarkable thing was the Roman ladies' baths in a fountain bursting up out of the rock, where, under colonnades, they walked about, in or out of the water as they chose. All is standing, and could be used to-morrow, if the prudery of the priests allowed it. Honor to those Romans with all their sins, they were the cleanest people the world has ever seen. But to tell you all I saw at Nismes would take a book. Perhaps it will make one some day Good-bye. I shall write again to-morrow from this, the most wonderful place I have yet seen." AVIGNON, Sunday. "We are still here under the shadow of that terrible fortress which the Holy Fathers of mankind erected to show men their idea of paternity. A dreadful dungeon on a rock. The vastest pile of To his Youngest Daughter. 353 stone I ever saw. Men asked for bread, and they gave a stone, most literally. Z have seen La Tour de la Glaciere, famous for its horrors of 1 793, but did not care to enter. The sight here are the walls very nearly perfect, and being all restored by Viollet-le-Duc, under government " TO HIS YOUNGEST DAUGHTER. BIARRITZ. " MY DARLING MARY, " I am going to write you a long letter about all sorts of things. And first, this place is full of the prettiest children I ever saw, very like English, but with dark hair and eyes, and none of them look poor or ragged ; but so nicely dressed, with striped stockings, which they knit themselves, and Basque shoes, made of canvas, worked with red and purple worsted. There is a little girl here six years old, a chemist's daughter, who knits all her own woollen stockings. Mrs. *.* * * has given her Mademoiselle Lili, and she has learnt it all by heart, and we have great fun making her say it. All the children go to a school kept by nuns ; and I am sure the poor nuns are very kind to them, for they laugh and romp it seems to me all day long. In summer most of them wear no shoes or stockings, for they do not want them ; but in winter they are wrapped up warm ; and I have not seen one ragged child or tramp, or any one who looks miserable. They never wear any bonnets. The little babies wear a white cap, and the children a woollen cap with pretty colors, and the girls a smart handkerchief on their back hair, and the boys and men wear blue and scarlet caps like Scotchmen, just the shape of mushrooms, and a red sash. "The oxen here are quite yellow, and so gentle and wise, the men make them do exactly what they like. I will draw you an ox cart when I come home. 'The banks here are covered with enor- mous canes, as high as the eaves of our house. They tie one of these to a fir pole, and make a huge long rod, and then go and sit on the rocks and fish for doradas, which are fish with gilt heads. There is an old gentleman in a scarlet blouse and blue mushroom just gone down to fish and I am going to look at him. There are the most lovely sweet smelling purple pinks on the rocks here, and the woods are full of asphodel, great lilies, four feet high, with white and purple flowers. I saw the wood yesterday where the dreadful fight was between the French and English and over the place where all the brave men lay buried grew one great flower-bed of asphodel. So they ' slept in the meads of asphodel,' like the old Greek heroes in Homer. There were great ' lords and ladies,' (arums) there, growing in the bank, twice as big as ours, and not red, but white and primrose most beautiful. But you cannot think how beautiful the commons are, they are like flower gardens, golden with furze, and white with potentilla, and crimson with 23 354 Charles Kingsley. sweet smelling Daphne, and blue with the most wonderful blue flower which grows everywhere. I have dried them all. " Tell your darling mother I am quite well, and will write to her to-morrow. Tell her I met last night at dinner a Comtesse de M. (nee D ), the most charming old Scotch Frenchwoman, with snow- white powdered hair, and I drew her portrait for her. There, that is all I have to say. Tell Grenville they have made a tunnel under the battle-field, for the railroad to go into Spain, and that on the top of the tunnel there is a shaft, and a huge wheel, to pump air into the tunnel, and that I will bring him home a scarlet Basque cap, and you and Rose Basque shoes .... " YOUR OWN DADDY." He now returned to work and letters, and writes to Mr. Maurice EVERSLEY, Friday. " I have just read your letter to the Bishop of London. You have struck at the root of the matter in every page. For me, I am startled by hearing a man talk of the eternity of hell-fire, who be- lieves the Athanasian Creed, that there is but one Eternal. If so, then this fire is the fire of God yea, is God himself, whom the Scriptures formally identify with that fire. But if so, it must be a fire of purification, not of mere useless torment ; it must be a spiritual and not a physical fire, and its eternity must be a good, a blessed, an ever useful one ; and amenable to the laws which God has revealed concerning the rest of his attributes, and especially to the great law 'when the wicked man turneth he shall save his soul alive.' This eternal law no metaphors of fire and brimstone can abrogate. But I have much more to say on all this ; only I am not well enough to formalise it ; so I must content myself, as I have for some time past, with preaching Him whom you bid me preach, sure that if I can show people His light, that of itself will dissipate their darkness. " I am come back (from France) better, but not well, and un- able to take any mental exertion." Before going abroad he had given a lecture at Aldershot Camp on the " Study of History," and preached at Whitehall for the Con- sumptive Hospital, and on his return had preached one of his finest Eversley sermons, " Ezekiel's Vision," before the Queen at Wind- sor Castle, and a remarkable one on " the Wages of Sin is Death," at the Chapel Royal, St. James's. Those who accused him of preaching a "soft" gospel and an "indulgent" God, would have believed otherwise if they had been present and had heard his University Sermons on David. 355 burning words, and watched the fiery earnestness with which then and always he addressed a London congregation. This year the proposal for the enclosure of Eversley Common land was decided on, and was a real distress to him. He regretted it not only from a mere aesthetic point of view, feeling that if it were carried out the characteristic beauty of the parish he loved so well would be gone : but for the sake of the poor man who kept his geese and cut his turf at his own will ; the loss too of the cricket ground where the men and boys had played for years, vexed him. " Eversley will no longer be the same Eversley to me." It was a wound to his heart which never healed. He was busy in the autumn preparing his university sermons on David, having been selected as one of the preachers at Cambridge for 1865, and in a letter to Mr. Maurice he speaks of his work : " I have read with delight your words in ' Macmillan ' on the Pope's letter. I am sure that you are right, and that the most im- portant lesson to be drawn from it is the one which you point out. It is that longing for unity which he has outraged the aspiration which is working, I verily believe, in all thinking hearts, which one thrusts away fiercely at times as impossible and a phantom, and finds one- self at once so much meaner, more worldly, more careless of every- thing worth having, that one has to go back again to the old dream. " But what I feel you have taught me, and which is invaluable to me in writing these University sermons, from which God send me good deliverance, is, that we need not make the unity from doctrines or systems, but preach the fact that the unity is made by and in the perpetual government of the Living Christ. " And I do see, that the medieval clergy preached that, con- fusedly of course, but with a clearness and strength to which neither we nor the modern Papists have attained. They preach their own kingdom, we a scheme of salvation. From both I take refuge more and more where you have taught me to go- -to the plain words of Scripture, as interpreting the facts about me. " Wish me well through these sermons. They lie heavy on my sinful soul." When the Christmas vacation was over he went up to Cambridge to give these sermons. St. Mary's was crowded with undergradu- ates long before the services began, and he felt the responsibility a heavy one. The subject chosen was " David," and the series was published under that title. 356 Charles Kings ley. The letters of 1865 that have been recovered are few. He was so broken in strength, that to get through the duties of his professor- ship and his parish was as much, nay, more than he could manage, and in the summer he was forced to leave home with his family for three months' rest, and settle quietly on the coast of Norfolk. TO TOM HUGHES, ESQ. EVERSLEY, May 2\, 1865. " I have delayed writing to you. First, I have had a tragedy on hand ; next, I wanted to tell you the end of it. Henry Erskine, as you I suppose know, is dead at the age of forty-nine. We buried him to-day ; the father hardly cold in the ground. His death is to me a great sorrow a gap in my life which I feel and cannot fill. A nobler, honester, kindlier man never lived, or one more regretted by men of all kinds who knew his private worth. Such a death as his draws one closer to the men of our own age whom one has still left, and among others to you. " I. am delighted to see you on Mill's committee at Maurice's side. You have done a good deal of good work, but never better than that. I wish I were a Westminster elector for the time, that I might work for him and with you. I am much struck with his committee-list in to-day's 'Times,' so many men of different opinions and classes, whom one knew and valued for different things, finding a common cause in Mill, R C , and Holyoake, side by side. I do hope you will succeed. I am just writing to Mill at Avignon anent this noble book of his on Sir W. Hamilton, and shall tell him of many things which ought to please him. I answered your good friend as kindly as I could, but as I have had to answer dozens that the doctors forbid my preaching. I gave my necessary White- hall sermon to the Consumptive Hospital as to an old and dear friend ; but I have refused all others. I am getting better after fifteen months of illness, and I hope to be of some use again some day ; a sadder and a wiser man, the former, at least, I grow every year. I catch a trout now and then out of my ponds (I am too weak for a day's fishing, and the doctors have absolutely forbidden me my salmon). I have had one or two this year, of three and two pounds, and a brace to-day, near one pound each, so I am not left troutless " TO REV. F. D. MAURICE. " Youi letter comforted me, for (strange as it may seem for me to say so) the only thing I really care for the only thing which gives me comfort is theology, in the strict sense ; though God The Doctrine of the Trinity. 357 knows I know little enough about it. I wish one thing that you would define for me what you mean by being ' baptised into a name.' The preposition in its transcendental sense puzzles me, and others likewise. I sometimes seem to grasp it, and sometimes again lose it, from the very unrealistic turn of mind which 1 have in common with this generation. I want your definition (or translation of the formula into words of this generation) that I may tell them some- what as to what you mean. " As to the Trinity I do understand you. You first taught me that the doctrine was a live thing, and not a mere formula to be swallowed by the undigesting reason, and from the time that I learnt from you that a Father meant a real Father, a Son a real Son, and a Holy Spirit a real Spirit, who was really good and holy, I have been able to draw all sorts of practical lessons from it in the pulpit, and ground all my morality, and a great deal of my natural philoso- phy upon it, and shall do so more. The procession of the Spirit from the Father and the Son, for instance, is most practically im- portant to me. If the Spirit proceeds only from the Father, the whole theorem of the Trinity, as well as its practical results, fall to pieces to my mind. I don't mean that good men in the Greek Church are not better than I. On the contrary, I believe that every good man therein believes in the procession from both Father and Son, whether he thinks that he does or not. But in this case, as in others, one has extreme difficulty in remembering, and still more in making others understand, that a man may believe the facts which the doctrine connotes without believing the doctrine, just as he may believe that a horse is a horse, for every practical purpose, though he may have been mistaught to call it a cow. It is this slavery to formulae this mistaking of words for conceptions, and then again of conceptions for the facts, which seems our present curse ; and how much of it do we not owe to the Calvinists, who laid again on our necks the yoke of conceptions which we were bursting at the Reformation, because neither we nor our fathers could bear it. It was this which made me reject Mansell and Hamilton's 'The Absolute' and 'The Infinite,' and say, 'If these "men's arguments are good for anything, they prove that either i. God is not The Absolute and The Infinite, as they assert He is ; or, 2. That there is no God.' What they are meant to prove really being, that we cannot conceive what we cannot conceive, which is not new, though true ; and also in Mansell' s, case, that though we cannot conceive an ^///conditional God, we can easily enough con- ceive an ///-conditioned one, which, again, though true, is not new. It was therefore with great comfort that I found Mill, in his chap- ter iv., take exactly the same line against those words ; only, of course, with infinitely more force and clearness. " I am taking a regular course of metaphysic, and so forth, as a tonic after the long debauchery of fiction-writing. I say to you, 3 58 Charles Kings ley. once for all, Have patience with me, and 1 will pay thee not all, but a little, and I know you will not take me by the throat. If you did, you would break my heart ; which could be much more easily broken than people think. If a man is intensely in earnest after truth, be it what it may, and also intensely disgusted with his own laziness, worldliness, and sensuality, his heart is not difficult to break. " Poor Spring Rice ! * That was a noble gentleman, and had he had health, might have been a noble statesman. I never met a more single eye. ' Look to the single eye in others,' he once said to me, ' I judge of every man by the first question I ask him. Has he an arriere pen see or not ? Does he answer what he knows, simply, or what he " thinks will do ? " If the former, he is my friend henceforth ; if the latter, he is nothing to me.' " I don't quite understand one point in your letter. You say, 'The Articles were not intended to bind men's thoughts or con- sciences ! ' Now, I can't help feeling that when they assert a proposition, e.g., the Trinity, they assert that that and nothing else on that matter is true, and so bind thought ; and that they require me to swear that I believe it so, and so bind my con- science. " In the case where they condemn an error, it seems to me quite different. There they proscribe one form of thought, and leave all others open by implication, binding neither thought nor conscience. Thus the Tract XC. argument was quite fair if its author could have used it fairly. The Romish doctrine of Purgatory is false ; but denying that does not forbid me to believe other doctrines of Purgatory to be true, and to speculate freely on the future state. So that what you say applies clearly (to me) to the cases in which the Articles deny. It applies also to all cases in which the Articles do not affirm, e.g., endless torture. "Also to all in which it uses words without defining them, e.g., the Article on Predestination, which I sign in what I conceive to be the literal sense not only of it, but of the corresponding passage in St. Paul, without believing one word of the Calvinistic theory, or that St. Paul was speaking of the future state at all. " But how does your theorem apply where the Articles not only assert, but define ? That I want to understand. " For myself, I can sign the Articles in their literal sense toto corde, and subscription is no bondage to me, and so I am sure can you. But all I demand is, that, in signing the Articles, I shall be understood to sign them and nothing more ; that I do not sign any- thing beyond the words, and demand the right to put my construc- tion on the words, answerable only to God and my conscience, and refusing to accept any sense of the words, however popular * The late Right Honoiable Stephen Spring Rice. Subscription to the Articles. 359 and venerable, unless I choose. In practice, Gorham and Pusey both do this, and nothing else, whenever it suits them. I demand that I shall have, just the same liberty as they, and no more. " But the world at large uses a very powerful, though worthless, argument. Lord **** answered, when I asked him why the Articles had not denned inspiration. ' Because they never expected that men would arise heretics enough to deny it ! ' I had to reply and I think convinced him that that line of thought would de- stroy all worth in formula, by making signing mean, ' I sign the XXXIX. Articles, and as many more as the Church has forgotten to, or may have need to, put in.' " But the mob, whose superstitions are the very cosmogony of their creed, would think that argument conclusive, and say, of course, you are expected to believe, over and above, such things as endless torture, verbal dictation, &c., which are more of the es- sence of Christianity than the creeds themselves, or the Being of a God. " Meanwhile, each would make a reservation the ' Evangelical ' of the Calvinist School would say in his heart and of course (though I daren't say so) every man is expected to believe conver- sion, even though not mentioned ; and the Romanist, of course every man must believe in the Pope, though not mentioned ; and the reigning superstition, not the formulae actually signed, becomes the test of faith. " But how we are to better this by doing away with subscription, I don't see yet. " As long as the Articles stand, and as long as they are in- terpreted by lawyers only, who will ask sternly, ' Is it in the bond ? ' and nothing else, I see hope for freedom and safety. If subscription was done away, every man would either teach what was right in his own eyes which would be somewhat confus- ing or he would have to be controlled by a body, not of written words, but of thinking men. From whom may my Lord deliver me ! " For as soon as any body of men, however venerable, have the power given them to dictate to me what I shall think and preach, I shall answer my compact with the Church of England is over. I swore to the Articles, and not to you. I have preached my last sermon for you There is my living, give it to whom you will ; I wipe off the dust of my feet against you, and go free. " And therefore I do not care for the * * * * and ** ** trying to make the Articles a tyranny, by making them talk popular super- stition, because I have faith sufficient in the honesty and dialectic of an English lay lawyer to protect me against their devices ; and, for the sake of freedom, cannot cast in my lot with * * * *, dearly as I love him. 360 Charles Kings ley. " Now, do tell me whether this seems to you sense or non- sense. . . ." That his mind was deeply exercised at times, the following ex- tract in a letter to Mr. Maurice shows : " I feel a capacity of drifting to sea in me which makes me cling nervously to any little anchor, like subscription. I feel glad of aught that says to me, ' You must teach this and nothing else ; you must not run riot in your own dreams !'...." This may be a comfort to troubled souls when they remember the calm assured faith with which he faced life and death, and when standing on the very threshold of the next world, was heard repeat- ing again and again, " It is all right all under rule." Perhaps his dearly loved George Fox's words best express the habitual attitude of his heart and mind for thirty years. " And I saw that there was an Ocean of Darkness and Death : but an infinite Ocean of Light and Love flowed over the Ocean of Darkness : and in that I saw the infinite Love of God." (George Fox's Journal.} TO REV. F. D. MAURICE. EVERSLEY, Saturday. " Many thanks for your letter. I am very sorry I differ from you about Savonarola. It seems to me that his protest for the kingdom of God and against sin was little worth, and came to nought, just because it was from the merely negative inhuman monks' stand- point of the i3th century ; that he would at best have got the world back to St. Bernard's time, to begin all over again, and end just where Savonarola had found them. Centuries of teaching such as his had ended in leaving Italy a hell on earth ; new medicine was needed, which no monk could give. A similar case, it seems to me, is that of the poor Port-royalists. They tried to habilitate the monk- ideal of righteousness. They were civilized off the face of the earth, as was poor Savonarola, by men worse than themselves, but more humane, with wider (though shallower) notions of what man and the universe meant. "As for Luther, I am very sorry to seem disrespectful to him, but the outcome of his demonology was, that many a poor woman died in shame and torture in Protestant Germany, just because Luther had given his sanction to the old lie, and he needs excusing solely for that. I do not undervalue his protest against man's true and real spiritual enemies. I excuse his protest against certain Queen Emma at Eversley. 361 fancied enemies, which were not spiritual at all, but carnal, phan- toms of the brain, and suffered to do carnal and material harm. Ever since the 4th century had this carnal counterfeit of the true dernonology been interweaving itself with Christianity. It had cost the lives of thousands. It is so horrible a matter that I (who have studied it largely) cannot speak of it calmly, and do not wish to. And of its effects on physical science I say nothing here, disas- trously retarding as it has been, and therefore costing thousands of lives more, and preventing the sick from being properly treated, or sanitary precautions taken. But of this more when I have the very great pleasure of becoming your guest." In the autumn Queen Emma of the Sandwich Islands came on a visit of two days to Eversley Rectory. King Kamehameha, her husband, had read Mr. Kingsley's books and she was anxious to know him. She also wished to combine with her visit to Eversley one to the Wellington College, of which she had heard much, and where it was said if her little son had lived, he would have been sent for his education. It was a great pleasure to Mr. Kingsley to take Queen Emma to the college, and to point out to her all the arrangements made by the wise and good Prince, of whom she had heard so much, to make it a first-rate modern school, and which were so admirably carried out by the Head Master. Dr. Benson took her all over it, and into its beautiful chapel and museum. After seeing the boys at dinner in hall, and tasting their pudding at the high table, she asked for a half-holiday for them, upon which Ponsonby, then head of the school, called for three cheers for Queen Emma ; and as they resounded through the dining hall at the granting of her request, she was startled almost to terror, for it was the first time in her life that she had heard the cheers of English public school boys. She went on the playground, and for the first time saw a game of cricket, examined the bats, balls, wickets, and pads, looking into everything with her own peculiar intelligence. After dinner at Eversley Rectory, she drove over again to Welling- ton to be present at the evening choral service in chapel, fol- lowed the musical notes of each hymn and chant, and was struck, as every one was, by the reverent behavior of the boys. In driving back to the Rectory that night, she said, " It is so strange to me to be staying with you and to see Mr. Kingsley. My husband read your husband's ' Waterbabies ' to our little Prince." Queen Emma wrote soon after an autograph letter to Dr. Benson, which was 362 Charles Kings ley. read aloud to the boys, expressing her deep gratification with her visit to Wellington College. At the same time she wrote to Mr. Kingsley : November 3, 1865. " I have the pleasure to fulfil my promise of sending you a Book of Common Prayer in Hawaiian, together with a preface written by the Translator of the former, Kamehameha IV., my late husband, and king of our islands, and a portrait of myself which will, I hope, sometimes remind you of one who has learnt to esteem you and Mrs. Kingsley, as friends in whose welfare and happiness she will always feel the greatest interest. Please remember me kindly to your daughters, "And believe me to be, . " My dear Mr. Kingsley, " Yours very truly, " EMMA." On the pth of November, he went, by royal command, to stay at Windsor Castle, and on the following day, while preaching before the Court, a telegram came to the Queen to announce the death of Leopold, King of the Belgians. Mr. Kingsley had been asked to write a few lines in the album of the Crown Princess of Prussia, and with his mind full of this great European event, wrote the fol- lowing Impromptu, which is inserted here by the kind permission of her Imperial Highness : November 10, 1865. " A king is dead ! Another master mind Is summoned from the world-wide council-hall Ah for some seer, to say what lurks behind To read the mystic writing on the wall ! " Be still, fond man : nor ask thy fate to know. Face bravely what each God-sent moment brings. Above thee rules in love, through weal and woe, Guiding thy kings and thee, the King of kings. "C. KINGSLEY." CHAPTER XXIV. 18661867. AGED 47 48. Cambridge Death of Dr. Whewell The American Professorship Monotonous Life of the Country Laboring Class Penny Readings Strange Correspond- ents Life oi Bewick Letters to Max Miiller The Jews in Cornwall The Meteor Shower Letter to Professor Adams^The House of Lords A Father's Education of his Son " Eraser's Magazine" Bird Life, Wood Wrens Names and Places Darwinism Beauty of Color, its Influence and Attrac- tionsFlat-Fish Ice Problems St. Andrews and British Association Aber- geldie Castle Rules for Stammerers. WHILE the Professor was giving his usual course of lectures in the Lent term of 1866 at Cambridge, a great blow fell upon the University in the death of Dr. Whewell, Master of Trinity, and he writes home : " I am sorry to say Whewell is beaten by his terrible foe. It is only a question of hours now. The feeling here is deep and solemn. Men say he was the leader in progress and reform, when such were a persecuted minority. He was the regenerator of Trinity ; he is connected with every step forward that the University has made for years past. " Yes. He was a very great man : and men here feel the awful suddenness of it. He never was better or pleasanter than on the Thursday, when I dined there, and he was asking me for my ' dear wife.' His manner with women was always charming. He was very kind to me, and I was very fond of him. " Whewell is dead ! I spoke a few solemn words to the lads before lecture, telling them what a mighty spirit had passed away, what he had been to Cambridge and science, and how his example ought to show them that they were in a place where nothing was required for the most splendid success, but love of knowledge and indomitable energy. They heard me with very deep attention. He is to be buried in the College Chapel, Saturday I am up to the eyes in work, sending round my Harvard ad- dress." 364 Charles Kings ley. The Harvard address alluded to here was on the subject of an American Professorship, which had been proposed for Cambridge. The following letter to Sir Charles Lyell explains its object : BARTON HALL, February 18, 1866. " I take the liberty of enclosing a broadsheet which I have just issued at Cambridge. It expresses, I am happy to say, the opinions of all the most educated Cambridge men, on the subject of the proposed American Lectureship, to be founded by a Mr. Yates Thompson, of Liverpool, and supplied by the authorities of Har- vard College, United States. If any of your many American friends are interested in the matter, you would perhaps kindly show them this broadsheet." THE AMERICAN LECTURESHIP. " I trust that it will not be considered impertinent, if I, as Pro- fessor of Modern History, address a few words on this matter to the Masters of Art in this University. " My own wish is, that the proposal be accepted, as frankly as it has been made. " Harvard University an offshoot, practically, of our own Uni- versity is a body so distinguished, that any proposition coming from it deserves our most respectful consideration ; and an offer of this kind, on their part, is to be looked on as a very graceful compliment. " The objections are obvious ; but after looking them through fairly, as they suggested themselves to me, 1 must say that they are fully met by Mr. Thompson's own conditions ; by the Vice-Chan- cellor's veto, and by the clause empowering either University to put an end to the Lectureship when they like. " But they are best met by the character of Harvard University itself. Its rulers, learned and high-minded gentlemen, painfully aware of our general ignorance about them, and honorably anxious to prove themselves (what they are) our equals in civilization, will take care to send us the very best man whom they can find. And more than one person suggests himself to my mind, whom if they chose (as they would be very likely to choose) I should gladly welcome as my own instructor in the history of his country. " When I did myself the honor of lecturing in this University on the History of the United States, I became painfully aware how little was known, and how little, then, could be known, on the subject. This great want has been since supplied by a large addi- tion to the University Library of American literature. I think it most important that it should be still further removed by the resi- dence among us of an American gentleman. The American Lectureship at Cambridge. 365 " If there should be, in any minds, the fear that this University should be 'Americanized,' or 'democratized,' they should remem- ber, that this proposal comes from the representatives of that class in America, which regards England with most love and respect; which feels itself in increasing danger of being swamped by the lower elements of a vast democracy ; which has, of late years, withdrawn more and more from public life, in order to preserve its own purity and self-respect; which now holds out the right hand of fellowship to us, as to one of the most conservative bodies in this country, because it feels itself a conservative element in its own country, and looks to us for just recognition in that character. It is morally impossible that such men should go out of their way, to become propagandists of those very revolutionary principles, against which they are honorably struggling at home. " And if there be (as there is) an attempt going on just now to ' Americanize ' England, on the part of certain Englishmen, no better defence against such a scheme can be devised, than to teach the educated young men of England as much as possible about America ; to let them hear the truth from worthy American lips ; and judge for themselves. " But I deprecate the introducing into this question any notions drawn from general American politics, or manners. We have no more right to judge of Harvard by our notions of the ' .' or the 'Black Republican' pulpit, than Harvard would have to judge of Cambridge by Reynolds's 'Mysteries of London,' or, .' It is simply a question between two dignified and learned bodies. Let it remain as such. There are as great differ- ences of civilization, rank, learning, opinions, manners, in America, as in England ; and if we are not yet convinced of that fact, it will be good for us that a highly-educated American gentleman should come hither and prove it. " Of the general importance of the scheme, of the great necessity that our young men should know as much as possible of a country destined to be the greatest in the world, I shall say little. I shall only ask If in the second century before the Christian era the Romans had offered to send a lecturer to Athens, that he might tell Greek gentlemen of what manner of men this new Italian power was composed, what were their laws and customs, their intentions, and their notion of their own duty and destiny would Athens have been wise or foolish in accepting the offer ? " May I, in conclusion, allude to one argument, which would of course have no weight with the University in a question of right and wrong, but which may have weight in one, like the present, of expediency ? " If we decline this offer, I fear that we shall give offence, not of course to gentlemen like the rulers of Harvard, but to thousands who care as little for Harvard as they do for our own Cambridge. 366 Charles Kings ley. A sensitive people like the Americans, instinct with national feel- ing, among whom news is spread far more rapidly than in England, will be but too likely to take up our refusal as a national insult. The lower portion of the American press will be but too likely to misrepresent and vilify our motives ; and a fresh soreness between us and Americans may be caused (by no real fault of our own) at the very time when we should be doing all in our power to promote mutual good will and good understanding. "C. KINGSLEY. I "February 9, 1866." The offer was finally rejected by vote of the Senate, to the great regret of many leading men in the University. The death of Dr. Whewell, the appointment of Mr. Maurice to the chair of Moral Philosophy, the discussion of the American Professorship, and the happiness of having his eldest son an under- graduate of Trinity, made this a year of no ordinary interest, as far as Cambridge was corrcerned, to the Professor. His yearly residences at Cambridge gave him not only the advantage of associating with scholars and men of mark in the University, but of paying visits in the neighborhood to houses where good pictures and charming society refreshed and helped him through the toil of his professional work to Wimpole, to Ampthill Park, and other country houses, where he and his were always made welcome. While staying at Ampthill he first saw the pictures at Woburn Abbey and Haynes Park, which were of deep interest to him, and in reference to this time Mr. George Howard writes from Naworth Castle in 1876 : " Once I went over the picture gallery at Woburn with him, it was a great treat to me, as his talk over the historical portraits was delightful. He then made a remark which has since seemed to me quite a key to the criticism of historical portraits: 'That it was for- merly the habit of portrait painters to flatter their sitters by making them as like the reigning king or queen as they could.' . . . " During his heavy parish work, which was done single-handed the greater part of this year, he was more than ever struck by the monotonous, coloness life of the English laborer, varied only by the yearly benefit-club day, and evenings at the public-house. The absence of all pleasure from their lives weighed heavily on his heart, more especially in the case of the poor hard-worked wives Parish Labors. 367 and mothers who, if respectable, were excluded from even the poor amusements of the men ; and for their sake, as well as for his men and boys, he began a series of Penny Readings, which now have become so common. It was characteristic of his chivalrous spirit that at the first meeting, when the school-room was crowded with men and boys, he made an appeal to them for their wives and mothers, dwelling on the life of toil they led, and saying how anxious he should be to give them a share in this amusement, which they so sorely needed. It was therefore arranged that, while the men and boys paid their pennies, the widows and poor overbur- dened mothers should have free tickets. These meetings, in which his parishioners would kindly help him, occurred once a fortnight, and though set on foot for the poor, brought all classes pleasantly together during the autumn and winter nights ; they had music (the best that could be got), the best poetry, the most heroic stories. Sometimes he would give simple lectures on health ; accounts of his own travels ; and latterly ex- tracts from his eldest son's letters from abroad, in which stories expressly for the Penny Readings at home were not forgotten. Village concerts, too, were given, got up by his daughter and son, in which friends from London helped for his sake ; and the sight of the well-lighted and decorated room to people who saw nothing at home from one year's end to another but a farthing dip candle, was a pleasure in itself ; the poor mothers were gratified at seeing their sons in Sunday garments step up on the platform to help in choruses and part songs, while the young men gained in self-re- spect and refinement, by the share they took in the preparation as well as the performance. " It was to him most curious," he used to say, " to watch the effect of music upon the poor people upon, alas ! seemingly unimpressionable drudges, in whom one would expect to find no appreciation for refined sound ; " but yet who would walk two miles to the village school-room on a wet night and sit in rapt attention the whole evening, " showing their approba- tion of good music, not by noisy applause, but by a kindling face and eye during the piece, and a low hum of approbation after, that hinted at a deep musical under-current below that rugged exterior." Penny Readings are common now, but in his own immediate neighborhood the Rector of Eversley took the lead in inaugurating these pleasant gatherings. 368 Charles Kings ley. His literary work this year consisted in two lectures on Science and Superstition* at the Royal Institution. He preached for the first time in one of the Great Nave services at Westminster Abbey,f for the Bishop of London's Fund; to the boys of Wellington Col- lege ; to the Queen at Clifden ; and his usual Chapel Royal sermons. In the little congregation at Eversley for some of the summer months, many distinguished men might be numbered ; among them were Sir George Hamilton Seymour and General Sir Win. Codrington. The correspondence was, as usual, of a varied and singular character. One day there came a long letter from a London news- paper reporter, who, in return for some kindly, cheering words, revealed the inner life of Bohemia with wonderful vividness, and ended, " I have written you a very long and tedious letter, Mr. Kingsley, and were I writing to an ordinary man, I should be mad to address him at this length and in this vein. But you understand things, and I am almost certain that you will understand me and my long-windedness. Thank you again. Think gently of Bohemia and its free Lances." .... Another from Brighton, thanking him for " Alton Locke," signed " A Chartist and Cabman." Again, from a man who had lived abroad, and only signed him- self " One who can never forget you," who had accidentally read "Alton Locke" "in a time of overhelming misery" "You were the means of saving me from ruin and destruction, to which I was fast drifting." From South Australia, 1867, a barrister writes, thanking him for his " Sermons for the Times," " Pentateuch," and " Good News," telling him how they were read frequently by the special magistrate, by his brother barrister, and by himself, in remote places, where they have no Church clergymen, and the Bishop appoints laymen to read sermons. "I could not," he says, " write as a stranger to a man who has so honestly spoken to me of my life and its duties, presented for the first time in the light in which you portray them." .... Letters came from China, from the heart of Africa, from the other side of the Rocky Mountains all telling the same tale. * Since republished in " Health and Education." j- Tluse sermons have since appeared in a volume, " The Water of Life." A Grateful Beneficiary. 369 One or two found their way to " Charles Kingsley, England," many were without any signature simple outpourings of loving hearts, neither written from egotism or from the desire of getting an autograph in return. One, also anonymous, dated Glasgow, May ii, 1867, is so touching in itself and so significant of Mr. Kingsley's daily acts of mercy unknown to all but himself and those who received them, that it must be given entire : "CHARLES KIXGSLEY, " My dear friend, permit me to engage your kind attention for a little. I often remember you and ' the kindness of God,' which you showed towards me some years ago. You found me in the way near Hartly Row, a poor, homeless, friendless, penniless stranger. God sent you as an angel of mercy to me, a very un- worthy creature. You were, indeed, like the good Samaritan to me. You took me to the Lamb Inn, and there, for your sake, I was very hospitably cared for. On the walls of a room in that inn I wrote a prayer, which came from the very depths of my heart. It was for you, that the Father of the fatherless would make you most glad with His countenance for ever. That prayer I have often breathed since then. " I was not aware, till afterwards, that you were the author of so many books, and a person of so great note. I rejoice in your hon- orable fame." These letters, and many a strange communication that he re- ceived, not only cheered him in his work, but gave him fresh knowledge of human nature in all its varied aspects that few men have, and deepened his own humanity. He little thought they were treasured up, to give others some small insight into his great work, by one who feels it is no treachery to disclose them now, or to mention what he never alluded to in his lifetime ! TO MR. T. DIXON. EVERSLEY, October 27, 1866. "The volumes of Bewick are come, and may I beg you to give to the Misses Bewick the enclosed letter of thanks. " I am delighted with the new vignettes all showing the genius which shines from every touch of the truly great man's hand. Of course, as the happy possessor of a Newcastle copy of 1809, in which my father literally brought me up, I prefer the old, untouched plates for softness, richness, and clearness. But we cannot expect everything to last ; and the volumes which have been sent to me 24 370 Charles Kings ley. are very valuable as memorials of Bewick, as well as proofs of the kindfiess of people whom I know not, yet respect. " I do not quite understand the end of your letter, in which you are kind enough to compliment me for following Carlyle's advice about one ' sadly tried.' I have followed the sage of Chelsea's teaching, about my noble friend, ex-Governor Eyre of Jamaica. I have been cursed for it, as if I had been a dog, who had never stood up for the working man when all the world was hounding him (the working man) down in 1848-9, and imperilled my own prospects in life in behalf of freedom and justice. Now, men insult me because I stand up for a man whom I believe ill-used, calumniated, and hunted to death by fanatics. If you mean Mr. Eyre in what you say, you indeed will give me pleasure, because I shall see that one more ' man of the people ' has common sense to appreciate a brave and good man, doing his best under terrible difficulties : but if not, I know that 1 am right." TO THE MISSES BEWICK. " MY DEAR LADIES, " I received with great pleasure the present of your father's works in two volumes. The old edition of 1804 is fresher and richer in the printing of the wood-cuts, but this is very interesting to me and to my children, as containing so many new vignettes which the old edition wants, and which all show the genius which always accompanied his hand. " Ladies, it is a great boon from God to have had a great father. And I had no idea what a noble specimen of an Englishman he was, till you did me the honor of sending me his ' Life.' The wisdom, justice, moderation, and energy of his character impressed me with a moral reverence for him, even greater than that which I already felt for his artistic honor. Happy are the daughters who have sprung from such a man, and who will meet him again in heaven. " I am, my dear Ladies, " Your obliged Servant, " CHARLES KINGSLEY." TO THE SAME. April, 1867. " Mrs. Kingsley and I have to thank you very much for your most valuable present of your father's handwriting, and the sketch acompanying it. I shall treasure them and pass them on as heir- looms to my eldest son, who has been brought up on your father's books, and is going out some day as a naturalist and a settler. " But, my dear madam, you must not speak of my approving your father's labors, you must speak of me as one who has been you father's loving, reverent pupil, as was my father before me. Jews Tin and Jews Houses. 371 " When your father's book of birds first came out, my father, then a young hunting squire, in the New Forest, Hampshire, saw the book in London, and bought at once the beautiful old copy which has been the text-book of my boyhood. He, a sportsman and field naturalist, loved it and carried it with him up and down in days when no scientific knowledge could be had, from 1805-1820, and when he was laughed at in the New Forest for having bought a book about ' dicky birdies,' till his fellow squires borrowing his copy, agreed that it was the most clever book they had ever seen, and a revelation to them, who had had these phenomena under their eyes all their lives and never noticed them. " That my father should have introduced into the south of Eng- land, first, your father's book, and have known his great pupil, Yarrell, in person, is to me a great pleasure. Yarrell and my father were friends from youth till death, and if my father had been alive now he would have joined me in respect and affection for the daughters of the great and wise Bewick." TO PROFESSOR MAX MULLER. EVERSLEY, November 16, 1866. " DEAREST MAX, " Story, bless you, I have none to tell you, save that in Corn- wall these same old stories, of Jews' tin and Jews' houses, got from the miners, filled my young brains with unhistoric nonsense, like Mara-zion, the bitterness of Zion ; which town the old folk, I can't tell why, call Market Jew still. " That the Jews came to Cornwall as slaves after the destruction of Jerusalem is possible and probable enough, but I know of no evidence. That the old smelting works, and the tin found in them was immemorially called Jews' tin and Jews' houses is well known ; also that they are of an awful antiquity. Market Jew, as a town, is a name you must explain. That is all. I put it in ' Yeast,' into the mouth of a Cornish ex-miner. But I am glad you are taking the matter up, and working Carew, Pohvhele, and Borlase. 1 should expect you to find the root of the myths in that fruitful mother of wind eggs, the sixteenth century. " My dear Max, what great things have happened for Germany, and what great men your Prussians have shown themselves. Much as I was wroth with them about Schleswig-Holstein, I can only see in this last campaign a great necessary move for the physical safety of every North German household, and the honor of every North German woman. To allow the possibility of a second 1807-1812 to remain, when it could be averted by any amount of fighting, were sin and shame, and had I been a Prussian 1 would have gone down to Saclowa as a sacred duty to wife and child and fatherland. " I am reading much German now, and shall need to ask you 37 2 Charles Kings ley. questions, specially about the reaction from 1815-1820, and ihe alleged treachery of the princes in not granting constitutions. " Meanwhile, tell me if Gervinus, whom I am studying on that matter, is worthy of credit, and recommend me a good author, specially one who has thought before he wrote, and, not like Gervinus, thought in writing, to the perplexing of himself and reader." .... The great meteor shower of November, 1866, was naturally of intense' and, as he said himself, awful interest to him. In trembling excitement he paced up and down the church-yard, where he had a greater sweep of horizon than elsewhere, long before the time arrived, and when the shower began called his wife and children out of their beds to watch with him. He preached upon the great spectacle in his own church and at the Chapel Royal. TO PROFESSOR ADAMS. EVERSLEY, November 14, 1866. "The Jinns* (according to the Mussulman theory of meteors) must have had a warm time of it about i A.M. this morning, and the Eastern peoples (if the star shower was visible to them) must be congratulating themselves that (unless the angels are very bad shots) there is a very fair chance of the devil being killed at last. " What I saw may at least amuse you. I presume any local observations have value, however small. " I saw the first meteor about 11.50, i.e., as soon as the head of Leo rose above our rather high horizon. From that time the star rain increased till about i A.M., and diminished till about 2.30, when very few passed. They went on, I am told, till 5.30 this morning. I saw no increase or diminution in the size of the me- teors from beginning to end. Some of them were larger and more brilliant than common shooting stars, but not many. The most brilliant appeared of a reddish color, their tails green and bluish. They all proceeded from the one point in Leo, only one other star (as far as I saw) fell at right angles to their course, from the zenith to the north. I was struck by the fact that they all proceeded in quasi-straight lines- without any of that wavering and uncertainty of direction so common in meteors. Any large number became visible only about the zenith, or in falling towards the western horizon. * The Jinns or second order of spirits are supposed by the Mussulman to be many of them killed by shooting stars, hurled at them from heaven ; wherefore, the Arabs, when they see a shooting star, often exclaim, " May God transfix the enemy of the faith !" Notes to Lane's " Thousand and One Nights." The Star Shower. 373 " But the most striking and (to me) awful phenomenon was the point of departure in Leo, where, again and again, meteors appeared and hung for a moment, their tail so much foreshortened as to be wholly or almost wholly unseen. These must have been coming straight at us. Surely some may have struck our planet ? " The seeming generation of these magnificent objects out of a point of nonentity and void, was to me the most beautiful and strik- ing sky phenomenon which I ever witnessed. Yet the actual facts of their course are far more wonderful and awful than even that appearance. I tried to picture to myself the thought and feelings of a mediaeval observer, however rational or cool-headed he might have been, in presence of that star shower ; and when I thought of the terror with which he had a right to regard it, and the fantastic explanation which he had a right to put upon it, I thanked your astronomers for having ' delivered us by science from one more object of dread.' " I ought to say that there was here (in North Hants) no sign of an Aurora Borealis, which is said to have accompanied the star shower in certain cases. "By-the-bye, what a lecture one might have given (illustrated by nature's own diagrams) on the prospective of parallel lines and the meaning of a vanishing point." TO PROFESSOR LORIMER OF EDINBURGH. EVERSLEY, December 17, 1866. " I received some months since (and I hope duly acknowledged) your book on ' The Constitutionalism of the Future.' "I laid it by for study, when I should have time to do it justice. I now write to express my great pleasure, both in the matter and the manner of it. The views which you put forth are just those to which I have been led by twenty years of thought and observa- tion ; its manner, I wish I could copy. In it, clearness and method are not merely ornamented, but strengthened by a vein of humor, which is a sure sign of mastery of the subject, and of that faculty which no education can give, called genius. I wish that in the writings of our mutual friend, Mr. Mill, I could see some touch of that same humor. I wish that there was any chance of your wise advice being adopted ; but Mr. 's party have let loose that spirit of envy, which is the counterfeit of your righteous idea of equality relative, and tempts men to demand that impossible equality absolute, which must end in making the moneylenders the only privileged class. To men possessed by envy, your truly scientific, as well as truly religious method, of looking for the facts of God's world, and trying to represent them in laws, will be the plot of a concealed aristocrat. I fear, too, that Mr. Mill and those who follow him most closely, will hardly support your method, and 374 Charles Kings ley. for the same reason, Mr. Mill (of whom I speak with real reverence) seems to me to look on man too much as the creature of circum- stances. This it is, which makes him disparage, if not totally deny, the congenial differences of character in individuals, and still more in races. He has, if I mistake not, openly denounced the doctrine of difference and superiority in race. And it is this mistake (as it seems to me) which has led him and others into that theory that the suffrage ought to be educational and formative, which you have so ably combated. " Of course if it is assumed that all men are born into the world equals, and that their inequality, in intellect or morals, is chargea- ble entirely to circumstance, that inequality must be regarded as a wrong done by society to the less favored. Society therefor has no right to punish them by withholding the suffrage, for an inferiority which she herself has created ; she is bound to treat them as if they were actually what they would have been but for her, and if they misuse their rights, she must pay the penalty of her previous neglect and cruelty. This seems to me to be the revolutionary doc- trine of 1793-1848, which convulsed Europe; and from its logic and morality there is no escape as long as human beings are as- serted to be congenitally equal, and circumstances the only cause of subsequent inequality. I have some right to speak on this subject, as 1 held that doctrine strongly myself in past years, and was cured of it, in spite of its seeming justice and charity, by the harsh school of facts. Nearly a quarter of a century spent in educating my parishioners, and experience with my own and others children, in fact, that schooling of facts brought home to the heart which Mr. Mill has never had have taught me that there are congenital differences and hereditary tendencies which defy all edu- cation from circumstances, whether for good or evil. Society may pity those who are born fools or knaves, but she cannot, for her own sake, allow them power if she can help it. And therefore in the case of the suffrage, she must demand some practical guar- antee that the man on whom it is bestowed is not dangerously knavish or foolish. I have seen, also, that the differences of race are so great, that certain races, e.g., the Irish Celts, seem quite unfit for self-government, and almost for the self-administration of justice involved in trial by jury, because they regard freedom and law, not as means for preserving what is just and right, but merely as weapons to be used for their own private interests and passions. They take the letter of freedom which killeth, without any concep- tion of its spirit which giveth life. Nay, I go further, and fear much that no Roman Catholic country will ever be fit for free con- stitutional government, and for this simple reason, De Tocqueville and his school (of whom I speak with great respect) say that the cause of failure of free institutions in the Romance countries has been, the absence of the primary training in municipal self-govern- The Right of Suffrage. 375 merit. That I doubt not. But what has been the cause of that want? the previous want of training in self government of the individual himself. And as long as the system of education for all classes in the Romance countries is one of tutelage and espionage (proceeding from the priestly notions concerning sin), so long will neither rich nor poor have any power of self-government. Any one who knows the difference between a French lycee and an English public school ought to see what I mean, and see one main cause of the failure of all attempts at self-government in France. May I without boring you (at least you are not bound to read this long letter) go on to another subject, which seems to me just now of great importance ? I think the giving intellect and civilization its due weight, by means of plurality of votes, as you so well advise, practically hopeless just now. But is there no body or influence in the state which may secure them their due weight nevertheless? I think that there is, namely, the House of Lords. You seem (and herein alone I differ from you) to regard as the majority do, the Peers, as standing alone in the state, and representing only themselves. I, on the contrary, look at them as representing every silver fork in Great Britain. What I mean is this, a person or body may be truly representative without being elected by those whom they represent. You will of course allow this. Now the House of Lords seem to me to represent all heritable property, real or per- sonal, and also all heritable products of moral civilization, such as hereditary independence, chivalry, &c. They represent, in one word, the hereditary principle. This, no House of Commons, no elective body, can represent. It can only represent the temporary wants and opinions of the many, and that portion of their capital which is temporarily invested in trade, &c. It cannot represent the hereditary instinct which binds man and the state to the past and future generations. If you watch the current of American feeling and society you will see full proof of this. If the family bond should break up there, soon the bond will break up which makes a nation responsible in honor for the deeds of its ancestors, and therefore regardful of the obligation of international treaties. Now a body is required which represents the past and the future, and all material or spiritual which has been inherited from the past or bequeathed to the future. And this body must itself be an hereditary one. Some one may answer, 'Just as much as, Who drives fat oxen must himself be fat.' But it seems to me, " i. That such a body must be non-elected, to keep it safe from the changes of temporary popular opinion. An elective upper chamber is a monster which is certain to become a den of dema- gogues and money-lenders. " 2. That it must be hereditary, because it is impossible for men to represent that which they are not themselves. The Peers are the incarnation of the hereditary principle. I look on them there- 376 Charles Kings ley. fore as what they are in fact, not a caste, not even a class, but a certain number of specimens of a class chosen out by the accident (and a very fair choice, because it prevents quarrels and popular intrigues) of being eldest sons. I look on them as the representa- tives, not only of every younger brother, &c., of their own kin, and of every family which has ever intermarried, or hopes to intermarry with them (though that would include the great majority of well- educated Britons), but as the representatives of every man who has saved up enough to buy a silver fork, a picture, a Yankee clock, or anything, in fact, which he wishes to hand to his children. I hold that while Mr. Bright may, if he likes, claim to be represented merely by the House of Commons, his plate and house is repre- sented by the House of Lords, and that if the House of Lords were abolished, Mr. Bright' s children would discover that fact by the introduction of laws which would injure the value of all heritable property, would tax (under the name of luxuries) the products of art and civilization, would try to drive capital into those trades which afforded most employment for -skilled labor, and supplied most the temporary necessities of the back and belly, and would tend to tax the rich for the sake of the poor, with very ugly results to civilization. " This picture may seem overdrawn. But I answer, this is already the tendency in the United States. The next fifty years will prove whether that tendency can be conquered or not in a pure demo- cracy, such as they have now for the first time become, since they have exterminated their southern hereditary aristocracy, and their northern hereditary aristocracy, the Puritan gentlemen of old families have retired in disgust from public life. May I ask you to think over this view of the House of Lords. And may I ask you how far you think, if it be correct, it can be wisely pressed upon all classes, and specially upon the titled persons (there is no titled class in these realms) themselves ? " Pray excuse the length of this letter. But your book awoke such an interest in me a solitary country thinker that I could not resist the temptation of pouring out to you some of the re- sults of my years of practical observation of, and pondering on, facts." In the spring of 1867 he undertook the editorship of " Eraser's Magazine " for a few months for Mr. Froude, who had to go to Spain to study the archives of Simancas for his history, and he seized upon this opportunity to get a few papers on science into its pages, and wrote to his friends Professor Newton, Sir Charles Bun- bury, and others, begging for help, to which they kindly responded Professor Newton writing on the Birds of Norfolk ; Sir Charles Natural Selection. 377 on the Flora of South America ; he himself contributing one of his most lovely idylls, " A Charm of Birds." TO CHARLES DARWIN, ESQ., F.L.S., F.G.S. EVERSLEY, June 6, 1867. " I am very anxious to obtain a copy of a pamphlet, which I unfortunately lost. It came out shortly after your ' Origin of Species,' and was entitled ' Reasons for believing in Mr. Darwin's Theory ' or some such words. It contained a list of phenomenal puzzles, forty or more, which were explicable by you and not otherwise. If you can recollect it, and tell me where I can get a copy, I shall be very glad, as I may specially want it in your defence. " I advise you to look at a wonderful article in the ' North British ' about you. It is a pity the man who wrote it had not studied zoology and botany, before writing about them. " The Duke of Argyle's book is very fair and manly, although he cannot agree with you. What he says about the humming birds is his weakest part. He utterly overlooks sexual selection by the females, as one great branch of natural selection. Why on earth are the males only (to use his teleological view) ornamented, save for the amusement of the females first ? In his earnestness to press the point (which I think you have really overlooked too much), that beauty in animals and plants is intended for the res- thetic education and pleasure of man, and (as I believe in my old- fashioned way), for the pleasure of a God who rejoices in His works as a painter in his picture in his hurry, I say, to urge this truth, he has overlooked that beauty in any animal must surely first please the animals of that species, and that beauty in males alone is a broad hint that the females are meant to be charmed thereby and once allow that any striking new color would attract any single female, you have an opening for endless variation. " Altogether, even the 'North British' pleases me, for the writer is forced to allow some natural selection, and forced to allow some great duration of the earth ; and so every one who fights you is forced to allow some of your arguments, as a tub to the whale, if only he may be allowed to deny others, while very few have the honesty to confess that they know nothing about the matter, save what you have put into their heads. " Remark that the argument of the ' North British,' that geolo- gical changes were more violent, and the physical energies of the earth more intense in old times, cuts both ways. For if that be true, then changes of circumstance in plants and animals must have been more rapid, and the inclination to vary from ontii.